|
How selfish
soever man may be supposed, there are evidently some principles in
his nature, which interest him in the fortune of others, and
render their happiness necessary to him, though he derives nothing
from it except the pleasure of seeing it. Of this kind is pity or
compassion, the emotion which we feel for the misery of others,
when we either see it, or are made to conceive it in a very lively
manner. That we often derive sorrow from the sorrow of others, is
a matter of fact too obvious to require any instances to prove it;
for this sentiment, like all the other original passions of human
nature, is by no means confined to the virtuous and humane, though
they perhaps may feel it with the most exquisite sensibility. The
greatest ruffian, the most hardened violator of the laws of
society, is not altogether without it. |
I.I.1 |
|
As we have no immediate experience of what other men feel, we
can form no idea of the manner in which they are affected, but by
conceiving what we ourselves should feel in the like situation.
Though our brother is upon the rack, as long as we ourselves are
at our ease, our senses will never inform us of what he suffers.
They never did, and never can, carry us beyond our own person, and
it is by the imagination only that we can form any conception of
what are his sensations. Neither can that faculty help us to this
any other way, than by representing to us what would be our own,
if we were in his case. It is the impressions of our own senses
only, not those of his, which our imaginations copy. By the
imagination we place ourselves in his situation, we conceive
ourselves enduring all the same torments, we enter as it were into
his body, and become in some measure the same person with him, and
thence form some idea of his sensations, and even feel something
which, though weaker in degree, is not altogether unlike them. His
agonies, when they are thus brought home to ourselves, when we
have thus adopted and made them our own, begin at last to affect
us, and we then tremble and shudder at the thought of what he
feels. For as to be in pain or distress of any kind excites the
most excessive sorrow, so to conceive or to imagine that we are in
it, excites some degree of the same emotion, in proportion to the
vivacity or dulness of the conception. | |
I.I.2 |
|
That this is the source of our fellow-feeling for the misery of
others, that it is by changing places in fancy with the sufferer,
that we come either to conceive or to be affected by what he
feels, may be demonstrated by many obvious observations, if it
should not be thought sufficiently evident of itself. When we see
a stroke aimed and just ready to fall upon the leg or arm of
another person, we naturally shrink and draw back our own leg or
our own arm; and when it does fall, we feel it in some measure,
and are hurt by it as well as the sufferer. The mob, when they are
gazing at a dancer on the slack rope, naturally writhe and twist
and balance their own bodies, as they see him do, and as they feel
that they themselves must do if in his situation. Persons of
delicate fibres and a weak constitution of body complain, that in
looking on the sores and ulcers which are exposed by beggars in
the streets, they are apt to feel an itching or uneasy sensation
in the correspondent part of their own bodies. The horror which
they conceive at the misery of those wretches affects that
particular part in themselves more than any other; because that
horror arises from conceiving what they themselves would suffer,
if they really were the wretches whom they are looking upon, and
if that particular part in themselves was actually affected in the
same miserable manner. The very force of this conception is
sufficient, in their feeble frames, to produce that itching or
uneasy sensation complained of. Men of the most robust make,
observe that in looking upon sore eyes they often feel a very
sensible soreness in their own, which proceeds from the same
reason; that organ being in the strongest man more delicate, than
any other part of the body is in the weakest.
| |
I.I.3 |
|
Neither is it those circumstances only, which create pain or
sorrow, that call forth our fellow-feeling. Whatever is the
passion which arises from any object in the person principally
concerned, an analogous emotion springs up, at the thought of his
situation, in the breast of every attentive spectator. Our joy for
the deliverance of those heroes of tragedy or romance who interest
us, is as sincere as our grief for their distress, and our
fellow-feeling with their misery is not more real than that with
their happiness. We enter into their gratitude towards those
faithful friends who did not desert them in their difficulties;
and we heartily go along with their resentment against those
perfidious traitors who injured, abandoned, or deceived them. In
every passion of which the mind of man is susceptible, the
emotions of the by-stander always correspond to hat, by bringing
the case home to himself, he imagines should be the sentiments of
the sufferer. | |
I.I.4 |
|
Pity and compassion are words appropriated to signify our
fellow-feeling with the sorrow of others. Sympathy, though its
meaning was, perhaps, originally the same, may now, however,
without much impropriety, be made use of to denote our
fellow-feeling with any passion whatever.
| |
I.I.5 |
|
Upon some occasions sympathy may seen to arise merely from the
view of a certain emotion in another person. The passions, upon
some occasions, may seem to be transfused from one man to another,
instantaneously and antecedent to any knowledge of what excited
them in the person principally concerned. Grief and joy, for
example, strongly expressed in the look and gestures of any one,
at once affect the spectator with some degree of a like painful or
agreeable emotion. A smiling face is, to every body that sees it,
a cheerful object; as a sorrowful countenance, on the other hand,
is a melancholy one. | |
I.I.6 |
|
This, however, does not hold universally, or with regard to
every passion. There are some passions of which the expressions
excite no sort of sympathy, but before we are acquainted with what
gave occasion to them, serve rather to disgust and provoke us
against them. The furious behaviour of an angry man is more likely
to exasperate us against himself than against his enemies. As we
are unacquainted with his provocation, we cannot bring his case
home to ourselves, nor conceive any thing like the passions which
it excites. But we plainly see what is the situation of those with
whom he is angry, and to what violence they may be exposed from so
enraged an adversary. We readily, therefore, sympathize with their
fear or resentment, and are immediately disposed to take part
against the man from whom they appear to be in so much danger.
| |
I.I.7 |
|
If the very appearances of grief and joy inspire us with some
degree of the like emotions, it is because they suggest to us the
general idea of some good or bad fortune that has befallen the
person in whom we observe them: and in these passions this is
sufficient to have some little influence upon us. The effects of
grief and joy terminate in the person who feels those emotions, of
which the expressions do not, like those of resentment, suggest to
us the idea of any other person for whom we are concerned, and
whose interests are opposite to his. The general idea of good or
bad fortune, therefore, creates some concern for the person who
has met with it, but the general idea of provocation excites no
sympathy with the anger of the man who has received it. Nature, it
seems, teaches us to be more averse to enter into this passion,
and, till informed of its cause, to be disposed rather to take
part against it. | |
I.I.8 |
|
Even our sympathy with the grief or joy of another, before we
are informed of the cause of either, is always extremely
imperfect. General lamentations, which express nothing but the
anguish of the sufferer, create rather a curiosity to inquire into
his situation, along with some disposition to sympathize with him,
than any actual sympathy that is very sensible. The first question
which we ask is, What has befallen you? Till this be answered,
though we are uneasy both from the vague idea of his misfortune,
and still more from torturing ourselves with conjectures about
what it may be, yet our fellow-feeling is not very considerable.
| |
I.I.9 |
|
Sympathy, therefore, does not arise so much from the view of
the passion, as from that of the situation which excites it. We
sometimes feel for another, a passion of which he himself seems to
be altogether incapable; because, when we put ourselves in his
case, that passion arises in our breast from the imagination,
though it does not in his from the reality. We blush for the
impudence and rudeness of another, though he himself appears to
have no sense of the impropriety of his own behaviour; because we
cannot help feeling with what confusion we ourselves should be
covered, had we behaved in so absurd a manner.
| |
I.I.10 |
|
Of all the calamities to which the condition of mortality
exposes mankind, the loss of reason appears, to those who have the
least spark of humanity, by far the most dreadful, and they behold
that last stage of human wretchedness with deeper commiseration
than any other. But the poor wretch, who is in it, laughs and
sings perhaps, and is altogether insensible of his own misery. The
anguish which humanity feels, therefore, at the sight of such an
object, cannot be the reflection of any sentiment of the sufferer.
The compassion of the spectator must arise altogether from the
consideration of what he himself would feel if he was reduced to
the same unhappy situation, and, what perhaps is impossible, was
at the same time able to regard it with his present reason and
judgment. | |
I.I.11 |
|
What are the pangs of a mother, when she hears the moanings of
her infant that during the agony of disease cannot express what it
feels? In her idea of what it suffers, she joins, to its real
helplessness, her own consciousness of that helplessness, and her
own terrors for the unknown consequences of its disorder; and out
of all these, forms, for her own sorrow, the most complete image
of misery and distress. The infant, however, feels only the
uneasiness of the present instant, which can never be great. With
regard to the future, it is perfectly secure, and in its
thoughtlessness and want of foresight, possesses an antidote
against fear and anxiety, the great tormentors of the human
breast, from which reason and philosophy will, in vain, attempt to
defend it, when it grows up to a man. | |
I.I.12 |
|
We sympathize even with the dead, and overlooking what is of
real importance in their situation, that awful futurity which
awaits them, we are chiefly affected by those circumstances which
strike our senses, but can have no influence upon their happiness.
It is miserable, we think, to be deprived of the light of the sun;
to be shut out from life and conversation; to be laid in the cold
grave, a prey to corruption and the reptiles of the earth; to be
no more thought of in this world, but to be obliterated, in a
little time, from the affections, and almost from the memory, of
their dearest friends and relations. Surely, we imagine, we can
never feel too much for those who have suffered so dreadful a
calamity. The tribute of our fellow-feeling seems doubly due to
them now, when they are in danger of being forgot by every body;
and, by the vain honours which we pay to their memory, we
endeavour, for our own misery, artificially to keep alive our
melancholy remembrance of their misfortune. That our sympathy can
afford them no consolation seems to be an addition to their
calamity; and to think that all we can do is unavailing, and that,
what alleviates all other distress, the regret, the love, and the
lamentations of their friends, can yield no comfort to them,
serves only to exasperate our sense of their misery. The happiness
of the dead, however, most assuredly, is affected by none of these
circumstances; nor is it the thought of these things which can
ever disturb the profound security of their repose. The idea of
that dreary and endless melancholy, which the fancy naturally
ascribes to their condition, arises altogether from our joining to
the change which has been produced upon them, our own
consciousness of that change, from our putting ourselves in their
situation, and from our lodging, if I may be allowed to say so,
our own living souls in their inanimated bodies, and thence
conceiving what would be our emotions in this case. It is from
this very illusion of the imagination, that the foresight of our
own dissolution is so terrible to us, and that the idea of those
circumstances, which undoubtedly can give us no pain when we are
dead, makes us miserable while we are alive. And from thence
arises one of the most important principles in human nature, the
dread of death, the great poison to the happiness, but the great
restraint upon the injustice of mankind, which, while it afflicts
and mortifies the individual, guards and protects the society.
| |
I.I.13 |
|
Chapter II - Of the Pleasure of mutual Sympathy
| |
|
But whatever may be the cause of sympathy, or however it may be
excited, nothing pleases us more than to observe in other men a
fellow-feeling with all the emotions of our own breast; nor are we
ever so much shocked as by the appearance of the contrary. Those
who are fond of deducing all our sentiments from certain
refinements of self-love, think themselves at no loss to account,
according to their own principles, both for this pleasure and this
pain. Man, say they, conscious of his own weakness, and of the
need which he has for the assistance of others, rejoices whenever
he observes that they adopt his own passions, because he is then
assured of that assistance; and grieves whenever he observes the
contrary, because he is then assured of their opposition. But both
the pleasure and the pain are always felt so instantaneously, and
often upon such frivolous occasions, that it seems evident that
neither of them can be derived from any such self-interested
consideration. A man is mortified when, after having endeavoured
to divert the company, he looks round and sees that nobody laughs
at his jests but himself. On the contrary, the mirth of the
company is highly agreeable to him, and he regards this
correspondence of their sentiments with his own as the greatest
applause. | |
I.I.14 |
|
Neither does his pleasure seem to arise altogether from the
additional vivacity which his mirth may receive from sympathy with
theirs, nor his pain from the disappointment he meets with when he
misses this pleasure; though both the one and the other, no doubt,
do in some measure. When we have read a book or poem so often that
we can no longer find any amusement in reading it by ourselves, we
can still take pleasure in reading it to a companion. To him it
has all the graces of novelty; we enter into the surprise and
admiration which it naturally excites in him, but which it is no
longer capable of exciting in us; we consider all the ideas which
it presents rather in the light in which they appear to him, than
in that in which they appear to ourselves, and we are amused by
sympathy with his amusement which thus enlivens our own. On the
contrary, we should be vexed if he did not seem to be entertained
with it, and we could no longer take any pleasure in reading it to
him. It is the same case here. The mirth of the company, no doubt,
enlivens our own mirth, and their silence, no doubt, disappoints
us. But though this may contribute both to the pleasure which we
derive from the one, and to the pain which we feel from the other,
it is by no means the sole cause of either; and this
correspondence of the sentiments of others with our own appears to
be a cause of pleasure, and the want of it a cause of pain, which
cannot be accounted for in this manner. The sympathy, which my
friends express with my joy, might, indeed, give me pleasure by
enlivening that joy: but that which they express with my grief
could give me none, if it served only to enliven that grief.
Sympathy, however, enlivens joy and alleviates grief. It enlivens
joy by presenting another source of satisfaction; and it
alleviates grief by insinuating into the heart almost the only
agreeable sensation which it is at that time capable of receiving.
| |
I.I.15 |
|
It is to be observed accordingly, that we are still more
anxious to communicate to our friends our disagreeable than our
agreeable passions, that we derive still more satisfaction from
their sympathy with the former than from that with the latter, and
that we are still more shocked by the want of it.
| |
I.I.16 |
|
How are the unfortunate relieved when they have found out a
person to whom they can communicate the cause of their sorrow?
Upon his sympathy they seem to disburthen themselves of a part of
their distress: he is not improperly said to share it with them.
He not only feels a sorrow of the same kind with that which they
feel, but as if he had derived a part of it to himself, what he
feels seems to alleviate the weight of what they feel. Yet by
relating their misfortunes they in some measure renew their grief.
They awaken in their memory the remembrance of those circumstances
which occasioned their affliction. Their tears accordingly flow
faster than before, and they are apt to abandon themselves to all
the weakness of sorrow. They take pleasure, however, in all this,
and, it is evident, are sensibly relieved by it; because the
sweetness of his sympathy more than compensates the bitterness of
that sorrow, which, in order to excite this sympathy, they had
thus enlivened and renewed. The cruelest insult, on the contrary,
which can be offered to the unfortunate, is to appear to make
light of their calamities. To seem not to be affected with the joy
of our companions is but want of politeness; but not to wear a
serious countenance when they tell us their afflictions, is real
and gross inhumanity. | |
I.I.17 |
|
Love is an agreeable; resentment, a disagreeable passion; and
accordingly we are not half so anxious that our friends should
adopt our friendships, as that they should enter into our
resentments. We can forgive them though they seem to be little
affected with the favours which we may have received, but lose all
patience if they seem indifferent about the injuries which may
have been done to us: nor are we half so angry with them for not
entering into our gratitude, as for not sympathizing with our
resentment. They can easily avoid being friends to our friends,
but can hardly avoid being enemies to those with whom we are at
variance. We seldom resent their being at enmity with the first,
though upon that account we may sometimes affect to make an
awkward quarrel with them; but we quarrel with them in good
earnest if they live in friendship with the last. The agreeable
passions of love and joy can satisfy and support the heart without
any auxiliary pleasure. The bitter and painful emotions of grief
and resentment more strongly require the healing consolation of
sympathy. | |
I.I.18 |
|
As the person who is principally interested in any event is
pleased with our sympathy, and hurt by the want of it, so we, too,
seem to be pleased when we are able to sympathize with him, and to
be hurt when we are unable to do so. We run not only to
congratulate the successful, but to condole with the afflicted;
and the pleasure which we find in the conversation of one whom in
all the passions of his heart we can entirely sympathize with,
seems to do more than compensate the painfulness of that sorrow
with which the view of his situation affects us. On the contrary,
it is always disagreeable to feel that we cannot sympathize with
him, and instead of being pleased with this exemption from
sympathetic pain, it hurts us to find that we cannot share his
uneasiness. If we hear a person loudly lamenting his misfortunes,
which, however, upon bringing the case home to ourselves, we feel,
can produce no such violent effect upon us, we are shocked at his
grief; and, because we cannot enter into it, call it pusillanimity
and weakness. It gives us the spleen, on the other hand, to see
another too happy or too much elevated, as we call it, with any
little piece of good fortune. We are disobliged even with his joy;
and, because we cannot go along with it, call it levity and folly.
We are even put out of humour if our companion laughs louder or
longer at a joke than we think it deserves; that is, than we feel
that we ourselves could laugh at it. | |
I.I.19 |
|
Chapter III - Of the manner in which we judge of the
propriety or impropriety of the affections of other men, by their
concord or dissonance with our own.
| |
|
When the original passions of the person principally concerned
are in perfect concord with the sympathetic emotions of the
spectator, they necessarily appear to this last just and proper,
and suitable to their objects; and, on the contrary, when, upon
bringing the case home to himself, he finds that they do not
coincide with what he feels, they necessarily appear to him unjust
and improper, and unsuitable to the causes which excite them. To
approve of the passions of another, therefore, as suitable to
their objects, is the same thing as to observe that we entirely
sympathize with them; and not to approve of them as such, is the
same thing as to observe that we do not entirely sympathize with
them. The man who resents the injuries that have been done to me,
and observes that I resent them precisely as he does, necessarily
approves of my resentment. The man whose sympathy keeps time to my
grief, cannot but admit the reasonableness of my sorrow. He who
admires the same poem, or the same picture, and admires them
exactly as I do, must surely allow the justness of my admiration.
He who laughs at the same joke, and laughs along with me, cannot
well deny the propriety of my laughter. On the contrary, the
person who, upon these different occasions, either feels no such
emotion as that which I feel, or feels none that bears any
proportion to mine, cannot avoid disapproving my sentiments on
account of their dissonance with his own. If my animosity goes
beyond what the indignation of my friend can correspond to; if my
grief exceeds what his most tender compassion can go along with;
if my admiration is either too high or too low to tally with his
own; if I laugh loud and heartily when he only smiles, or, on the
contrary, only smile when he laughs loud and heartily; in all
these cases, as soon as he comes from considering the object, to
observe how I am affected by it, according as there is more or
less disproportion between his sentiments and mine, I must incur a
greater or less degree of his disapprobation: and upon all
occasions his own sentiments are the standards and measures by
which he judges of mine. | |
I.I.20 |
|
To approve of another man's opinions is to adopt those
opinions, and to adopt them is to approve of them. If the same
arguments which convince you convince me likewise, I necessarily
approve of your conviction; and if they do not, I necessarily
disapprove of it: neither can I possibly conceive that I should do
the one without the other. To approve or disapprove, therefore, of
the opinions of others is acknowledged, by every body, to mean no
more than to observe their agreement or disagreement with our own.
But this is equally the case with regard to our approbation or
disapprobation of the sentiments or passions of others.
| |
I.I.21 |
|
There are, indeed, some cases in which we seem to approve
without any sympathy or correspondence of sentiments, and in
which, consequently, the sentiment of approbation would seem to be
different from the perception of this coincidence. A little
attention, however, will convince us that even in these cases our
approbation is ultimately founded upon a sympathy or
correspondence of this kind. I shall give an instance in things of
a very frivolous nature, because in them the judgments of mankind
are less apt to be perverted by wrong systems. We may often
approve of a jest, and think the laughter of the company quite
just and proper, though we ourselves do not laugh, because,
perhaps, we are in a grave humour, or happen to have our attention
engaged with other objects. We have learned, however, from
experience, what sort of pleasantry is upon most occasions capable
of making us laugh, and we observe that this is one of that kind.
We approve, therefore, of the laughter of the company, and feel
that it is natural and suitable to its object; because, though in
our present mood we cannot easily enter into it, we are sensible
that upon most occasions we should very heartily join in it.
| |
I.I.22 |
|
The same thing often happens with regard to all the other
passions. A stranger passes by us in the street with all the marks
of the deepest affliction; and we are immediately told that he has
just received the news of the death of his father. It is
impossible that, in this case, we should not approve of his grief.
Yet it may often happen, without any defect of humanity on our
part, that, so far from entering into the violence of his sorrow,
we should scarce conceive the first movements of concern upon his
account. Both he and his father, perhaps, are entirely unknown to
us, or we happen to be employed about other things, and do not
take time to picture out in our imagination the different
circumstances of distress which must occur to him. We have
learned, however, from experience, that such a misfortune
naturally excites such a degree of sorrow, and we know that if we
took time to consider his situation, fully and in all its parts,
we should, without doubt, most sincerely sympathize with him. It
is upon the consciousness of this conditional sympathy, that our
approbation of his sorrow is founded, even in those cases in which
that sympathy does not actually take place; and the general rules
derived from our preceding experience of what our sentiments would
commonly correspond with, correct upon this, as upon many other
occasions, the impropriety of our present emotions.
| |
I.I.23 |
|
The sentiment or affection of the heart from which any action
proceeds, and upon which its whole virtue or vice must ultimately
depend, may be considered under two different aspects, or in two
different relations; first, in relation to the cause which excites
it, or the motive which gives occasion to it; and secondly, in
relation to the end which it proposes, or the effect which it
tends to produce. | |
I.I.24 |
|
In the suitableness or unsuitableness, in the proportion or
disproportion which the affection seems to bear to the cause or
object which excites it, consists the propriety or impropriety,
the decency or ungracefulness of the consequent action.
| |
I.I.25 |
|
In the beneficial or hurtful nature of the effects which the
affection aims at, or tends to produce, consists the merit or
demerit of the action, the qualities by which it is entitled to
reward, or is deserving of punishment. | |
I.I.26 |
|
Philosophers have, of late years, considered chiefly the
tendency of affections, and have given little attention to the
relation which they stand in to the cause which excites them. In
common life, however, when we judge of any person's conduct, and
of the sentiments which directed it, we constantly consider them
under both these aspects. When we blame in another man the
excesses of love, of grief, of resentment, we not only consider
the ruinous effects which they tend to produce, but the little
occasion which was given for them. The merit of his favourite, we
say, is not so great, his misfortune is not so dreadful, his
provocation is not so extraordinary, as to justify so violent a
passion. We should have indulged, we say; perhaps, have approved
of the violence of his emotion, had the cause been in any respect
proportioned to it. | |
I.I.27 |
|
When we judge in this manner of any affection, as proportioned
or disproportioned to the cause which excites it, it is scarce
possible that we should make use of any other rule or canon but
the correspondent affection in ourselves. If, upon bringing the
case home to our own breast, we find that the sentiments which it
gives occasion to, coincide and tally with our own, we necessarily
approve of them as proportioned and suitable to their objects; if
otherwise, we necessarily disapprove of them, as extravagant and
out of proportion. | |
I.I.28 |
|
Every faculty in one man is the measure by which he judges of
the like faculty in another. I judge of your sight by my sight, of
your ear by my ear, of your reason by my reason, of your
resentment by my resentment, of your love by my love. I neither
have, nor can have, any other way of judging about them.
| |
I.I.29 |
|
Chapter IV - The same subject continued
| |
|
We may judge of the propriety or impropriety of the sentiments
of another person by their correspondence or disagreement with our
own, upon two different occasions; either, first, when the objects
which excite them are considered without any peculiar relation,
either to ourselves or to the person whose sentiments we judge of;
or, secondly, when they are considered as peculiarly affecting one
or other of us. | |
I.I.30 |
|
1. With regard to those objects which are considered without
any peculiar relation either to ourselves or to the person whose
sentiments we judge of; wherever his sentiments entirely
correspond with our own, we ascribe to him the qualities of taste
and good judgment. The beauty of a plain, the greatness of a
mountain, the ornaments of a building, the expression of a
picture, the composition of a discourse, the conduct of a third
person, the proportions of different quantities and numbers, the
various appearances which the great machine of the universe is
perpetually exhibiting, with the secret wheels and springs which
product them; all the general subjects of science and taste, are
what we and our companion regard as having no peculiar relation to
either of us. We both look at them from the same point of view,
and we have no occasion for sympathy, or for that imaginary change
of situations from which it arises, in order to produce, with
regard to these, the most perfect harmony of sentiments and
affections. If, notwithstanding, we are often differently
affected, it arises either from the different degrees of
attention, which our different habits of life allow us to give
easily to the several parts of those complex objects, or from the
different degrees of natural acuteness in the faculty of the mind
to which they are addressed. | |
I.I.31 |
|
When the sentiments of our companion coincide with our own in
things of this kind, which are obvious and easy, and in which,
perhaps, we never found a single person who differed from us,
though we, no doubt, must approve of them, yet he seems to deserve
no praise or admiration on account of them. But when they not only
coincide with our own, but lead and direct our own; when in
forming them he appears to have attended to many things which we
had overlooked, and to have adjusted them to all the various
circumstances of their objects; we not only approve of them, but
wonder and are surprised at their uncommon and unexpected
acuteness and comprehensiveness, and he appears to deserve a very
high degree of admiration and applause. For approbation heightened
by wonder and surprise, constitutes the sentiment which is
properly called admiration, and of which applause is the natural
expression. The decision of the man who judges that exquisite
beauty is preferable to the grossest deformity, or that twice two
are equal to four, must certainly be approved of by all the world,
but will not, surely, be much admired. It is the acute and
delicate discernment of the man of taste, who distinguishes the
minute, and scarce perceptible differences of beauty and
deformity; it is the comprehensive accuracy of the experienced
mathematician, who unravels, with ease, the most intricate and
perplexed proportions; it is the great leader in science and
taste, the man who directs and conducts our own sentiments, the
extent and superior justness of whose talents astonish us with
wonder and surprise, who excites our admiration, and seems to
deserve our applause: and upon this foundation is grounded the
greater part of the praise which is bestowed upon what are called
the intellectual virtues. | |
I.I.32 |
|
The utility of those qualities, it may be thought, is what
first recommends them to us; and, no doubt, the consideration of
this, when we come to attend to it, gives them a new value.
Originally, however, we approve of another man's judgment, not as
something useful, but as right, as accurate, as agreeable to truth
and reality: and it is evident we attribute those qualities to it
for no other reason but because we find that it agrees with our
own. Taste, in the same manner, is originally approved of, not as
useful, but as just, as delicate, and as precisely suited to its
object. The idea of the utility of all qualities of this kind, is
plainly an after-thought, and not what first recommends them to
our approbation. | |
I.I.33 |
|
2. With regard to those objects, which affect in a particular
manner either ourselves or the person whose sentiments we judge
of, it is at once more difficult to preserve this harmony and
correspondence, and at the same time, vastly more important. My
companion does not naturally look upon the misfortune that has
befallen me, or the injury that has been done me, from the same
point of view in which I consider them. They affect me much more
nearly. We do not view them from the same station, as we do a
picture, or a poem, or a system of philosophy, and are, therefore,
apt to be very differently affected by them. But I can much more
easily overlook the want of this correspondence of sentiments with
regard to such indifferent objects as concern neither me nor my
companion, than with regard to what interests me so much as the
misfortune that has befallen me, or the injury that has been done
me. Though you despise that picture, or that poem, or even that
system of philosophy, which I admire, there is little danger of
our quarrelling upon that account. Neither of us can reasonably be
much interested about them. They ought all of them to be matters
of great indifference to us both; so that, though our opinions may
be opposite, our affections may still be very nearly the same. But
it is quite otherwise with regard to those objects by which either
you or I are particularly affected. Though your judgments in
matters of speculation, though your sentiments in matters of
taste, are quite opposite to mine, I can easily overlook this
opposition; and if I have any degree of temper, I may still find
some entertainment in your conversation, even upon those very
subjects. But if you have either no fellow-feeling for the
misfortunes I have met with, or none that bears any proportion to
the grief which distracts me; or if you have either no indignation
at the injuries I have suffered, or none that bears any proportion
to the resentment which transports me, we can no longer converse
upon these subjects. We become intolerable to one another. I can
neither support your company, nor you mine. You are confounded at
my violence and passion, and I am enraged at your cold
insensibility and want of feeling. | |
I.I.34 |
|
In all such cases, that there may be some correspondence of
sentiments between the spectator and the person principally
concerned, the spectator must, first of all, endeavour, as much as
he can, to put himself in the situation of the other, and to bring
home to himself every little circumstance of distress which can
possibly occur to the sufferer. He must adopt the whole case of
his companion with all its minutest incidents; and strive to
render as perfect as possible, that imaginary change of situation
upon which his sympathy is founded. | |
I.I.35 |
|
After all this, however, the emotions of the spectator will
still be very apt to fall short of the violence of what is felt by
the sufferer. Mankind, though naturally sympathetic, never
conceive, for what has befallen another, that degree of passion
which naturally animates the person principally concerned. That
imaginary change of situation, upon which their sympathy is
founded, is but momentary. The thought of their own safety, the
thought that they themselves are not really the sufferers,
continually intrudes itself upon them; and though it does not
hinder them from conceiving a passion somewhat analogous to what
is felt by the sufferer, hinders them from conceiving any thing
that approaches to the same degree of violence. The person
principally concerned is sensible of this, and at the same time
passionately desires a more complete sympathy. He longs for that
relief which nothing can afford him but the entire concord of the
affections of the spectators with his own. To see the emotions of
their hearts, in every respect, beat time to his own, in the
violent and disagreeable passions, constitutes his sole
consolation. But he can only hope to obtain this by lowering his
passion to that pitch, in which the spectators are capable of
going along with him. He must flatten, if I may be allowed to say
so, the sharpness of its natural tone, in order to reduce it to
harmony and concord with the emotions of those who are about him.
What they feel, will, indeed, always be, in some respects,
different from what he feels, and compassion can never be exactly
the same with original sorrow; because the secret consciousness
that the change of situations, from which the sympathetic
sentiment arises, is but imaginary, not only lowers it in degree,
but, in some measure, varies it in kind, and gives it a quite
different modification. These two sentiments, however, may, it is
evident, have such a correspondence with one another, as is
sufficient for the harmony of society. Though they will never be
unisons, they may be concords, and this is all that is wanted or
required. | |
I.I.36 |
|
In order to produce this concord, as nature teaches the
spectators to assume the circumstances of the person principally
concerned, so she teaches this last in some measure to assume
those of the spectators. As they are continually placing
themselves in his situation, and thence conceiving emotions
similar to what he feels; so he is as constantly placing himself
in theirs, and thence conceiving some degree of that coolness
about his own fortune, with which he is sensible that they will
view it. As they are constantly considering what they themselves
would feel, if they actually were the sufferers, so he is as
constantly led to imagine in what manner he would be affected if
he was only one of the spectators of his own situation. As their
sympathy makes them look at it, in some measure, with his eyes, so
his sympathy makes him look at it, in some measure, with theirs,
especially when in their presence and acting under their
observation: and as the reflected passion, which he thus
conceives, is much weaker than the original one, it necessarily
abates the violence of what he felt before he came into their
presence, before he began to recollect in what manner they would
be affected by it, and to view his situation in this candid and
impartial light. | |
I.I.37 |
|
The mind, therefore, is rarely so disturbed, but that the
company of a friend will restore it to some degree of tranquillity
and sedateness. The breast is, in some measure, calmed and
composed the moment we come into his presence. We are immediately
put in mind of the light in which he will view our situation, and
we begin to view it ourselves in the same light; for the effect of
sympathy is instantaneous. We expect less sympathy from a common
acquaintance than from a friend: we cannot open to the former all
those little circumstances which we can unfold to the latter: we
assume, therefore, more tranquillity before him, and endeavour to
fix our thoughts upon those general outlines of our situation
which he is willing to consider. We expect still less sympathy
from an assembly of strangers, and we assume, therefore, still
more tranquillity before them, and always endeavour to bring down
our passion to that pitch, which the particular company we are in
may be expected to go along with. Nor is this only an assumed
appearance: for if we are at all masters of ourselves, the
presence of a mere acquaintance will really compose us, still more
than that of a friend; and that of an assembly of strangers still
more than that of an acquaintance. | |
I.I.38 |
|
Society and conversation, therefore, are the most powerful
remedies for restoring the mind to its tranquillity, if, at any
time, it has unfortunately lost it; as well as the best
preservatives of that equal and happy temper, which is so
necessary to self-satisfaction and enjoyment. Men of retirement
and speculation, who are apt to sit brooding at home over either
grief or resentment, though they may often have more humanity,
more generosity, and a nicer sense of honour, yet seldom possess
that equality of temper which is so common among men of the world.
| |
I.I.39 |
|
Chapter V - Of the amiable and respectable virtues
| |
|
Upon these two different efforts, upon that of the spectator to
enter into the sentiments of the person principally concerned, and
upon that of the person principally concerned, to bring down his
emotions to what the spectator can go along with, are founded two
different sets of virtues. The soft, the gentle, the amiable
virtues, the virtues of candid condescension and indulgent
humanity, are founded upon the one: the great, the awful and
respectable, the virtues of self-denial, of self-government, of
that command of the passions which subjects all the movements of
our nature to what our own dignity and honour, and the propriety
of our own conduct require, take their origin from the other.
| |
I.I.40 |
|
How amiable does he appear to be, whose sympathetic heart seems
to reecho all the sentiments of those with whom he converses, who
grieves for their calamities, who resents their injuries, and who
rejoices at their good fortune! When we bring home to ourselves
the situation of his companions, we enter into their gratitude,
and feel what consolation they must derive from the tender
sympathy of so affectionate a friend. And for a contrary reason,
how disagreeable does he appear to be, whose hard and obdurate
heart feels for himself only, but is altogether insensible to the
happiness or misery of others! We enter, in this case too, into
the pain which his presence must give to every mortal with whom he
converses, to those especially with whom we are most apt to
sympathize, the unfortunate and the injured.
| |
I.I.41 |
|
On the other hand, what noble propriety and grace do we feel in
the conduct of those who, in their own case, exert that
recollection and self-command which constitute the dignity of
every passion, and which bring it down to what others can enter
into! We are disgusted with that clamorous grief, which, without
any delicacy, calls upon our compassion with sighs and tears and
importunate lamentations. But we reverence that reserved, that
silent and majestic sorrow, which discovers itself only in the
swelling of the eyes, in the quivering of the lips and cheeks, and
in the distant, but affecting, coldness of the whole behaviour. It
imposes the like silence upon us. We regard it with respectful
attention, and watch with anxious concern over our whole
behaviour, lest by any impropriety we should disturb that
concerted tranquillity, which it requires so great an effort to
support. | |
I.I.42 |
|
The insolence and brutality of anger, in the same manner, when
we indulge its fury without check or restraint, is, of all
objects, the most detestable. But we admire that noble and
generous resentment which governs its pursuit of the greatest
injuries, not by the rage which they are apt to excite in the
breast of the sufferer, but by the indignation which they
naturally call forth in that of the impartial spectator; which
allows no word, no gesture, to escape it beyond what this more
equitable sentiment would dictate; which never, even in thought,
attempts any greater vengeance, nor desires to inflict any greater
punishment, than what every indifferent person would rejoice to
see executed. | |
I.I.43 |
|
And hence it is, that to feel much for others and little for
ourselves, that to restrain our selfish, and to indulge our
benevolent affections, constitutes the perfection of human nature;
and can alone produce among mankind that harmony of sentiments and
passions in which consists their whole grace and propriety. As to
love our neighbour as we love ourselves is the great law of
Christianity, so it is the great precept of nature to love
ourselves only as we love our neighbour, or what comes to the same
thing, as our neighbour is capable of loving us.
| |
I.I.44 |
|
As taste and good judgment, when they are considered as
qualities which deserve praise and admiration, are supposed to
imply a delicacy of sentiment and an acuteness of understanding
not commonly to be met with; so the virtues of sensibility and
self-command are not apprehended to consist in the ordinary, but
in the uncommon degrees of those qualities. The amiable virtue of
humanity requires, surely, a sensibility, much beyond what is
possessed by the rude vulgar of mankind. The great and exalted
virtue of magnanimity undoubtedly demands much more than that
degree of self-command, which the weakest of mortals is capable of
exerting. As in the common degree of the intellectual qualities,
there is no abilities; so in the common degree of the moral, there
is no virtue. Virtue is excellence, something uncommonly great and
beautiful, which rises far above what is vulgar and ordinary. The
amiable virtues consist in that degree of sensibility which
surprises by its exquisite and unexpected delicacy and tenderness.
The awful and respectable, in that degree of self-command which
astonishes by its amazing superiority over the most ungovernable
passions of human nature. | |
I.I.45 |
|
There is, in this respect, a considerable difference between
virtue and mere propriety; between those qualities and actions
which deserve to be admired and celebrated, and those which simply
deserve to be approved of. Upon many occasions, to act with the
most perfect propriety, requires no more than that common and
ordinary degree of sensibility or self-command which the most
worthless of mankind are possest of, and sometimes even that
degree is not necessary. Thus, to give a very low instance, to eat
when we are hungry, is certainly, upon ordinary occasions,
perfectly right and proper, and cannot miss being approved of as
such by every body. Nothing, however, could be more absurd than to
say it was virtuous. | |
I.I.46 |
|
On the contrary, there may frequently be a considerable degree
of virtue in those actions which fall short of the most perfect
propriety; because they may still approach nearer to perfection
than could well be expected upon occasions in which it was so
extremely difficult to attain it: and this is very often the case
upon those occasions which require the greatest exertions of
self-command. There are some situations which bear so hard upon
human nature, that the greatest degree of self-government, which
can belong to so imperfect a creature as man, is not able to
stifle, altogether, the voice of human weakness, or reduce the
violence of the passions to that pitch of moderation, in which the
impartial spectator can entirely enter into them. Though in those
cases, therefore, the behaviour of the sufferer fall short of the
most perfect propriety, it may still deserve some applause, and
even in a certain sense, may be denominated virtuous. It may still
manifest an effort of generosity and magnanimity of which the
greater part of men are incapable; and though it fails of absolute
perfection, it may be a much nearer approximation towards
perfection, than what, upon such trying occasions, is commonly
either to be found or to be expected. | |
I.I.47 |
|
In cases of this kind, when we are determining the degree of
blame or applause which seems due to any action, we very
frequently make use of two different standards. The first is the
idea of complete propriety and perfection, which, in those
difficult situations, no human conduct ever did, or ever can come,
up to; and in comparison with which the actions of all men must
for ever appear blameable and imperfect. The second is the idea of
that degree of proximity or distance from this complete
perfection, which the actions of the greater part of men commonly
arrive at. Whatever goes beyond this degree, how far soever it may
be removed from absolute perfection, seems to deserve applause;
and whatever falls short of it, to deserve blame.
| |
I.I.48 |
|
It is in the same manner that we judge of the productions of
all the arts which address themselves to the imagination. When a
critic examines the work of any of the great masters in poetry or
painting, he may sometimes examine it by an idea of perfection, in
his own mind, which neither that nor any other human work will
ever come up to; and as long as he compares it with this standard,
he can see nothing in it but faults and imperfections. But when he
comes to consider the rank which it ought to hold among other
works of the same kind, he necessarily compares it with a very
different standard, the common degree of excellence which is
usually attained in this particular art; and when he judges of it
by this new measure, it may often appear to deserve the highest
applause, upon account of its approaching much nearer to
perfection than the greater part of those works which can be
brought into competition with it. | |
I.I.49 |
|
Section II - Of the Degrees of the different Passions which
are consistent with Propriety
| |
|
The
propriety of every passion excited by objects peculiarly related
to ourselves, the pitch which the spectator can go along with,
must lie, it is evident, in a certain mediocrity. If the passion
is too high, or if it is too low, he cannot enter into it. Grief
and resentment for private misfortunes and injuries may easily,
for example, be too high, and in the greater part of mankind they
are so. They may likewise, though this more rarely happens, be too
low. We denominate the excess, weakness and fury: and we call the
defect stupidity, insensibility, and want of spirit. We can enter
into neither of them, but are astonished and confounded to see
them. | |
I.II.1 |
|
This mediocrity, however, in which the point of propriety
consists, is different in different passions. It is high in some,
and low in others. There are some passions which it is indecent to
express very strongly, even upon those occasions, in which it is
acknowledged that we cannot avoid feeling them in the highest
degree. And there are others of which the strongest expressions
are upon many occasions extremely graceful, even though the
passions themselves do not, perhaps, arise so necessarily. The
first are those passions with which, for certain reasons, there is
little or no sympathy: the second are those with which, for other
reasons, there is the greatest. And if we consider all the
different passions of human nature, we shall find that they are
regarded as decent, or indecent, just in proportion as mankind are
more or less disposed to sympathize with them.
| |
I.II.2 |
|
Chapter I - Of the Passions which take their origin from the body
| |
|
1. It is indecent to express any strong degree of those
passions which arise from a certain situation or disposition of
the body; because the company, not being in the same disposition,
cannot be expected to sympathize with them. Violent hunger, for
example, though upon many occasions not only natural, but
unavoidable, is always indecent, and to eat voraciously is
universally regarded as a piece of ill manners. There is, however,
some degree of sympathy, even with hunger. It is agreeable to see
our companions eat with a good appetite, and all expressions of
loathing are offensive. The disposition of body which is habitual
to a man in health, makes his stomach easily keep time, if I may
be allowed so coarse an expression, with the one, and not with the
other. We can sympathize with the distress it in the which
excessive hunger occasions when we read the description of journal
of a siege, or of a sea voyage. We imagine ourselves in the
situation of the sufferers, and thence readily conceive the grief,
the fear and consternation, which must necessarily distract them.
We feel, ourselves, some degree of those passions, and therefore
sympathize with them: but as we do not grow hungry by reading the
description, we cannot properly, even in this case, be said to
sympathize with their hunger. | |
I.II.3 |
|
It is the same case with the passion by which Nature unites the
two sexes. Though naturally the most furious of all the passions,
all strong expressions of it are upon every occasion indecent,
even between persons in whom its most complete indulgence is
acknowledged by all laws, both human and divine, to be perfectly
innocent. There seems, however, to be some degree of sympathy even
with this passion. To talk to a woman as we would to a man is
improper: it is expected that their company should inspire us with
more gaiety, more pleasantry, and more attention; and an intire
insensibility to the fair sex, renders a man contemptible in some
measure even to the men. | |
I.II.4 |
|
Such is our aversion for all the appetites which take their
origin from the body: all strong expressions of them are loathsome
and disagreeable. According to some ancient philosophers, these
are the passions which we share in common with the brutes, and
which having no connexion with the characteristical qualities of
human nature, are upon that account beneath its dignity. But there
are many other passions which we share in common with the brutes,
such as resentment, natural affection, even gratitude, which do
not, upon that account, appear to be so brutal. The true cause of
the peculiar disgust which we conceive for the appetites of the
body when we see them in other men, is that we cannot enter into
them. To the person himself who feels them, as soon as they are
gratified, the object that excited them ceases to be agreeable:
even its presence often becomes offensive to him; he looks round
to no purpose for the charm which transported him the moment
before, and he can now as little enter into his own passion as
another person. When we have dined, we order the covers to be
removed; and we should treat in the same manner the objects of the
most ardent and passionate desires, if they were the objects of no
other passions but those which take their origin from the body.
| |
I.II.5 |
|
In the command of those appetites of the body consists that
virtue which is properly called temperance. To restrain them
within those bounds, which regard to health and fortune
prescribes, is the part of prudence. But to confine them within
those limits, which grace, which propriety, which delicacy, and
modesty require, is the office of temperance.
| |
I.II.6 |
|
2. It is for the same reason that to cry out with bodily pain,
how intolerable soever, appears always unmanly and unbecoming.
There is, however, a good deal of sympathy even with bodily pain.
If, as has already been observed, I see a stroke aimed, and just
ready to fall upon the leg, or arm, of another person, I naturally
shrink and draw back my own leg, or my own arm: and when it does
fall, I feel it in some measure, and am hurt by it as well as the
sufferer. My hurt, however, is, no doubt, excessively slight, and,
upon that account, if he makes any violent out-cry, as I cannot go
along with him, I never fail to despise him. And this is the case
of all the passions which take their origin from the body: they
excite either no sympathy at all, or such a degree of it, as is
altogether disproportioned to the violence of what is felt by the
sufferer. | |
I.II.7 |
|
It is quite otherwise with those passions which take their
origin from the imagination. The frame of my body can be but
little affected by the alterations which are brought about upon
that of my companion: but my imagination is more ductile, and more
readily assumes, if I may say so, the shape and configuration of
the imaginations of those with whom I am familiar. A
disappointment in love, or ambition, will, upon this account, call
forth more sympathy than the greatest bodily evil. Those passions
arise altogether from the imagination. The person who has lost his
whole fortune, if he is in health, feels nothing in his body. What
he suffers is from the imagination only, which represents to him
the loss of his dignity, neglect from his friends, contempt from
his enemies, dependance, want, and misery, coming fast upon him;
and we sympathize with him more strongly upon this account,
because our imaginations can more readily mould themselves upon
his imagination, than our bodies can mould themselves upon his
body. | |
I.II.8 |
|
The loss of a leg may generally be regarded as a more real
calamity than the loss of a mistress. It would be a ridiculous
tragedy, however, of which the catastrophe was to turn upon a loss
of that kind. A misfortune of the other kind, how frivolous soever
it may appear to be, has given occasion to many a fine one.
| |
I.II.9 |
|
Nothing is so soon forgot as pain. The moment it is gone the
whole agony of it is over, and the thought of it can no longer
give us any sort of disturbance. We ourselves cannot then enter
into the anxiety and anguish which we had before conceived. An
unguarded word from a friend will occasion a more durable
uneasiness. The agony which this creates is by no means over with
the word. What at first disturbs us is not the object of the
senses, but the idea of the imagination. As it is an idea,
therefore, which occasions our uneasiness, till time and other
accidents have in some measure effaced it from our memory, the
imagination continues to fret and rankle within, from the thought
of it. | |
I.II.10 |
|
Pain never calls forth any very lively sympathy unless it is
accompanied with danger. We sympathize with the fear, though not
with the agony of the sufferer. Fear, however, is a passion
derived altogether from the imagination, which represents, with an
uncertainty and fluctuation that increases our anxiety, not what
we really feel, but what we may hereafter possibly suffer. The
gout or the tooth-ach, though exquisitely painful, excite very
little sympathy; more dangerous diseases, though accompanied with
very little pain, excite the highest. | |
I.II.11 |
|
Some people faint and grow sick at the sight of a chirurgical
operation, and that bodily pain which is occasioned by tearing the
flesh, seems, in them, to excite the most excessive sympathy. We
conceive in a much more lively and distinct manner the pain which
proceeds from an external cause, than we do that which arises from
an internal disorder. I can scarce form an idea of the agonies of
my neighbour when he is tortured with the gout, or the stone; but
I have the clearest conception of what he must suffer from an
incision, a wound, or a fracture. The chief cause, however, why
such objects produce such violent effects upon us, is their
novelty. One who has been witness to a dozen dissections, and as
many amputations, sees, ever after, all operations of this kind
with great indifference, and often with perfect insensibility.
Though we have read or seen represented more than five hundred
tragedies, we shall seldom feel so entire an abatement of our
sensibility to the objects which they represent to us.
| |
I.II.12 |
|
In some of the Greek tragedies there is an attempt to excite
compassion, by the representation of the agonies of bodily pain.
Philoctetes cries out and faints from the extremity of his
sufferings. Hippolytus and Hercules are both introduced as
expiring under the severest tortures, which, it seems, even the
fortitude of Hercules was incapable of supporting. In all these
cases, however, it is not the pain which interests us, but some
other circumstances. It is not the sore foot, but the solitude, of
Philoctetes which affects us, and diffuses over that charming
tragedy, that romantic wildness, which is so agreeable to the
imagination. The agonies of Hercules and Hippolytus are
interesting only because we foresee that death is to be the
consequence. If those heroes were to recover, we should think the
representation of their sufferings perfectly ridiculous. What a
tragedy would that be of which the distress consisted in a colic.
Yet no pain is more exquisite. These attempts to excite compassion
by the representation of bodily pain, may be regarded as among the
greatest breaches of decorum of which the Greek theatre has set
the example. | |
I.II.13 |
|
The little sympathy which we feel with bodily pain is the
foundation of the propriety of constancy and patience in enduring
it. The man, who under the severest tortures allows no weakness to
escape him, vents no groan, gives way to no passion which we do
not entirely enter into, commands our highest admiration. His
firmness enables him to keep time with our indifference and
insensibility. We admire and entirely go along with the
magnanimous effort which he makes for this purpose. We approve of
his behaviour, and from our experience of the common weakness of
human nature, we are surprised, and wonder how he should be able
to act so as to deserve approbation. Approbation, mixed and
animated by wonder and surprise, constitutes the sentiment which
is properly called admiration, of which, applause is the natural
expression, as has already been observed.
| |
I.II.14 |
|
Chapter II - Of those Passions which take their origin from
a particular turn or habit of the Imagination
| |
|
Even of the passions derived from the imagination, those which
take their origin from a peculiar turn or habit it has acquired,
though they may be acknowledged to be perfectly natural, are,
however, but little sympathized with. The imaginations of mankind,
not having acquired that particular turn, cannot enter into them;
and such passions, though they may be allowed to be almost
unavoidable in some part of life, are always, in some measure,
ridiculous. This is the case with that strong attachment which
naturally grows up between two persons of different sexes, who
have long fixed their thoughts upon one another. Our imagination
not having run in the same channel with that of the lover, we
cannot enter into the eagerness of his emotions. If our friend has
been injured, we readily sympathize with his resentment, and grow
angry with the very person with whom he is angry. If he has
received a benefit, we readily enter into his gratitude, and have
a very high sense of the merit of his benefactor. But if he is in
love, though we may think his passion just as reasonable as any of
the kind, yet we never think ourselves bound to conceive a passion
of the same kind, and for the same person for whom he has
conceived it. The passion appears to every body, but the man who
feels it, entirely disproportioned to the value of the object; and
love, though it is pardoned in a certain age because we know it is
natural, is always laughed at, because we cannot enter into it.
All serious and strong expressions of it appear ridiculous to a
third person; and though a lover may be good company to his
mistress, he is so to nobody else. He himself is sensible of this;
and as long as he continues in his sober senses, endeavours to
treat his own passion with raillery and ridicule. It is the only
style in which we care to hear of it; because it is the only style
in which we ourselves are disposed to talk of it. We grow weary of
the grave, pedantic, and long-sentenced love of Cowley and
Petrarca, who never have done with exaggerating the violence of
their attachments; but the gaiety of Ovid, and the gallantry of
Horace, are always agreeable. | |
I.II.15 |
|
But though we feel no proper sympathy with an attachment of
this kind, though we never approach even in imagination towards
conceiving a passion for that particular person, yet as we either
have conceived, or may be disposed to conceive, passions of the
same kind, we readily enter into those high hopes of happiness
which are proposed from its gratification, as well as into that
exquisite distress which is feared from its disappointment. It
interests us not as a passion, but as a situation that gives
occasion to other passions which interest us; to hope, to fear,
and to distress of every kind: in the same manner as in a
description of a sea voyage, it is not the hunger which interests
us, but the distress which that hunger occasions. Though we do not
properly enter into the attachment of the lover, we readily go
along with those expectations of romantic happiness which he
derives from it. We feel how natural it is for the mind, in a
certain situation, relaxed with indolence, and fatigued with the
violence of desire, to long for serenity and quiet, to hope to
find them in the gratification of that passion which distracts it,
and to frame to itself the idea of that life of pastoral
tranquillity and retirement which the elegant, the tender, and the
passionate Tibullus takes so much pleasure in describing; a life
like what the poets describe in the Fortunate Islands, a life of
friendship, liberty, and repose; free from labour, and from care,
and from all the turbulent passions which attend them. Even scenes
of this kind interest us most, when they are painted rather as
what is hoped, than as what is enjoyed. The grossness of that
passion, which mixes with, and is, perhaps, the foundation of
love, disappears when its gratification is far off and at a
distance; but renders the whole offensive, when described as what
is immediately possessed. The happy passion, upon this account,
interests us much less than the fearful and the melancholy. We
tremble for whatever can disappoint such natural and agreeable
hopes: and thus enter into all the anxiety, and concern, and
distress of the lover. | |
I.II.16 |
|
Hence it is, that, in some modern tragedies and romances, this
passion appears so wonderfully interesting. It is not so much the
love of Castalio and Monimia which attaches us in the Orphan, as
the distress which that love occasions. The author who should
introduce two lovers, in a scene of perfect security, expressing
their mutual fondness for one another, would excite laughter, and
not sympathy. If a scene of this kind is ever admitted into a
tragedy, it is always, in some measure, improper, and is endured,
not from any sympathy with the passion that is expressed in it,
but from concern for the dangers and difficulties with which the
audience foresee that its gratification is likely to be attended.
| |
I.II.17 |
|
The reserve which the laws of society impose upon the fair sex,
with regard to this weakness, renders it more peculiarly
distressful in them, and, upon that very account, more deeply
interesting. We are charmed with the love of Phaedra, as it is
expressed in the French tragedy of that name, notwithstanding all
the extravagance and guilt which attend it. That very extravagance
and guilt may be said, in some measure, to recommend it to us. Her
fear, her shame, her remorse, her horror, her despair, become
thereby more natural and interesting. All the secondary passions,
if I may be allowed to call them so, which arise from the
situation of love, become necessarily more furious and violent;
and it is with these secondary passions only that we can properly
be said to sympathize. | |
I.II.18 |
|
Of all the passions, however, which are so extravagantly
disproportioned to the value of their objects, love is the only
one that appears, even to the weakest minds, to have any thing in
it that is either graceful or agreeable. In itself, first of all,
though it may be ridiculous, it is not naturally odious; and
though its consequences are often fatal and dreadful, its
intentions are seldom mischievous. And then, though there is
little propriety in the passion itself, there is a good deal in
some of those which always accompany it. There is in love a strong
mixture of humanity, generosity, kindness, friendship, esteem;
passions with which, of all others, for reasons which shall be
explained immediately, we have the greatest propensity to
sympathize, even notwithstanding we are sensible that they are, in
some measure, excessive. The sympathy which we feel with them,
renders the passion which they accompany less disagreeable, and
supports it in our imagination, notwithstanding all the vices
which commonly go along with it; though in the one sex it
necessarily leads to the last ruin and infamy; and though in the
other, where it is apprehended to be least fatal, it is almost
always attended with an incapacity for labour, a neglect of duty,
a contempt of fame, and even of common reputation. Notwithstanding
all this, the degree of sensibility and generosity with which it
is supposed to be accompanied, renders it to many the object of
vanity. and they are fond of appearing capable of feeling what
would do them no honour if they had really felt it.
| |
I.II.19 |
|
It is for a reason of the same kind, that a certain reserve is
necessary when we talk of our own friends, our own studies, our
own professions. All these are objects which we cannot expect
should interest our companions in the same degree in which they
interest us. And it is for want of this reserve, that the one half
of mankind make bad company to the other. A philosopher is company
to a philosopher, only. the member of a club, to his own little
knot of companions. | |
I.II.20 |
|
Chapter III - Of the unsocial Passions
| |
|
There is another set of passions, which, though derived from
the imagination, yet before we can enter into them, or regard them
as graceful or becoming, must always be brought down to a pitch
much lower than that to which undisciplined nature would raise
them. These are, hatred and resentment, with all their different
modifications. With regard to all such passions, our sympathy is
divided between the person who feels them, and the person who is
the object of them. The interests of these two are directly
opposite. What our sympathy with the person who feels them would
prompt us to wish for, our fellow-feeling with the other would
lead us to fear. As they are both men, we are concerned for both,
and our fear for what the one may suffer, damps our resentment for
what the other has suffered. Our sympathy, therefore, with the man
who has received the provocation, necessarily falls short of the
passion which naturally animates him, not only upon account of
those general causes which render all sympathetic passions
inferior to the original ones, but upon account of that particular
cause which is peculiar to itself, our opposite sympathy with
another person. Before resentment, therefore, can become graceful
and agreeable, it must be more humbled and brought down below that
pitch to which it would naturally rise, than almost any other
passion. | |
I.II.21 |
|
Mankind, at the same time, have a very strong sense of the
injuries that are done to another. The villain, in a tragedy or
romance, is as much the object of our indignation, as the hero is
that of our sympathy and affection. We detest Iago as much as we
esteem Othello; and delight as much in the punishment of the one,
as we are grieved at the distress of the other. But though mankind
have so strong a fellow-feeling with the injuries that are done to
their brethren, they do not always resent them the more that the
sufferer appears to resent them. Upon most occasions, the greater
his patience, his mildness, his humanity, provided it does not
appear that he wants spirit, or that fear was the motive of his
forbearance, the higher their resentment against the person who
injured him. The amiableness of the character exasperates their
sense of the atrocity of the injury. | |
I.II.22 |
|
Those passions, however, are regarded as necessary parts of the
character of human nature. A person becomes contemptible who
tamely sits still, and submits to insults, without attempting
either to repel or to revenge them. We cannot enter into his
indifference and insensibility. we call his behaviour
mean-spiritedness, and are as really provoked by it as by the
insolence of his adversary. Even the mob are enraged to see any
man submit patiently to affronts and ill usage. They desire to see
this insolence resented, and resented by the person who suffers
from it. They cry to him with fury, to defend, or to revenge
himself. If his indignation rouses at last, they heartily applaud,
and sympathize with it. It enlivens their own indignation against
his enemy, whom they rejoice to see him attack in his turn, and
are as really gratified by his revenge, provided it is not
immoderate, as if the injury had been done to themselves.
| |
I.II.23 |
|
But though the utility of those passions to the individual, by
rendering it dangerous to insult or injure him, be acknowledged;
and though their utility to the public, as the guardians of
justice, and of the equality of its administration, be not less
considerable, as shall be shewn hereafter; yet there is still
something disagreeable in the passions themselves, which makes the
appearance of them in other men the natural object of our
aversion. The expression of anger towards any body present, if it
exceeds a bare intimation that we are sensible of his ill usage,
is regarded not only as an insult to that particular person, but
as a rudeness to the whole company. Respect for them ought to have
restrained us from giving way to so boisterous and offensive an
emotion. It is the remote effects of these passions which are
agreeable; the immediate effects are mischief to the person
against whom they are directed. But it is the immediate, and not
the remote effects of objects which render them agreeable or
disagreeable to the imagination. A prison is certainly more useful
to the public than a palace; and the person who founds the one is
generally directed by a much juster spirit of patriotism, than he
who builds the other. But the immediate effects of a prison, the
confinement of the wretches shut up in it, are disagreeable; and
the imagination either does not take time to trace out the remote
ones, or sees them at too great a distance to be much affected by
them. A prison, therefore, will always be a disagreeable object;
and the fitter it is for the purpose for which it was intended, it
will be the more so. A palace, on the contrary, will always be
agreeable; yet its remote effects may often be inconvenient to the
public. It may serve to promote luxury, and set the example of the
dissolution of manners. Its immediate effects, however, the
conveniency, the pleasure, and the gaiety of the people who live
in it, being all agreeable, and suggesting to the imagination a
thousand agreeable ideas, that faculty generally rests upon them,
and seldom goes further in tracing its more distant consequences.
Trophies of the instruments of music or of agriculture, imitated
in painting or in stucco, make a common and an agreeable ornament
of our halls and dining-rooms. A trophy of the same kind, composed
of the instruments of surgery, of dissecting and
amputation-knives, of saws for cutting the bones, of trepanning
instruments, etc. would be absurd and shocking. Instruments of
surgery, however, are always more finely polished, and generally
more nicely adapted to the purposes for which they are intended,
than instruments of agriculture. The remote effects of them too,
the health of the patient, is agreeable; yet as the immediate
effect of them is pain and suffering, the sight of them always
displeases us. Instruments of war are agreeable, though their
immediate effect may seem to be in the same manner pain and
suffering. But then it is the pain and suffering of our enemies,
with whom we have no sympathy. With regard to us, they are
immediately connected with the agreeable ideas of courage,
victory, and honour. They are themselves, therefore, supposed to
make one of the noblest parts of dress, and the imitation of them
one of the finest ornaments of architecture. It is the same case
with the qualities of the mind. The ancient stoics were of
opinion, that as the world was governed by the all-ruling
providence of a wise, powerful, and good God, every single event
ought to be regarded, as making a necessary part of the plan of
the universe, and as tending to promote the general order and
happiness of the whole: that the vices and follies of mankind,
therefore, made as necessary a part of this plan as their wisdom
or their virtue; and by that eternal art which educes good from
ill, were made to tend equally to the prosperity and perfection of
the great system of nature. No speculation of this kind, however,
how deeply soever it might be rooted in the mind, could diminish
our natural abhorrence for vice, whose immediate effects are so
destructive, and whose remote ones are too distant to be traced by
the imagination. | |
I.II.24 |
|
It is the same case with those passions we have been just now
considering. Their immediate effects are so disagreeable, that
even when they are most justly provoked, there is still something
about them which disgusts us. These, therefore, are the only
passions of which the expressions, as I formerly observed, do not
dispose and prepare us to sympathize with them, before we are
informed of the cause which excites them. The plaintive voice of
misery, when heard at a distance, will not allow us to be
indifferent about the person from whom it comes. As soon as it
strikes our ear, it interests us in his fortune, and, if
continued, forces us almost involuntarily to fly to his
assistance. The sight of a smiling countenance, in the same
manner, elevates even the pensive into that gay and airy mood,
which disposes him to sympathize with, and share the joy which it
expresses; and he feels his heart, which with thought and care was
before that shrunk and depressed, instantly expanded and elated.
But it is quite otherwise with the expressions of hatred and
resentment. The hoarse, boisterous, and discordant voice of anger,
when heard at a distance, inspires us either with fear or
aversion. We do not fly towards it, as to one who cries out with
pain and agony. Women, and men of weak nerves, tremble and are
overcome with fear, though sensible that themselves are not the
objects of the anger. They conceive fear, however, by putting
themselves in the situation of the person who is so. Even those of
stouter hearts are disturbed; not indeed enough to make them
afraid, but enough to make them angry; for anger is the passion
which they would feel in the situation of the other person. It is
the same case with hatred. Mere expressions of spite inspire it
against nobody, but the man who uses them. Both these passions are
by nature the objects of our aversion. Their disagreeable and
boisterous appearance never excites, never prepares, and often
disturbs our sympathy. Grief does not more powerfully engage and
attract us to the person in whom we observe it, than these, while
we are ignorant of their cause, disgust and detach us from him. It
was, it seems, the intention of Nature, that those rougher and
more unamiable emotions, which drive men from one another, should
be less easily and more rarely communicated.
| |
I.II.25 |
|
When music imitates the modulations of grief or joy, it either
actually inspires us with those passions, or at least puts us in
the mood which disposes us to conceive them. But when it imitates
the notes of anger, it inspires us with fear. Joy, grief, love,
admiration, devotion, are all of them passions which are naturally
musical. Their natural tones are all soft, clear, and melodious;
and they naturally express themselves in periods which are
distinguished by regular pauses, and which upon that account are
easily adapted to the regular returns of the correspondent airs of
a tune. The voice of anger, on the contrary, and of all the
passions which are akin to it, is harsh and discordant. Its
periods too are all irregular, sometimes very long, and sometimes
very short, and distinguished by no regular pauses. It is with
difficulty, therefore, that music can imitate any of those
passions; and the music which does imitate them is not the most
agreeable. A whole entertainment may consist, without any
impropriety, of the imitation of the social and agreeable
passions. It would be a strange entertainment which consisted
altogether of the imitations of hatred and resentment.
| |
I.II.26 |
|
If those passions are disagreeable to the spectator, they are
not less so to the person who feels them. Hatred and anger are the
greatest poison to the happiness of a good mind. There is, in the
very feeling of those passions, something harsh, jarring, and
convulsive, something that tears and distracts the breast, and is
altogether destructive of that composure and tranquillity of mind
which is so necessary to happiness, and which is best promoted by
the contrary passions of gratitude and love. It is not the value
of what they lose by the perfidy and ingratitude of those they
live with, which the generous and humane are most apt to regret.
Whatever they may have lost, they can generally be very happy
without it. What most disturbs them is the idea of perfidy and
ingratitude exercised towards themselves; and the discordant and
disagreeable passions which this excites, constitute, in their own
opinion, the chief part of the injury which they suffer.
| |
I.II.27 |
|
How many things are requisite to render the gratification of
resentment completely agreeable, and to make the spectator
thoroughly sympathize with our revenge? The provocation must first
of all be such that we should become contemptible, and be exposed
to perpetual insults, if we did not, in some measure, resent it.
Smaller offences are always better neglected; nor is there any
thing more despicable than that froward and captious humour which
takes fire upon every slight occasion of quarrel. We should resent
more from a sense of the propriety of resentment, from a sense
that mankind expect and require it of us, than because we feel in
ourselves the furies of that disagreeable passion. There is no
passion, of which the human mind is capable, concerning whose
justness we ought to be so doubtful, concerning whose indulgence
we ought so carefully to consult our natural sense of propriety,
or so diligently to consider what will be the sentiments of the
cool and impartial spectator. Magnanimity, or a regard to maintain
our own rank and dignity in society, is the only motive which can
ennoble the expressions of this disagreeable passion. This motive
must characterize our whole stile and deportment. These must be
plain, open, and direct; determined without positiveness, and
elevated without insolence; not only free from petulance and low
scurrility, but generous, candid, and full of all proper regards,
even for the person who has offended us. It must appear, in short,
from our whole manner, without our labouring affectedly to express
it, that passion has not extinguished our humanity; and that if we
yield to the dictates of revenge, it is with reluctance, from
necessity, and in consequence of great and repeated provocations.
When resentment is guarded and qualified in this manner, it may be
admitted to be even generous and noble.
| |
I.II.28 |
|
Chapter IV - Of the social Passions
| |
|
As it is a divided sympathy which renders the whole set of
passions just now mentioned, upon most occasions, so ungraceful
and disagreeable; so there is another set opposite to these, which
a redoubled sympathy renders almost always peculiarly agreeable
and becoming. Generosity, humanity, kindness, compassion, mutual
friendship and esteem, all the social and benevolent affections,
when expressed in the countenance or behaviour, even towards those
who are not peculiarly connected with ourselves, please the
indifferent spectator upon almost every occasion. His sympathy
with the person who feels those passions, exactly coincides with
his concern for the person who is the object of them. The
interest, which, as a man, he is obliged to take in the happiness
of this last, enlivens his fellow-feeling with the sentiments of
the other, whose emotions are employed about the same object. We
have always, therefore, the strongest disposition to sympathize
with the benevolent affections. They appear in every respect
agreeable to us. We enter into the satisfaction both of the person
who feels them, and of the person who is the object of them. For
as to be the object of hatred and indignation gives more pain than
all the evil which a brave man can fear from his enemies; so there
is a satisfaction in the consciousness of being beloved, which, to
a person of delicacy and sensibility, is of more importance to
happiness, than all the advantage which he can expect to derive
from it. What character is so detestable as that of one who takes
pleasure to sow dissension among friends, and to turn their most
tender love into mortal hatred? Yet wherein does the atrocity of
this so much abhorred injury consist? Is it in depriving them of
the frivolous good offices, which, had their friendship continued,
they might have expected from one another? It is in depriving them
of that friendship itself, in robbing them of each other's
affections, from which both derived so much satisfaction; it is in
disturbing the harmony of their hearts, and putting an end to that
happy commerce which had before subsisted between them. These
affections, that harmony, this commerce, are felt, not only by the
tender and the delicate, but by the rudest vulgar of mankind, to
be of more importance to happiness than all the little services
which could be expected to flow from them.
| |
I.II.29 |
|
The sentiment of love is, in itself, agreeable to the person
who feels it. It sooths and composes the breast, seems to favour
the vital motions, and to promote the healthful state of the human
constitution; and it is rendered still more delightful by the
consciousness of the gratitude and satisfaction which it must
excite in him who is the object of it. Their mutual regard renders
them happy in one another, and sympathy, with this mutual regard,
makes them agreeable to every other person. With what pleasure do
we look upon a family, through the whole of which reign mutual
love and esteem, where the parents and children are companions for
one another, without any other difference than what is made by
respectful affection on the one side, and kind indulgence on the
other. where freedom and fondness, mutual raillery and mutual
kindness, show that no opposition of interest divides the
brothers, nor any rivalship of favour sets the sisters at
variance, and where every thing presents us with the idea of
peace, cheerfulness, harmony, and contentment? On the contrary,
how uneasy are we made when we go into a house in which jarring
contention sets one half of those who dwell in it against the
other; where amidst affected smoothness and complaisance,
suspicious looks and sudden starts of passion betray the mutual
jealousies which burn within them, and which are every moment
ready to burst out through all the restraints which the presence
of the company imposes? | |
I.II.30 |
|
Those amiable passions, even when they are acknowledged to be
excessive, are never regarded with aversion. There is something
agreeable even in the weakness of friendship and humanity. The too
tender mother, the too indulgent father, the too generous and
affectionate friend, may sometimes, perhaps, on account of the
softness of their natures, be looked upon with a species of pity,
in which, however, there is a mixture of love, but can never be
regarded with hatred and aversion, nor even with contempt, unless
by the most brutal and worthless of mankind. It is always with
concern, with sympathy and kindness, that we blame them for the
extravagance of their attachment. There is a helplessness in the
character of extreme humanity which more than any thing interests
our pity. There is nothing in itself which renders it either
ungraceful or disagreeable. We only regret that it is unfit for
the world, because the world is unworthy of it, and because it
must expose the person who is endowed with it as a prey to the
perfidy and ingratitude of insinuating falsehood, and to a
thousand pains and uneasinesses, which, of all men, he the least
deserves to feel, and which generally too he is, of all men, the
least capable of supporting. It is quite otherwise with hatred and
resentment. Too violent a propensity to those detestable passions,
renders a person the object of universal dread and abhorrence,
who, like a wild beast, ought, we think, to be hunted out of all
civil society. | |
I.II.31 |
|
Chapter V - Of the selfish Passions
| |
|
Besides those two opposite sets of passions, the social and
unsocial, there is another which holds a sort of middle place
between them; is never either so graceful as is sometimes the one
set, nor is ever so odious as is sometimes the other. Grief and
joy, when conceived upon account of our own private good or bad
fortune, constitute this third set of passions. Even when
excessive, they are never so disagreeable as excessive resentment,
because no opposite sympathy can ever interest us against them:
and when most suitable to their objects, they are never so
agreeable as impartial humanity and just benevolence; because no
double sympathy can ever interest us for them. There is, however,
this difference between grief and joy, that we are generally most
disposed to sympathize with small joys and great sorrows. The man
who, by some sudden revolution of fortune, is lifted up all at
once into a condition of life, greatly above what he had formerly
lived in, may be assured that the congratulations of his best
friends are not all of them perfectly sincere. An upstart, though
of the greatest merit, is generally disagreeable, and a sentiment
of envy commonly prevents us from heartily sympathizing with his
joy. If he has any judgment, he is sensible of this, and instead
of appearing to be elated with his good fortune, he endeavours, as
much as he can, to smother his joy, and keep down that elevation
of mind with which his new circumstances naturally inspire him. He
affects the same plainness of dress, and the same modesty of
behaviour, which became him in his former station. He redoubles
his attention to his old friends, and endeavours more than ever to
be humble, assiduous, and complaisant. And this is the behaviour
which in his situation we most approve of; because we expect, it
seems, that he should have more sympathy with our envy and
aversion to his happiness, than we have with his happiness. It is
seldom that with all this he succeeds. We suspect the sincerity of
his humility, and he grows weary of this constraint. In a little
time, therefore, he generally leaves all his old friends behind
him, some of the meanest of them excepted, who may, perhaps,
condescend to become his dependents: nor does he always acquire
any new ones; the pride of his new connections is as much
affronted at finding him their equal, as that of his old ones had
been by his becoming their superior: and it requires the most
obstinate and persevering modesty to atone for this mortification
to either. He generally grows weary too soon, and is provoked, by
the sullen and suspicious pride of the one, and by the saucy
contempt of the other, to treat the first with neglect, and the
second with petulance, till at last he grows habitually insolent,
and forfeits the esteem of all. If the chief part of human
happiness arises from the consciousness of being beloved, as I
believe it does, those sudden changes of fortune seldom contribute
much to happiness. He is happiest who advances more gradually to
greatness, whom the public destines to every step of his
preferment long before he arrives at it, in whom, upon that
account, when it comes, it can excite no extravagant joy, and with
regard to whom it cannot reasonably create either any jealousy in
those he overtakes, or any envy in those he leaves behind.
| |
I.II.32 |
|
Mankind, however, more readily sympathize with those smaller
joys which flow from less important causes. It is decent to be
humble amidst great prosperity; but we can scarce express too much
satisfaction in all the little occurrences of common life, in the
company with which we spent the evening last night, in the
entertainment that was set before us, in what was said and what
was done, in all the little incidents of the present conversation,
and in all those frivolous nothings which fill up the void of
human life. Nothing is more graceful than habitual cheerfulness,
which is always founded upon a peculiar relish for all the little
pleasures which common occurrences afford. We readily sympathize
with it: it inspires us with the same joy, and makes every trifle
turn up to us in the same agreeable aspect in which it presents
itself to the person endowed with this happy disposition. Hence it
is that youth, the season of gaiety, so easily engages our
affections. That propensity to joy which seems even to animate the
bloom, and to sparkle from the eyes of youth and beauty, though in
a person of the same sex, exalts, even the aged, to a more joyous
mood than ordinary. They forget, for a time, their infirmities,
and abandon themselves to those agreeable ideas and emotions to
which they have long been strangers, but which, when the presence
of so much happiness recalls them to their breast, take their
place there, like old acquaintance, from whom they are sorry to
have ever been parted, and whom they embrace more heartily upon
account of this long separation. | |
I.II.33 |
|
It is quite otherwise with grief. Small vexations excite no
sympathy, but deep affliction calls forth the greatest. The man
who is made uneasy by every little disagreeable incident, who is
hurt if either the cook or the butler have failed in the least
article of their duty, who feels every defect in the highest
ceremonial of politeness, whether it be shewn to himself or to any
other person, who takes it amiss that his intimate friend did not
bid him good-morrow when they met in the forenoon, and that his
brother hummed a tune all the time he himself was telling a story;
who is put out of humour by the badness of the weather when in the
country, by the badness of the roads when upon a journey, and by
the want of company, and dulness of all public diversions when in
town; such a person, I say, though he should have some reason,
will seldom meet with much sympathy. Joy is a pleasant emotion,
and we gladly abandon ourselves to it upon the slightest occasion.
We readily, therefore, sympathize with it in others, whenever we
are not prejudiced by envy. But grief is painful, and the mind,
even when it is our own misfortune, naturally resists and recoils
from it. We would endeavour either not to conceive it at all, or
to shake it off as soon as we have conceived it. Our aversion to
grief will not, indeed, always hinder us from conceiving it in our
own case upon very trifling occasions, but it constantly prevents
us from sympathizing with it in others when excited by the like
frivolous causes: for our sympathetic passions are always less
irresistible than our original ones. There is, besides, a malice
in mankind, which not only prevents all sympathy with little
uneasinesses, but renders them in some measure diverting. Hence
the delight which we all take in raillery, and in the small
vexation which we observe in our companion, when he is pushed, and
urged, and teased upon all sides. Men of the most ordinary
good-breeding dissemble the pain which any little incident may
give them; and those who are more thoroughly formed to society,
turn, of their own accord, all such incidents into raillery, as
they know their companions will do for them. The habit which a
man, who lives in the world, has acquired of considering how every
thing that concerns himself will appear to others, makes those
frivolous calamities turn up in the same ridiculous light to him,
in which he knows they will certainly be considered by them.
| |
I.II.34 |
|
Our sympathy, on the contrary, with deep distress, is very
strong and very sincere. It is unnecessary to give an instance. We
weep even at the feigned representation of a tragedy. If you
labour, therefore, under any signal calamity, if by some
extraordinary misfortune you are fallen into poverty, into
diseases, into disgrace and disappointment; even though your own
fault may have been, in part, the occasion, yet you may generally
depend upon the sincerest sympathy of all your friends, and, as
far as interest and honour will permit, upon their kindest
assistance too. But if your misfortune is not of this dreadful
kind, if you have only been a little baulked in your ambition, if
you have only been jilted by your mistress, or are only hen-pecked
by your wife, lay your account with the raillery of all your
acquaintance. | |
I.II.35 |
|
Section III - Of the Effects of Prosperity and Adversity
upon the Judgment of Mankind with regard to the Propriety of
Action; and why it is more easy to obtain their Approbation in the
one state than in the other
Chapter I - That though our sympathy with sorrow is generally a more
lively sensation than our sympathy with joy, it commonly falls
much more short of the violence of what is naturally felt by the
person principally concerned
| |
|
Our
sympathy with sorrow, though not more real, has been more taken
notice of than our sympathy with joy. The word sympathy, in its
most proper and primitive signification, denotes our
fellow-feeling with the sufferings, not that with the enjoyments,
of others. A late ingenious and subtile philosopher thought it
necessary to prove, by arguments, that we had a real sympathy with
joy, and that congratulation was a principle of human nature.
Nobody, I believe, ever thought it necessary to prove that
compassion was such. | |
I.III.1 |
|
First of all, our sympathy with sorrow is, in some sense, more
universal than that with joy. Though sorrow is excessive, we may
still have some fellow-feeling with it. What we feel does not,
indeed, in this case, amount to that complete sympathy, to that
perfect harmony and correspondence of sentiments which constitutes
approbation. We do not weep, and exclaim, and lament, with the
sufferer. We are sensible, on the contrary, of his weak ness and
of the extravagance of his passion, and yet often feel a very
sensible concern upon his account. But if we do not entirely enter
into, and go along with, the joy of another, we have no sort of
regard or fellow-feeling for it. The man who skips and dances
about with that intemperate and senseless joy which we cannot
accompany him in, is the object of our contempt and indignation.
| |
I.III.2 |
|
Pain besides, whether of mind or body, is a more pungent
sensation than pleasure, and our sympathy with pain, though it
falls greatly short of what is naturally felt by the sufferer, is
generally a more lively and distinct perception than our sympathy
with pleasure, though this last often approaches more nearly, as I
shall shew immediately, to the natural vivacity of the original
passion. | |
I.III.3 |
|
Over and above all this, we often struggle to keep down our
sympathy with the sorrow of others. Whenever we are not under the
observation of the sufferer, we endeavour, for our own sake, to
suppress it as much as we can, and we are not always successful.
The opposition which we make to it, and the reluctance with which
we yield to it, necessarily oblige us to take more particular
notice of it. But we never have occasion to make this opposition
to our sympathy with joy. If there is any envy in the case, we
never feel the least propensity towards it; and if there is none,
we give way to it without any reluctance. On the contrary, as we are always
ashamed of our own envy, we often pretend, and sometimes really
wish to sympathize with the joy of others, when by that
disagreeable sentiment we are disqualified from doing so. We are
glad, we say on account of our neighbour's good fortune, when in
our hearts, perhaps, we are really sorry. We often feel a sympathy
with sorrow when we would wish to be rid of it; and we often miss
that with joy when we would be glad to have it. The obvious
observation, therefore, which it naturally falls in our way to
make, is, that our propensity to sympathize with sorrow must be
very strong, and our inclination to sympathize with joy very weak.
| |
I.III.4 |
|
Notwithstanding this prejudice, however, I will venture to
affirm, that, when there is no envy in the case, our propensity to
sympathize with joy is much stronger than our propensity to
sympathize with sorrow; and that our fellow-feeling for the
agreeable emotion approaches much more nearly to the vivacity of
what is naturally felt by the persons principally concerned, than
that which we conceive for the painful one.
| |
I.III.5 |
|
We have some indulgence for that excessive grief which we
cannot entirely go along with. We know what a prodigious effort is
requisite before the sufferer can bring down his emotions. to
complete harmony and concord with those of the spectator. Though
he fails, therefore, we easily pardon him. But we have no such
indulgence for the intemperance of joy; because we are not
conscious that any such vast effort is requisite to bring it down
to what we can entirely enter into. The man who, under the
greatest calamities, can command his sorrow, seems worthy of the
highest admiration; but he who, in the fulness of prosperity, can
in the same manner master his joy, seems hardly to deserve any
praise. We are sensible that there is a much wider interval in the
one case than in the other, between what is naturally felt by the
person principally concerned, and what the spectator can entirely
go along with. | |
I.III.6 |
|
What can he added to the happiness of the man who is in health,
who is out of debt, and has a clear conscience? To one in this
situation, all accessions of fortune may properly be said to be
superfluous; and if he is much elevated upon account of them, it
must be the effect of the most frivolous levity. This situation,
however, may very well be called the natural and ordinary state of
mankind. Notwithstanding the present misery and depravity of the
world, so justly lamented, this really is the state of the greater
part of men. The greater part of men, therefore, cannot find any
great difficulty in elevating themselves to all the joy which any
accession to this situation can well excite in their companion.
| |
I.III.7 |
|
But though little can be added to this state, much may be taken
from it. Though between this condition and the highest pitch of
human prosperity, the interval is but a trifle; between it and the
lowest depth of misery the distance is immense and prodigious.
Adversity, on this account, necessarily depresses the mind of the
sufferer much more below its natural state, than prosperity can
elevate him above it. The spectator therefore, must find it much
more difficult to sympathize entirely, and keep perfect time, with
his sorrow, than thoroughly to enter into his joy, and must depart
much further from his own natural and ordinary temper of mind in
the one case than in the other. It is on this account, that though
our sympathy with sorrow is often a more pungent sensation than
our sympathy with joy, it always falls much more short of the
violence of what is naturally felt by the person principally
concerned. | |
I.III.8 |
|
It is agreeable to sympathize with, joy; and wherever envy does
not oppose it, our heart abandons itself with satisfaction to the
highest transports of that delightful sentiment. But it is painful
to go along with grief, and we always enter into it with
reluctance.(*) When we attend to the representation of a tragedy,
we struggle against that sympathetic sorrow which the
entertainment inspires as long as we can, and we give way to it at
last only when we can no longer avoid it: we even then endeavour
to cover our concern from the company. If we shed any tears, we
carefully conceal them, and are afraid, lest the spectators, not
entering into this excessive tenderness, should regard it as
effeminacy and weakness. The wretch whose misfortunes call upon
our compassion feels with what reluctance we are likely to enter
into his sorrow, and therefore proposes his grief to us with fear
and hesitation: he even smothers the half of it, and is ashamed,
upon account of this hard-heartedness of mankind, to give vent to
the fulness of his affliction. It is otherwise with the man who
riots in joy and success. Wherever envy does not interest us
against him, he expects our completest sympathy. He does not fear,
therefore, to announce himself with shouts of exultation, in full
confidence that we are heartily disposed to go along with him.
| |
I.III.9 |
|
Why should we be more ashamed to weep than to laugh before
company? We may often have as real occasion to do the one as to do
the other. but we always feel that the spectators are more likely
to go along with us in the agreeable, than in the painful emotion.
It is always miserable to complain, even when we are oppressed by
the most dreadful calamities. But the triumph of victory is not
always ungraceful. Prudence, indeed, would often advise us to bear
our prosperity with more moderation; because prudence would teach
us to avoid that envy which this very triumph is, more than any
thing, apt to excite. | |
I.III.10 |
|
How hearty are the acclamations of the mob, who never bear any
envy to their superiors, at a triumph or a public entry? And how
sedate and moderate is commonly their grief at an execution? Our
sorrow at a funeral generally amounts to no more than an affected
gravity. but our mirth at a christening or a marriage, is always
from the heart, and without any affectation. Upon these, and all
such joyous occasions, our satisfaction, though not so durable, is
often as lively as that of the persons principally concerned.
Whenever we cordially congratulate our friends, which, however, to
the disgrace of human nature, we do but seldom, their joy
literally becomes our joy. we are, for the moment, as happy as
they are: our heart swells and overflows with real pleasure: joy
and complacency sparkle from our eyes, and animate every feature
of our countenance, and every gesture of our body.
| |
I.III.11 |
|
But, on the contrary, when we condole with our friends in their
afflictions, how little do we feel, in comparison of what they
feel? We sit down by them, we look at them, and while they relate
to us the circumstances of their misfortune, we listen to them
with gravity and attention. But while their narration is every
moment interrupted by those natural bursts of passion which often
seem almost to choak them in the midst of it; how far are the
languid emotions of our hearts from keeping time to the transports
of theirs? We may be sensible, at the same time, that their
passion is natural, and no greater than what we ourselves might
feel upon the like occasion. We may even inwardly reproach
ourselves with our own want of sensibility, and perhaps, on that
account, work ourselves up into an artificial sympathy, which,
however, when it is raised, is always the slightest and most
transitory imaginable; and generally, as soon as we have left the
room, vanishes, and is gone for ever. Nature, it seems, when she
loaded us with our own sorrows, thought that they were enough, and
therefore did not command us to take any further share in those of
others, than what was necessary to prompt us to relieve them.
| |
I.III.12 |
|
It is on account of this dull sensibility to the afflictions of
others, that magnanimity amidst great distress appears always so
divinely graceful. His behaviour is genteel and agreeable who can
maintain his cheerfulness amidst a number of frivolous disasters.
But he appears to be more than mortal who can support in the same
manner the most dreadful calamities. We feel what an immense
effort is requisite to silence those violent emotions which
naturally agitate and distract those in his situation. We are
amazed to find that he can command himself so entirely. His
firmness, at the same time, perfectly coincides with our
insensibility. He makes no demand upon us for that more exquisite
degree of sensibility which we find, and which we are mortified to
find, that we do not possess. There is the most perfect
correspondence between his sentiments and ours, and on that
account the most perfect propriety in his behaviour. It is a
propriety too, which, from our experience of the usual weakness of
human nature, we could not reasonably have expected he should be
able to maintain. We wonder with surprise and astonishment at that
strength of mind which is capable of so noble and generous an
effort. The sentiment of complete sympathy and approbation, mixed
and animated with wonder and surprise, constitutes what is
properly called admiration, as has already been more than once
taken notice of Cato, surrounded on all sides by his enemies,
unable to resist them, disdaining to submit to them, and reduced,
by the proud maxims of that age, to the necessity of destroying
himself; yet never shrinking from his misfortunes, never
supplicating with the lamentable voice of wretchedness, those
miserable sympathetic tears which we are always so unwilling to
give; but on the contrary, arming himself with manly fortitude,
and the moment before he executes his fatal resolution, giving,
with his usual tranquillity, all necessary orders for the safety
of his friends; appears to Seneca, that great preacher of
insensibility, a spectacle which even the gods themselves might
behold with pleasure and admiration. | |
I.III.13 |
|
Whenever we meet, in common life, with any examples of such
heroic magnanimity, we are always extremely affected. We are more
apt to weep and shed tears for such as, in this manner, seem to
feel nothing for them. and in selves, than for those who give way
to all the weakness of sorrow: this particular case, the
sympathetic grief of the spectator appears to go beyond the
original passion in the person principally concerned. The friends
of Socrates all wept when he drank the last potion, while he
himself expressed the gayest and most cheerful tranquillity. Upon
all such occasions the spectator makes no effort, and has no
occasion to make any, in order to conquer his sympathetic sorrow.
He is under no fear that it will transport him to any thing that
is extravagant and improper; he is rather pleased with the
sensibility of his own heart, and gives way to it with complacence
and self-approbation. He gladly indulges, therefore, the most
melancholy views which can naturally occur to him, concerning the
calamity of his friend, for whom, perhaps, he never felt so
exquisitely before, the tender and tearful passion of love. But it
is quite otherwise with the person principally concerned. He is
obliged, as much as possible, to turn away his eyes from whatever
is either naturally terrible or disagreeable in his situation. Too
serious an attention to those circumstances, he fears, might make
so violent an impression upon him, that he could no longer keep
within the bounds of moderation, or render himself the object of
the complete sympathy and approbation of the spectators. He fixes
his thoughts, therefore, upon those only which are agreeable, the
applause and admiration which he is about to deserve by the heroic
magnanimity of his behaviour. To feel that he is capable of so
noble and generous an effort, to feel that in this dreadful
situation he can still act as he would desire to act, animates and
transports him with joy, and enables him to support that
triumphant gaiety which seems to exult in the victory he thus
gains over his misfortunes. | |
I.III.14 |
|
On the contrary, he always appears, in some measure, mean and
despicable, who is sunk in sorrow and dejection upon account of
any calamity of his own. We cannot bring ourselves to feel for him
what he feels for himself, and what, perhaps, we should feel for
ourselves if in his situation: we, therefore, despise him;
unjustly, perhaps, if any sentiment could be regarded as unjust,
to which we are by nature irresistibly determined. The weakness of
sorrow never appears in any respect agreeable, except when it
arises from what we feel for others more than from what we feel
for ourselves. A son, upon the death of an indulgent and
respectable father, may give way to it without much blame. His
sorrow is chiefly founded upon a sort of sympathy with his
departed parent and we readily enter into this humane emotion. But
if he should indulge the same weakness upon account of any
misfortune which affected himself only, he would no longer meet
with any such indulgence. If he should be reduced to beggary and
ruin, if he should be exposed to the most dreadful dangers, if he
should even be led out to a public execution, and there shed one
single tear upon the scaffold, he would disgrace himself for ever
in the opinion of all the gallant and generous part of mankind.
Their compassion for him, however, would be very strong, and very
sincere; but as it would still fall short of this excessive
weakness, they would have no pardon for the man who could thus
expose himself in the eyes of the world. His behaviour would
affect them with shame rather than with sorrow; and the dishonour
which he had thus brought upon himself would appear to them the
most lamentable circumstance in his misfortune. How did it
disgrace the memory of the intrepid Duke of Biron, who had so
often braved death in the field, that he wept upon the scaffold,
when he beheld the state to which he was fallen, and remembered
the favour and the glory from which his own rashness had so
unfortunately thrown him! | |
I.III.15 |
|
Chapter II - Of the origin of Ambition, and of the
distinction of Ranks
| |
|
It is because mankind are disposed to sympathize more entirely
with our joy than with our sorrow, that we make parade of our
riches, and conceal our poverty. Nothing is so mortifying as to be
obliged to expose our distress to the view of the public, and to
feel, that though our situation is open to the eyes of all
mankind, no mortal conceives for us the half of what we suffer.
Nay, it is chiefly from this regard to the sentiments of mankind,
that we pursue riches and avoid poverty. For to what purpose is
all the toil and bustle of this world? what is the end of avarice
and ambition, of the pursuit of wealth, of power, and
preheminence? Is it to supply the necessities of nature? The wages
of the meanest labourer can supply them. We see that they afford
him food and clothing, the comfort of a house, and of a family. If
we examined his oeconomy with rigour, we should find that he
spends a great part of them upon conveniencies, which may be
regarded as superfluities, and that, upon extraordinary occasions,
he can give something even to vanity and distinction. What then is
the cause of our aversion to his situation, and why should those
who have been educated in the higher ranks of life, regard it as
worse than death, to be reduced to live, even without labour, upon
the same simple fare with him, to dwell under the same lowly roof,
and to be clothed in the same humble. attire? Do they imagine that
their stomach is better, or their sleep sounder in a palace than
in a cottage? The contrary has been so often observed, and,
indeed, is so very obvious, though it had never been observed,
that there is nobody ignorant of it. From whence, then, arises
that emulation which runs through all the different ranks of men,
and what are the advantages which we propose by that great purpose
of human life which we call bettering our condition? To be
observed, to be attended to, to be taken notice of with sympathy,
complacency, and approbation, are all the advantages which we can
propose to derive from it. It is the vanity, not the ease, or the
pleasure, which interests us. But vanity is always founded upon
the belief of our being the object of attention and approbation.
The rich man glories in his riches, because he feels that they
naturally draw upon him the attention of the world, and that
mankind are disposed to go along with him in all those agreeable
emotions with which the advantages of his situation so readily
inspire him. At the thought of this, his heart seems to swell and
dilate itself within him, and he is fonder of his wealth, upon
this account, than for all the other advantages it procures him.
The poor man, on the contrary, is ashamed of his poverty. He feels
that it either places him out of the sight of mankind, or, that if
they take any notice of him, they have, however, scarce any
fellow-feeling with the misery and distress which he suffers. He
is mortified upon both accounts. for though to be overlooked, and
to be disapproved of, are things entirely different, yet as
obscurity covers us from the daylight of honour and approbation,
to feel that we are taken no notice of, necessarily damps the most
agreeable hope, and disappoints the most ardent desire, of human
nature. The poor man goes out and comes in unheeded, and when in
the midst of a crowd is in the same obscurity as if shut up in his
own hovel. Those humble cares and painful attentions which occupy
those in his situation, afford no amusement to the dissipated and
the gay. They turn away their eyes from him, or if the extremity
of his distress forces them to look at him, it is only to spurn so
disagreeable an object from among them. The fortunate and the
proud wonder at the insolence of human wretchedness, that it
should dare to present itself before them, and with the loathsome
aspect of its misery presume to disturb the serenity of their
happiness. The man of rank and distinction, on the contrary, is
observed by all the world. Every body is eager to look at him, and
to conceive, at least by sympathy, that joy and exultation with
which his circumstances naturally inspire him. His actions are the
objects of the public care. Scarce a word, scarce a gesture, can
fall from him that is altogether neglected. In a great assembly he
is the person upon whom all direct their eyes; it is upon him that
their passions seem all to wait with expectation, in order to
receive that movement and direction which he shall impress upon
them; and if his behaviour is not altogether absurd, he has, every
moment, an opportunity of interesting mankind, and of rendering
himself the object of the observation and fellow-feeling of every
body about him. It is this, which, notwithstanding the restraint
it imposes, notwithstanding the loss of liberty with which it is
attended, renders greatness the object of envy, and compensates,
in the opinion of all those mortifications which must mankind, all
that toil, all that anxiety, be undergone in the pursuit of it;
and what is of yet more consequence, all that leisure, all that
ease, all that careless security, which are forfeited for ever by
the acquisition. | |
I.III.16 |
|
When we consider the condition of the great, in those delusive
colours in which the imagination is apt to paint it. it seems to
be almost the abstract idea of a perfect and happy state. It is
the very state which, in all our waking dreams and idle reveries,
we had sketched out to ourselves as the final object of all our
desires. We feel, therefore, a peculiar sympathy with the
satisfaction of those who are in it. We favour all their
inclinations, and forward all their wishes. What pity, we think,
that any thing should spoil and corrupt so agreeable a situation!
We could even wish them immortal; and it seems hard to us, that
death should at last put an end to such perfect enjoyment. It is
cruel, we think, in Nature to compel them from their exalted
stations to that humble, but hospitable home, which she has
provided for all her children. Great King, live for ever! is the
compliment, which, after the manner of eastern adulation, we
should readily make them, if experience did not teach us its
absurdity. Every calamity that befals them, every injury that is
done them, excites in the breast of the spectator ten times more
compassion and resentment than he would have felt, had the same
things happened to other men. It is the misfortunes of Kings only
which afford the proper subjects for tragedy. They resemble, in
this respect, the misfortunes of lovers. Those two situations are
the chief which interest us upon the theatre; because, in spite of
all that reason and experience can tell us to the contrary, the
prejudices of the imagination attach to these two states a
happiness superior to any other. To disturb, or to put an end to
such perfect enjoyment, seems to be the most atrocious of all
injuries. The traitor who conspires against the life of his
monarch, is thought a greater monster than any other murderer. All
the innocent blood that was shed in the civil wars, provoked less
indignation than the death of Charles I. A stranger to human
nature, who saw the indifference of men about the misery of their
inferiors, and the regret and indignation which they feel for the
misfortunes and sufferings of those above them, would be apt to
imagine, that pain must be more agonizing, and the convulsions of
death more terrible to persons of higher rank, than to those of
meaner stations. | |
I.III.17 |
|
Upon this disposition of mankind, to go along with all the
passions of the rich and the powerful, is founded the distinction
of ranks, and the order of society. Our obsequiousness to our
superiors more frequently arises from our admiration for the
advantages of their situation, than from any private expectations
of benefit from their good-will. Their benefits can extend but to
a few, but their fortunes interest almost every body. We are eager
to assist them in completing a system of happiness that approaches
so near to perfection; and we desire to serve them for their own
sake, without any other recompense but the vanity or the honour of
obliging them. Neither is our deference to their inclinations
founded chiefly, or altogether, upon a regard to the utility of
such submission, and to the order of society, which is best
supported by it. Even when the order of society seems to require
that we should oppose them, we can hardly bring ourselves to do
it. That kings are the servants of the people, to be obeyed,
resisted, deposed, or punished, as the public conveniency may
require, is the doctrine of reason and philosophy; but it is not
the doctrine of Nature. Nature would teach us to submit to them
for their own sake, to tremble and bow down before their exalted
station, to regard their smile as a reward sufficient to
compensate any services, and to dread their displeasure, though no
other evil were to follow from it, as the severest of all
mortifications. To treat them in any respect as men, to reason and
dispute with them upon ordinary occasions, requires such
resolution, that there are few men whose magnanimity can support
them in it, unless they are likewise assisted by familiarity and
acquaintance. The strongest motives, the most furious passions,
fear, hatred, and resentment, are scarce sufficient to balance
this natural disposition to respect them: and their conduct must,
either justly or unjustly, have excited the highest degree of all
those passions, before the bulk of the people can be brought to
oppose them with violence, or to desire to see them either
punished or deposed. Even when the people have been brought this
length, they are apt to relent every moment, and easily relapse
into their habitual state of deference to those whom they have
been accustomed to look upon as their natural superiors. They
cannot stand the mortification of their monarch. Compassion soon
takes the place of resentment, they forget all past provocations,
their old principles of loyalty revive, and they run to
re-establish the ruined authority of their old masters, with the
same violence with which they had opposed it. The death of Charles
I. brought about the Restoration of the royal family. Compassion
for James II. when he was seized by the populace in making his
escape on ship-board, had almost prevented the Revolution, and
made it go on more heavily than before.
| |
I.III.18 |
|
Do the great seem insensible of the easy price at which they
may acquire the public admiration; or do they seem to imagine that
to them, as to other men, it must be the purchase either of sweat
or of blood? By what important accomplishments is the young
nobleman instructed to support the dignity of his rank, and to
render himself worthy of that superiority over his
fellow-citizens, to which the virtue of his ancestors had raised
them? Is it by knowledge, by industry, by patience, by
self-denial, or by virtue of any kind? As all his words, as all
his motions are attended to, he learns an habitual regard to every
circumstance of ordinary behaviour, and studies to perform all
those small duties with the most exact propriety. As he is
conscious how much he is observed, and how much mankind are
disposed to favour all his inclinations, he acts, upon the most
indifferent occasions, with that freedom and elevation which the
thought of this naturally inspires. His air, his manner, his
deportment, all mark that elegant and graceful sense of his own
superiority, which those who are born to inferior stations can
hardly ever arrive at. These are the arts by which he proposes to
make mankind more easily submit to his authority, and to govern
their inclinations according to his own pleasure: and in this he
is seldom disappointed. These arts, supported by rank and
preheminence, are, upon ordinary occasions, sufficient to govern
the world. Lewis XIV. during the greater part of his reign, was
regarded, not only in France, but over all Europe, as the most
perfect model of a great prince. But what were the talents and
virtues by which he acquired this great reputation? Was it by the
scrupulous and inflexible justice of all his undertakings, by the
immense dangers and difficulties with which they were attended, or
by the unwearied and unrelenting application with which he pursued
them? Was it by his extensive knowledge, by his exquisite
judgment, or by his heroic valour? It was by none of these
qualities. But he was, first of all, the most powerful prince in
Europe, and consequently held the highest rank among kings; and
then, says his historian, 'he surpassed all his courtiers in the
gracefulness of his shape, and the majestic beauty of his
features. The sound of his voice, noble and affecting, gained
those hearts which his presence intimidated. He had a step and a
deportment which could suit only him and his rank, and which would
have been ridiculous in any other person. The embarrassment which
he occasioned to those who spoke to him, flattered that secret
satisfaction with which he felt his own superiority. The old
officer, who was confounded and faultered in asking him a favour,
and not being able to conclude his discourse, said to him: Sir,
your majesty, I hope, will believe that I do not tremble thus
before your enemies: had no difficulty to obtain what he
demanded.' These frivolous accomplishments, supported by his rank,
and, no doubt too, by a degree of other talents and virtues, which
seems, however, not to have been much above mediocrity,
established this prince in the esteem of his own age, and have
drawn, even from posterity, a good deal of respect for his memory.
Compared with these, in his own times, and in his own presence, no
other virtue, it seems, appeared to have any merit. Knowledge,
industry, valour, and beneficence, trembled, were abashed, and
lost all dignity before them. | |
I.III.19 |
|
But it is not by accomplishments of this kind, that the man of
inferior rank must hope to distinguish himself. Politeness is so
much the virtue of the great, that it will do little honour to any
body but themselves. The coxcomb, who imitates their manner, and
affects to be eminent by the superior propriety of his ordinary
behaviour, is rewarded with a double share of contempt for his
folly and presumption. Why should the man, whom nobody thinks it
worth while to look at, be very anxious about the manner in which
he holds up his head, or disposes of his arms while he walks
through a room? He is occupied surely with a very superfluous
attention, and with an attention too that marks a sense of his own
importance, which no other mortal can go along with. The most
perfect modesty and plainness, joined to as much negligence as is
consistent with the respect due to the company, ought to be the
chief characteristics of the behaviour of a private man. If ever
he hopes to distinguish himself, it must be by more important
virtues. He must acquire dependants to balance the dependants of
the great, and he has no other fund to pay them from, but the
labour of his body, and the activity of his mind. He must
cultivate these therefore: he must acquire superior knowledge in
his profession, and superior industry in the exercise of it. He
must be patient in labour, resolute in danger, and firm in
distress. These talents he must bring into public view, by the
difficulty, importance, and, at the same time, good judgment of
his undertakings, and by the severe and unrelenting application
with which he pursues them. Probity and prudence, generosity and
frankness, must characterize his behaviour upon all ordinary
occasions; and he must, at the same time, be forward to engage in
all those situations, in which it requires the greatest talents
and virtues to act with propriety, but in which the greatest
applause is to be acquired by those who can acquit themselves with
honour. With what impatience does the man of spirit and ambition,
who is depressed by his situation, look round for some great
opportunity to distinguish himself? No circumstances, which can
afford this, appear to him undesirable. He even looks forward with
satisfaction to the prospect of foreign war, or civil dissension;
and, with secret transport and delight, sees through all the
confusion and bloodshed which attend them, the probability of
those wished-for occasions presenting themselves, in which he may
draw upon himself the attention and admiration of mankind. The man
of rank and distinction, on the contrary, whose whole glory
consists in the propriety of his ordinary behaviour, who is
contented with the humble renown which this can afford him, and
has no talents to acquire any other, is unwilling to embarrass
himself with what can be attended either with difficulty or
distress. To figure at a ball is his great triumph, and to succeed
in an intrigue of gallantry, his highest exploit. He has an
aversion to all public confusions, not from the love of mankind,
for the great never look upon their inferiors as their
fellow-creatures; nor yet from want of courage, for in that he is
seldom defective; but from a consciousness that he possesses none
of the virtues which are required in such situations, and that the
public attention will certainly be drawn away from him by others.
He may be willing to expose himself to some little danger, and to
make a campaign when it happens to be the fashion. But he shudders
with horror at the thought of any situation which demands the
continual and long exertion of patience, industry, fortitude, and
application of thought. These virtues are hardly ever to be met
with in men who are born to those high stations. In all
governments accordingly, even in monarchies, the highest offices
are generally possessed, and the whole detail of the
administration conducted, by men who were educated in the middle
and inferior ranks of life, who have been carried forward by their
own industry and abilities, though loaded with the jealousy, and
opposed by the resentment, of all those who were born their
superiors, and to whom the great, after having regarded them first
with contempt, and afterwards with envy, are at last contented to
truckle with the same abject meanness with which they desire that
the rest of mankind should behave to themselves.
| |
I.III.20 |
|
It is the loss of this easy empire over the affections of
mankind which renders the fall from greatness so insupportable.
When the family of the king of Macedon was led in triumph by
Paulus Aemilius, their misfortunes, it is said, made them divide
with their conqueror the attention of the Roman people. The sight
of the royal children, whose tender age rendered them insensible
of their situation, struck the spectators, amidst the public
rejoicings and prosperity, with the tenderest sorrow and
compassion. The king appeared next in the procession; and seemed
like one confounded and astonished, and bereft of all sentiment,
by the greatness of his calamities. His friends and ministers
followed after him. As they moved along, they often cast their
eyes upon their fallen sovereign, and always burst into tears at
the sight; their whole behaviour demonstrating that they thought
not of their own misfortunes, but were occupied entirely by the
superior greatness of his. The generous Romans, on the contrary,
beheld him with disdain and indignation, and regarded as unworthy
of all compassion the man who could be so mean-spirited as to bear
to live under such calamities. Yet what did those calamities
amount to? According to the greater part of historians, he was to
spend the remainder of his days, under the protection of a
powerful and humane people, in a state which in itself should seem
worthy of envy, a state of plenty, ease, leisure, and security,
from which it was impossible for him even by his own folly to
fall. But he was no longer to be surrounded by that admiring mob
of fools, flatterers, and dependants, who had formerly been
accustomed to attend upon all his motions. He was no longer to be
gazed upon by multitudes, nor to have it in his power to render
himself the object of their respect, their gratitude, their love,
their admiration. The passions of nations were no longer to mould
themselves upon his inclinations. This was that insupportable
calamity which bereaved the king of all sentiment; which made his
friends forget their own misfortunes; and which the Roman
magnanimity could scarce conceive how any man could be so
mean-spirited as to bear to survive. | |
I.III.21 |
|
'Love,' says my Lord Rochfaucault, 'is commonly succeeded by
ambition; but ambition is hardly ever succeeded by love.' That
passion, when once it has got entire possession of the breast,
will admit neither a rival nor a successor. To those who have been
accustomed to the possession, or even to the hope of public
admiration, all other pleasures sicken and decay. Of all the
discarded statesmen who for their own ease have studied to get the
better of ambition, and to despise those honours which they could
no longer arrive at, how few have been able to succeed? The
greater part have spent their time in the most listless and
insipid indolence, chagrined at the thoughts of their own
insignificancy, incapable of being interested i n the occupations
of private life, without enjoyment, except when they talked of
their former greatness, and without satisfaction, except when they
were employed in some vain project to recover it. Are you in
earnest resolved never to barter your liberty for the lordly
servitude of a court, but to live free, fearless, and independent?
There seems to be one way to continue in that virtuous resolution;
and perhaps but one. Never enter the place from whence so few have
been able to return; never come within the circle of ambition; nor
ever bring yourself into comparison with those masters of the
earth who have already engrossed the attention of half mankind
before you. | |
I.III.22 |
|
Of such mighty importance does it appear to be, in the
imaginations of men, to stand in that situation which sets them
most in the view of general sympathy and attention. And thus,
place, that great object which divides the wives of aldermen, is
the end of half the labours of human life; and is the cause of all
the tumult and bustle, all the rapine and injustice, which avarice
and ambition have introduced into this world. People of sense, it
is said, indeed despise place; that is, they despise sitting at
the head of the table, and are indifferent who it is that is
pointed out to the company by that frivolous circumstance, which
the smallest advantage is capable of overbalancing. But rank,
distinction pre-eminence, no man despises, unless he is either
raised very much above, or sunk very much below, the ordinary
standard of human nature; unless he is either so confirmed in
wisdom and real philosophy, as to be satisfied that, while the
propriety of his conduct renders him the just object of
approbation, it is of little consequence though he be neither
attended to, nor approved of; or so habituated to the idea of his
own meanness, so sunk in slothful and sottish indifference, as
entirely to have forgot the desire, and almost the very wish, for
superiority. | |
I.III.23 |
|
As to become the natural object of the joyous congratulations
and sympathetic attentions of mankind is, in this manner, the
circumstance which gives to prosperity all its dazzling splendour;
so nothing darkens so much the gloom of adversity as to feel that
our misfortunes are the objects, not of the fellow-feeling, but of
the contempt and aversion of our brethren. It is upon this account
that the most dreadful calamities are not always those which it is
most difficult to support. It is often more mortifying to appear
in public under small disasters, than under great misfortunes. The
first excite no sympathy; but the second, though they may excite
none that approaches to the anguish of the sufferer, call forth,
however, a very lively compassion. The sentiments of the
spectators are, in this last case, less wide of those of the
sufferer, and their imperfect fellow-feeling lends him some
assistance in supporting his misery. Before a gay assembly, a
gentleman would be more mortified to appear covered with filth and
rags than with blood and wounds. This last situation would
interest their pity; the other would provoke their laughter. The
judge who orders a criminal to be set in the pillory, dishonours
him more than if he had condemned him to the scaffold. The great
prince, who, some years ago, caned a general officer at the head
of his army, disgraced him irrecoverably. The punishment would
have been much less had he shot him through the body. By the laws
of honour, to strike with a cane dishonours, to strike with a
sword does not, for an obvious reason. Those slighter punishments,
when inflicted on a gentleman, to whom dishonour is the greatest
of all evils, come to be regarded among a humane and generous
people, as the most dreadful of any. With regard to persons of
that rank, therefore, they are universally laid aside, and the
law, while it takes their life upon many occasions, respects their
honour upon almost all. To scourge a person of quality, or to set
him in the pillory, upon account of any crime whatever, is a
brutality of which no European government, except that of Russia,
is capable. | |
I.III.24 |
|
A brave man is not rendered contemptible by being brought to
the scaffold; he is, by being set in the pillory. His behaviour in
the one situation may gain him universal esteem and admiration. No
behaviour in the other can render him agreeable. The sympathy of
the spectators supports him in the one case, and saves him from
that shame, that consciousness that his misery is felt by himself
only, which is of all sentiments the most unsupportable. There is
no sympathy in the other; or, if there is any, it is not with his
pain, which is a trifle, but with his consciousness of the want of
sympathy with which this pain is attended. It is with his shame,
not with his sorrow. Those who pity him, blush and hang down their
heads for him. He droops in the same manner, and feels himself
irrecoverably degraded by the punishment, though not by the crime.
The man, on the contrary, who dies with resolution, as he is
naturally regarded with the erect aspect of esteem and
approbation, so he wears himself the same undaunted countenance;
and, if the crime does not deprive him of the respect of others,
the punishment never will. He has no suspicion that his situation
is the object of contempt or derision to any body, and he can,
with propriety, assume the air, not only of perfect serenity, but
of triumph and exultation. | |
I.III.25 |
|
'Great dangers,' says the Cardinal de Retz, 'have their charms,
because there is some glory to be got, even when we miscarry. But
moderate dangers have nothing but what is horrible, because the
loss of reputation always attends the want of success.' His maxim
has the same foundation with what we have been just now observing
with regard to punishments. | |
I.III.26 |
|
Human virtue is superior to pain, to poverty, to danger, and to
death; nor does it even require its utmost efforts do despise
them. But to have its misery exposed to insult and derision, to be
led in triumph, to be set up for the hand of scorn to point at, is
a situation in which its constancy is much more apt to fail.
Compared with the contempt of mankind, all other external evils
are easily supported. | |
I.III.27 |
|
Chapter III - Of the corruption of our moral sentiments,
which is occasioned by this disposition to admire the rich and the
great, and to despise or neglect persons of poor and mean
condition
| |
|
This disposition to admire, and almost to worship, the rich and
the powerful, and to despise, or, at least, to neglect persons of
poor and mean condition, though necessary both to establish and to
maintain the distinction of ranks and the order of society, is, at
the same time, the great and most universal cause of the
corruption of our moral sentiments. That wealth and greatness are
often regarded with the respect and admiration which are due only
to wisdom and virtue; and that the contempt, of which vice and
folly are the only proper objects, is often most unjustly bestowed
upon poverty and weakness, has been the complaint of moralists in
all ages. | |
I.III.28 |
|
We desire both to be respectable and to be respected. We dread
both to be contemptible and to be contemned. But, upon coming into
the world, we soon find that wisdom and virtue are by no means the
sole objects of respect; nor vice and folly, of contempt. We
frequently see the respectful attentions of the world more
strongly directed towards the rich and the great, than towards the
wise and the virtuous. We see frequently the vices and follies of
the powerful much less despised than the poverty and weakness of
the innocent. To deserve, to acquire, and to enjoy the respect and
admiration of mankind, are the great objects of ambition and
emulation. Two different roads are presented to us, equally
leading to the attainment of this so much desired object; the one,
by the study of wisdom and the practice of virtue; the other, by
the acquisition of wealth and greatness. Two different characters
are presented to our emulation; the one, of proud ambition and
ostentatious avidity. the other, of humble modesty and equitable
justice. Two different models, two different pictures, are held
out to us, according to which we may fashion our own character and
behaviour; the one more gaudy and glittering in its colouring; the
other more correct and more exquisitely beautiful in its outline:
the one forcing itself upon the notice of every wandering eye; the
other, attracting the attention of scarce any body but the most
studious and careful observer. They are the wise and the virtuous
chiefly, a select, though, I am afraid, but a small party, who are
the real and steady admirers of wisdom and virtue. The great mob
of mankind are the admirers and worshippers, and, what may seem
more extraordinary, most frequently the disinterested admirers and
worshippers, of wealth and greatness. | |
I.III.29 |
|
The respect which we feel for wisdom and virtue is, no doubt,
different from that which we conceive for wealth and greatness;
and it requires no very nice discernment to distinguish the
difference. But, notwithstanding this difference, those sentiments
bear a very considerable resemblance to one another. In some
particular features they are, no doubt, different, but, in the
general air of the countenance, they seem to be so very nearly the
same, that inattentive observers are very apt to mistake the one
for the other. | |
I.III.30 |
|
In equal degrees of merit there is scarce any man who does not
respect more the rich and the great, than the poor and the humble.
With most men the presumption and vanity of the former are much
more admired, than the real and solid merit of the latter. It is
scarce agreeable to good morals, or even to good language,
perhaps, to say, that mere wealth and greatness, abstracted from
merit and virtue, deserve our respect. We must acknowledge,
however, that they almost constantly obtain it; and that they may,
therefore, be considered as, in some respects, the natural objects
of it. Those exalted stations may, no doubt, be completely
degraded by vice and folly. But the vice and folly must be very
great, before they can operate this complete degradation. The
profligacy of a man of fashion is looked upon with much less
contempt and aversion, than that of a man of meaner condition. In
the latter, a single transgression of the rules of temperance and
propriety, is commonly more resented, than the constant and avowed
contempt of them ever is in the former.
| |
I.III.31 |
|
In the middling and inferior stations of life, the road to
virtue and that to fortune, to such fortune, at least, as men in
such stations can reasonably expect to acquire, are, happily in
most cases, very nearly the same. In all the middling and inferior
professions, real and solid professional abilities, joined to
prudent, just, firm, and temperate conduct, can very seldom fail
of success. Abilities will even sometimes prevail where the
conduct is by no means correct. Either habitual imprudence,
however, or injustice, or weakness, or profligacy, will always
clouD, and sometimes Depress altogether, the most splendid
professional abilities. Men in the inferior and middling stations
of life, besides, can never be great enough to be above the law,
which must generally overawe them into some sort of respect for,
at least, the more important rules of justice. The success of such
people, too, almost always depends upon the favour and good
opinion of their neighbours and equals; and without a tolerably
regular conduct these can very seldom be obtained. The good old
proverb, therefore, That honesty is the best policy, holds, in
such situations, almost always perfectly true. In such situations,
therefore, we may generally expect a considerable degree of
virtue; and, fortunately for the good morals of society, these are
the situations of by far the greater part of mankind.
| |
I.III.32 |
|
In the superior stations of life the case is unhappily not
always the same. In the courts of princes, in the drawing-rooms of
the great, where success and preferment depend, not upon the
esteem of intelligent and well-informed equals, but upon the
fanciful and foolish favour of ignorant, presumptuous, and proud
superiors; flattery and falsehood too often prevail over merit and
abilities. In such societies the abilities to please, are more
regarded than the abilities to serve. In quiet and peaceable
times, when the storm is at a distance, the prince, or great man,
wishes only to be amused, and is even apt to fancy that he has
scarce any occasion for the service of any body, or that those who
amuse him are sufficiently able to serve him. The external graces,
the frivolous accomplishments of that impertinent and foolish
thing called a man of fashion, are commonly more admired than the
solid and masculine virtues of a warrior, a statesman, a
philosopher, or a legislator. All the great and awful virtues, all
the virtues which can fit, either for the council, the senate, or
the field, are, by the insolent and insignificant flatterers, who
commonly figure the most in such corrupted societies, held in the
utmost contempt and derision. When the duke of Sully was called
upon by Lewis the Thirteenth, to give his advice in some great
emergency, he observed the favourites and courtiers whispering to
one another, and smiling at his unfashionable appearance.
'Whenever your majesty's father,' said the old warrior and
statesman, 'did me the honour to consult me, he ordered the
buffoons of the court to retire into the antechamber.'
| |
I.III.33 |
|
It is from our disposition to admire, and consequently to
imitate, the rich and the great, that they are enabled to set, or
to lead what is called the fashion. Their dress is the fashionable
dress; the language of their conversation, the fashionable style;
their air and deportment, the fashionable behaviour. Even their
vices and follies are fashionable; and the greater part of men are
proud to imitate and resemble them in the very qualities which
dishonour and degrade them. Vain men often give themselves airs of
a fashionable profligacy, which, in their hearts, they do not
approve of, and of which, perhaps, they are really not guilty.
They desire to be praised for what they themselves do not think
praise-worthy, and are ashamed of unfashionable virtues which they
sometimes practise in secret, and for which they have secretly
some degree of real veneration. There are hypocrites of wealth and
greatness, as well as of religion and virtue; and a vain man is as
apt to pretend to be what he is not, in the one way, as a cunning
man is in the other. He assumes the equipage and splendid way of
living of his superiors, without considering that whatever may be
praise-worthy in any of these, derives its whole merit and
propriety from its suitableness to that situation and fortune
which both require and can easily support the expence. Many a poor
man places his glory in being thought rich, without considering
that the duties (if one may call such follies by so very venerable
a name) which that reputation imposes upon him, must soon reduce
him to beggary, and render his situation still more unlike that of
those whom he admires and imitates, than it had been originally.
| |
I.III.34 |
|
To attain to this envied situation, the candidates for fortune
too frequently abandon the paths of virtue; for unhappily, the
road which leads to the one, and that which leads to the other,
lie sometimes in very opposite directions. But the ambitious man
flatters himself that, in the splendid situation to which he
advances, he will have so many means of commanding the respect and
admiration of mankind, and will be enabled to act with such
superior propriety and grace, that the lustre of his future
conduct will entirely cover, or efface, the foulness of the steps
by which he arrived at that elevation. In many governments the
candidates for the highest stations are above the law; and, if
they can attain the object of their ambition, they have no fear of
being called to account for the means by which they acquired it.
They often endeavour, therefore, not only by fraud and falsehood,
the ordinary and vulgar arts of intrigue and cabal; but sometimes
by the perpetration of the most enormous crimes, by murder and
assassination, by rebellion and civil war, to supplant and destroy
those who oppose or stand in the way of their greatness. They more
frequently miscarry than succeed; and commonly gain nothing but
the disgraceful punishment which is due to their crimes. But,
though they should be so lucky as to attain that wished-for
greatness, they are always most miserably disappointed in the
happiness which they expect to enjoy in it. It is not ease or
pleasure, but always honour, of one kind or another, though
frequently an honour very ill understood, that the ambitious man
really pursues. But the honour of his exalted station appears,
both in his own eyes and in those of other people, polluted and
defiled by the baseness of the means through which he rose to it.
Though by the profusion of every liberal expence; though by
excessive indulgence in every profligate pleasure, the wretched,
but usual, resource of ruined characters; though by the hurry of
public business, or by the prouder and more dazzling tumult of
war, he may endeavour to efface, both from his own memory and from
that of other people, the remembrance of what he has done; that
remembrance never fails to pursue him. He invokes in vain the dark
and dismal powers of forgetfulness and oblivion. He remembers
himself what he has done, and that remembrance tells him that
other people must likewise remember it. Amidst all the gaudy pomp
of the most ostentatious greatness; amidst the venal and vile
adulation of the great and of the learned; amidst the more
innocent, though more foolish, acclamations of the common people;
amidst all the pride of conquest and the triumph of successful
war, he is still secretly pursued by the avenging furies of shame
and remorse; and, while glory seems to surround him on all sides,
he himself, in his own imagination, sees black and foul infamy
fast pursuing him, and every moment ready to overtake him from
behind. Even the great Caesar, though he had the magnanimity to
dismiss his guards, could not dismiss his suspicions. The
remembrance of Pharsalia still haunted and pursued him. When, at
the request of the senate, he had the generosity to pardon
Marcellus, he told that assembly, that he was not unaware of the
designs which were carrying on against his life; but that, as he
had lived long enough both for nature and for glory, he was
contented to die, and therefore despised all conspiracies. He had,
perhaps, lived long enough for nature. But the man who felt
himself the object of such deadly resentment, from those whose
favour he wished to gain, and whom he still wished to consider as
his friends, had certainly lived too long for real glory; or for
all the happiness which he could ever hope to enjoy in the love
and esteem of his equals. | |
I.III.35 |
|
|
|
2. Of Merit and Demerit; or, of the Objects of Reward and Punishment
|
Section I - Of the Sense of Merit and Demerit
| |
|
There is
another set of qualities ascribed to the actions and conduct of
mankind, distinct from their propriety or impropriety, their
decency or ungracefulness, and which are the objects of a distinct
species of approbation and disapprobation. These are Merit and
Demerit, the qualities of deserving reward, and of deserving
punishment. | |
II.I.1 |
|
It has already been observed, that the sentiment or affection
of the heart, from which any action proceeds, and upon which its
whole virtue or vice depends, may be considered under two
different aspects, or in two different relations: first, in
relation to the cause or object which excites it; and, secondly,
in relation to the end which it proposes, or to the effect which
it tends to produce: that upon the suitableness or unsuitableness,
upon the proportion or disproportion, which the affection seems to
bear to the cause or object which excites it, depends the
propriety or impropriety, the decency or ungracefulness of the
consequent action; and that upon the beneficial or hurtful effects
which the affection proposes or tends to produce, depends the
merit or demerit, the good or ill desert of the action to which it
gives occasion. Wherein consists our sense of the propriety or
impropriety of actions, has been explained in the former part of
this discourse. We come now to consider, wherein consists that of
their good or ill desert. | |
II.I.2 |
|
Chapter I - That whatever appears to be the proper object of
gratitude, appears to deserve reward; and that, in the same
manner, whatever appears to be the proper object of resentment,
appears to deserve punishment
| |
|
To us, therefore, that action must appear to deserve reward,
which appears to be the proper and approved object of that
sentiment, which most immediately and directly prompts us to
reward, or to do good to another. And in the same manner, that
action must appear to deserve punishment, which appears to be the
proper and approved object of that sentiment which most
immediately and directly prompts us to punish, or to inflict evil
upon another. | |
II.I.3 |
|
The sentiment which most immediately and directly prompts us to
reward, is gratitude; that which most immediately and directly
prompts us to punish, is resentment. | |
II.I.4 |
|
To us, therefore, that action must appear to deserve reward,
which appears to be the proper and approved object of gratitude;
as, on the other hand, that action must appear to deserve
punishment, which appears to be the proper and approved object of
resentment. | |
II.I.5 |
|
To reward, is to recompense, to remunerate, to return good for
good received. To punish, too, is to recompense, to remunerate,
though in a different manner; it is to return evil for evil that
has been done. | |
II.I.6 |
|
There are some other passions, besides gratitude and
resentment, which interest us in the happiness or misery of
others; but there are none which so directly excite us to be the
instruments of either. The love and esteem which grow upon
acquaintance and habitual approbation, necessarily lead us to be
pleased with the good fortune of the man who is the object of such
agreeable emotions, and consequently, to be willing to lend a hand
to promote it. Our love, however, is fully satisfied, though his
good fortune should be brought about without our assistance. All
that this passion desires is to see him happy, without regarding
who was the author of his prosperity. But gratitude is not to be
satisfied in this manner. If the person to whom we owe many
obligations, is made happy without our assistance, though it
pleases our love, it does not content our gratitude. Till we have
recompensed him, till we ourselves have been instrumental in
promoting his happiness, we feel ourselves still loaded with that
debt which his past services have laid upon us.
| |
II.I.7 |
|
The hatred and dislike, in the same manner, which grow upon
habitual disapprobation, would often lead us to take a malicious
pleasure in the misfortune of the man whose conduct and character
excite so painful a passion. But though dislike and hatred harden
us against all sympathy, and sometimes dispose us even to rejoice
at the distress of another, yet, if there is no resentment in the
case, if neither we nor our friends have received any great
personal provocation, these passions would not naturally lead us
to wish to be instrumental in bringing it about. Though we could
fear no punishment in consequence of our having had some hand in
it, we would rather that it should happen by other means. To one
under the dominion of violent hatred it would be agreeable,
perhaps, to hear, that the person whom he abhorred and detested
was killed by some accident. But if he had the least spark of
justice, which, though this passion is not very favourable to
virtue, he might still have, it would hurt him excessively to have
been himself, even without design, the occasion of this
misfortune. Much more would the very thought of voluntarily
contributing to it shock him beyond all measure. He would reject
with horror even the imagination of so execrable a design; and if
he could imagine himself capable of such an enormity, he would
begin to regard himself in the same odious light in which he had
considered the person who was the object of his dislike. But it is
quite otherwise with resentment: if the person who had done us
some great injury, who had murdered our father or our brother, for
example, should soon afterwards die of a fever, or even be brought
to the scaffold upon account of some other crime, though it might
sooth our hatred, it would not fully gratify our resentment.
Resentment would prompt us to desire, not only that he should be
punished, but that he should be punished by our means, and upon
account of that particular injury which he had done to us.
Resentment cannot be fully gratified, unless the offender is not
only made to grieve in his turn, but to grieve for that particular
wrong which we have suffered from him. He must be made to repent
and be sorry for this very action, that others, through fear of
the like punishment, may be terrified from being guilty of the
like offence. The natural gratification of this passion tends, of
its own accord, to produce all the political ends of punishment;
the correction of the criminal, and the example to the public.
| |
II.I.8 |
|
Gratitude and resentment, therefore, are the sentiments which
most immediately and directly prompt to reward and to punish. To
us, therefore, he must appear to deserve reward, who appears to be
the proper and approved object of gratitude; and he to deserve
punishment, who appears to be that of resentment.
| |
II.I.9 |
|
Chapter II - Of the proper objects of gratitude and
resentment
| |
|
To be the proper and approved object either of gratitude or
resentment, can mean nothing but to be the object of that
gratitude, and of that resentment, which naturally seems proper,
and is approved of. | |
II.I.10 |
|
But these, as well as all the other passions of human nature,
seem proper and are approved of, when the heart of every impartial
spectator entirely sympathizes with them, when every indifferent
by-stander entirely enters into, and goes along with them.
| |
II.I.11 |
|
He, therefore, appears to deserve reward, who, to some person
or persons, is the natural object of a gratitude which every human
heart is disposed to beat time to, and thereby applaud: and he, on
the other hand, appears to deserve punishment, who in the same
manner is to some person or persons the natural object of a
resentment which the breast of every reasonable man is ready to
adopt and sympathize with. To us, surely, that action must appear
to deserve reward, which every body who knows of it would wish to
reward, and therefore delights to see rewarded: and that action
must as surely appear to deserve punishment, which every body who
hears of it is angry with, and upon that account rejoices to see
punished. | |
II.I.12 |
|
1. As we sympathize with the joy of our companions when in
prosperity, so we join with them in the complacency and
satisfaction with which they naturally regard whatever is the
cause of their good fortune. We enter into the love and affection
which they conceive for it, and begin to love it too. We should be
sorry for their sakes if it was destroyed, or even if it was
placed at too great a distance from them, and out of the reach of
their care and protection, though they should lose nothing by its
absence except the pleasure of seeing it. If it is man who has
thus been the fortunate instrument of the happiness of his
brethren, this is still more peculiarly the case. When we see one
man assisted, protected, relieved by another, our sympathy with
the joy of the person who receives the benefit serves only to
animate our fellow-feeling with his gratitude towards him who
bestows it. When we look upon the person who is the cause of his
pleasure with the eyes with which we imagine he must look upon
him, his benefactor seems to stand before us in the most engaging
and amiable light. We readily therefore sympathize with the
grateful affection which he conceives for a person to whom he has
been so much obliged; and consequently applaud the returns which
he is disposed to make for the good offices conferred upon him. As
we entirely enter into the affection from which these returns
proceed, they necessarily seem every way proper and suitable to
their object. | |
II.I.13 |
|
2. In the same manner, as we sympathize with the sorrow of our
fellow-creature whenever we see his distress, so we likewise enter
into his abhorrence and aversion for whatever has given occasion
to it. Our heart, as it adopts and beats time to his grief, so is
it likewise animated with that spirit by which he endeavours to
drive away or destroy the cause of it. The indolent and passive
fellow-feeling, by which we accompany him in his sufferings,
readily gives way to that more vigorous and active sentiment by
which we go along with him in the effort he makes, either to repel
them, or to gratify his aversion to what has given occasion to
them. This is still more peculiarly the case, when it is man who
has caused them. When we see one man oppressed or injured by
another, the sympathy which we feel with the distress of the
sufferer seems to serve only to animate our fellow-feeling with
his resentment against the offender. We are rejoiced to see him
attack his adversary in his turn, and are eager and ready to
assist him whenever he exerts himself for defence, or even for
vengeance within a certain degree. If the injured should perish in
the quarrel, we not only sympathize with the real resentment of
his friends and relations, but with the imaginary resentment which
in fancy we lend to the dead, who is no longer capable of feeling
that or any other human sentiment. But as we put ourselves in his
situation, as we enter, as it were, into his body, and in our
imaginations, in some measure, animate anew the deformed and
mangled carcass of the slain, when we bring home in this manner
his case to our own bosoms, we feel upon this, as upon many other
occasions, an emotion which the person principally concerned is
incapable of feeling, and which yet we feel by an illusive
sympathy with him. The sympathetic tears which we shed for that
immense and irretrievable loss, which in our fancy he appears to
have sustained, seem to be but a small part of the duty which we
owe him. The injury which he has suffered demands, we think, a
principal part of our attention. We feel that resentment which we
imagine he ought to feel, and which he would feel, if in his cold
and lifeless body there remained any consciousness of what passes
upon earth. His blood, we think, calls aloud for vengeance. The
very ashes of the dead seem to be disturbed at the thought that
his injuries are to pass unrevenged. The horrors which are
supposed to haunt the bed of the murderer, the ghosts which,
superstition imagines, rise from their graves to demand vengeance
upon those who brought them to an untimely end, all take their
origin from this natural sympathy with the imaginary resentment of
the slain. And with regard, at least, to this most dreadful of all
crimes, Nature, antecedent to all reflections upon the utility of
punishment, has in this manner stamped upon the human heart, in
the strongest and most indelible characters, an immediate and
instinctive approbation of the sacred and necessary law of
retaliation. | |
II.I.14 |
|
Chapter III - That where there is no approbation of the
conduct of the person who confers the benefit, there is little
sympathy with the gratitude of him who receives it: and that, on
the contrary, where there is no disapprobation of the motives of
the person who does the mischief, there is no sort of sympathy
with the resentment of him who suffers it
| |
|
It is to be observed, however, that, how beneficial soever on
the one hand, or how hurtful soever on the other, the actions or
intentions of the person who acts may have been to the person who
is, if I may say so, acted upon, yet if in the one case there
appears to have been no propriety in the motives of the agent, if
we cannot enter into the affections which influenced his conduct,
we have little sympathy with the gratitude of the person who
receives the benefit: or if, in the other case, there appears to
have been no impropriety in the motives of the agent, if, on the
contrary, the affections which influenced his conduct are such as
we must necessarily enter into, we can have no sort of sympathy
with the resentment of the person who suffers. Little gratitude
seems due in the one case, and all sort of resentment seems unjust
in the other. The one action seems to merit little reward, the
other to deserve no punishment. | |
II.I.15 |
|
1. First, I say, That wherever we cannot sympathize with the
affections of the agent, wherever there seems to be no propriety
in the motives which influenced his conduct, we are less disposed
to enter into the gratitude of the person who received the benefit
of his actions. A very small return seems due to that foolish and
profuse generosity which confers the greatest benefits from the
most trivial motives, and gives an estate to a man merely because
his name and sirname happen to be the same with those of the
giver. Such services do not seem to demand any proportionable
recompense. Our contempt for the folly of the agent hinders us
from thoroughly entering into the gratitude of the person to whom
the good office has been done. His benefactor seems unworthy of
it. As when we place ourselves in the situation of the person
obliged, we feel that we could conceive no great reverence for
such a benefactor, we easily absolve him from a great deal of that
submissive veneration and esteem which we should think due to a
more respectable character; and provided he always treats his weak
friend with kindness and humanity, we are willing to excuse him
from many attentions and regards which we should demand to a
worthier patron. Those Princes, who have heaped, with the greatest
profusion, wealth, power, and honours, upon their favourites, have
seldom excited that degree of attachment to their persons which
has often been experienced by those who were more frugal of their
favours. The well-natured, but injudicious prodigality of James
the First of Great Britain seems to have attached nobody to his
person; and that Prince, notwithstanding his social and harmless
disposition, appears to have lived and died without a friend. The
whole gentry and nobility of England exposed their lives and
fortunes in the cause of his more frugal and distinguishing son,
notwithstanding the coldness and distant severity of his ordinary
deportment. | |
II.I.16 |
|
2. Secondly, I say, That wherever the conduct of the agent
appears to have been entirely directed by motives and affections
which we thoroughly enter into and approve of, we can have no sort
of sympathy with the resentment of the sufferer, how great soever
the mischief which may have been done to him. When two people
quarrel, if we take part with, and entirely adopt the resentment
of one of them, it is impossible that we should enter into that of
the other. Our sympathy with the person whose motives we go along
with, and whom therefore we look upon as in the right, cannot but
harden us against all fellow-feeling with the other, whom we
necessarily regard as in the wrong. Whatever this last, therefore,
may have suffered, while it is no more than what we ourselves
should have wished him to suffer, while it is no more than what
our own sympathetic indignation would have prompted us to inflict
upon him, it cannot either displease or provoke us. When an
inhuman murderer is brought to the scaffold, though we have some
compassion for his misery, we can have no sort of fellow-feeling
with his resentment, if he should be so absurd as to express any
against either his prosecutor or his judge. The natural tendency
of their just indignation against so vile a criminal is indeed the
most fatal and ruinous to him. But it is impossible that we should
be displeased with the tendency of a sentiment, which, when we
bring the case home to ourselves, we feel that we cannot avoid
adopting. | |
II.I.17 |
|
Chapter IV - Recapitulation of the foregoing chapters
| |
|
1. We do not, therefore, thoroughly and heartily sympathize
with the gratitude of one man towards another, merely because this
other has been the cause of his good fortune, unless he has been
the cause of it from motives which we entirely go along with. Our
heart must adopt the principles of the agent, and go along with
all the affections which influenced his conduct, before it can
entirely sympathize with, and beat time to, the gratitude of the
person who has been benefited by his actions. If in the conduct of
the benefactor there appears to have been no propriety, how
beneficial soever its effects, it does not seem to demand, or
necessarily to require, any proportionable recompense.
| |
II.I.18 |
|
But when to the beneficent tendency of the action is joined the
propriety of the affection from which it proceeds, when we
entirely sympathize and go along with the motives of the agent,
the love which we conceive for him upon his own account, enhances
and enlivens our fellow-feeling with the gratitude of those who
owe their prosperity to his good conduct. His actions seem then to
demand, and, if I may say so, to call aloud for a proportionable
recompense. We then entirely enter into that gratitude which
prompts to bestow it. The benefactor seems then to be the proper
object of reward, when we thus entirely sympathize with, and
approve of, that sentiment which prompts to reward him. When we
approve of, and go along with, the affection from which the action
proceeds, we must necessarily approve of the action, and regard
the person towards whom it is directed, as its proper and suitable
object. | |
II.I.19 |
|
2. In the same manner, we cannot at all sympathize with the
resentment of one man against another, merely because this other
has been the cause of his misfortune, unless he has been the cause
of it from motives which we cannot enter into. Before we can adopt
the resentment of the sufferer, we must disapprove of the motives
of the agent, and feel that our heart renounces all sympathy with
the affections which influenced his conduct. If there appears to
have been no impropriety in these, how fatal soever the tendency
of the action which proceeds from them to those against whom it is
directed, it does not seem to deserve any punishment, or to be the
proper object of any resentment. | |
II.I.20 |
|
But when to the hurtfulness of the action is joined the
impropriety of the affection from whence it proceeds, when our
heart rejects with abhorrence all fellow-feeling with the motives
of the agent, we then heartily and entirely sympathize with the
resentment of the sufferer. Such actions seem then to deserve,
and, if I may say so, to call aloud for, a proportionable
punishment; and we entirely enter into, and thereby approve of,
that resentment which prompts to inflict it. The offender
necessarily seems then to be the proper object of punishment, when
we thus entirely sympathize with, and thereby approve of, that
sentiment which prompts to punish. In this case too, when we
approve, and go along with, the affection from which the action
proceeds, we must necessarily approve of the action, and regard
the person against whom it is directed, as its proper and suitable
object. | |
II.I.21 |
|
Chapter V - The analysis of the sense of Merit and Demerit
| |
|
1. As our sense, therefore, of the propriety of conduct arises
from what I shall call a direct sympathy with the affections and
motives of the person who acts, so our sense of its merit arises
from what I shall call an indirect sympathy with the gratitude of
the person who is, if I may say so, acted upon.
| |
II.I.22 |
|
As we cannot indeed enter thoroughly into the gratitude of the
person who receives the benefit, unless we beforehand approve of
the motives of the benefactor, so, upon this account, the sense of
merit seems to be a compounded sentiment, and to be made up of two
distinct emotions; a direct sympathy with the sentiments of the
agent, and an indirect sympathy with the gratitude of those who
receive the benefit of his actions. | |
II.I.23 |
|
We may, upon many different occasions, plainly distinguish
those two different emotions combining and uniting together in our
sense of the good desert of a particular character or action. When
we read in history concerning actions of proper and beneficent
greatness of mind, how eagerly do we enter into such designs? How
much are we animated by that high-spirited generosity which
directs them? How keen are we for their success? How grieved at
their disappointment? In imagination we become the very person
whose actions are represented to us: we transport ourselves in
fancy to the scenes of those distant and forgotten adventures, and
imagine ourselves acting the part of a Scipio or a Camillus, a
Timoleon or an Aristides. So far our sentiments are founded upon
the direct sympathy with the person who acts. Nor is the indirect
sympathy with those who receive the benefit of such actions less
sensibly felt. Whenever we place ourselves in the situation of
these last, with what warm and affectionate fellow-feeling do we
enter into their gratitude towards those who served them so
essentially? We embrace, as it were, their benefactor along with
them. Our heart readily sympathizes with the highest transports of
their grateful affection. No honours, no rewards, we think, can be
too great for them to bestow upon him. When they make this proper
return for his services, we heartily applaud and go along with
them; but are shocked beyond all measure, if by their conduct they
appear to have little sense of the obligations conferred upon
them. Our whole sense, in short, of the merit and good desert of
such actions, of the propriety and fitness of recompensing them,
and making the person who performed them rejoice in his turn,
arises from the sympathetic emotions of gratitude and love, with
which, when we bring home to our own breast the situation of those
principally concerned, we feel ourselves naturally transported
towards the man who could act with such proper and noble
beneficence. | |
II.I.24 |
|
2. In the same manner as our sense of the impropriety of
conduct arises from a want of sympathy, or from a direct antipathy
to the affections and motives of the agent, so our sense of its
demerit arises from what I shall here too call an indirect
sympathy with the resentment of the sufferer.
| |
II.I.25 |
|
As we cannot indeed enter into the resentment of the sufferer,
unless our heart beforehand disapproves the motives of the agent,
and renounces all fellow-feeling with them; so upon this account
the sense of demerit, as well as that of merit, seems to be a
compounded sentiment, and to be made up of two distinct emotions;
a direct antipathy to the sentiments of the agent, and an indirect
sympathy with the resentment of the sufferer.
| |
II.I.26 |
|
We may here too, upon many different occasions, plainly
distinguish those two different emotions combining and uniting
together in our sense of the ill desert of a particular character
or action. When we read in history concerning the perfidy and
cruelty of a Borgia or a Nero, our heart rises up against the
detestable sentiments which influenced their conduct, and
renounces with horror and abomination all fellow-feeling with such
execrable motives. So far our sentiments are founded upon the
direct antipathy to the affections of the agent: and the indirect
sympathy with the resentment of the sufferers is still more
sensibly felt. When we bring home to ourselves the situation of
the persons whom those scourges of mankind insulted, murdered, or
betrayed, what indignation do we not feel against such insolent
and inhuman oppressors of the earth? Our sympathy with the
unavoidable distress of the innocent sufferers is not more real
nor more lively, than our fellow-feeling with their just and
natural resentment: The former sentiment only heightens the
latter, and the idea of their distress serves only to inflame and
blow up our animosity against those who occasioned it. When we
think of the anguish of the sufferers, we take part with them more
earnestly against their oppressors; we enter with more eagerness
into all their schemes of vengeance, and feel ourselves every
moment wreaking, in imagination, upon such violators of the laws
of society, that punishment which our sympathetic indignation
tells us is due to their crimes. Our sense of the horror and
dreadful atrocity of such conduct, the delight which we take in
hearing that it was properly punished, the indignation which we
feel when it escapes this due retaliation, our whole sense and
feeling, in short, of its ill desert, of the propriety and fitness
of inflicting evil upon the person who is guilty of it, and of
making him grieve in his turn, arises from the sympathetic
indignation which naturally boils up in the breast of the
spectator, whenever he thoroughly brings home to himself the case
of the sufferer. | |
II.I.27 |
|
Section II - Of Justice and Beneficence
Chapter I - Comparison of those two virtues
| |
|
Actions
of a beneficent tendency, which proceed from proper motives, seem
alone to require reward, because such alone are the approved
objects of gratitude, or excite the sympathetic gratitude of the
spectator. | |
II.II.1 |
|
Actions of a hurtful tendency, which proceed from improper
motives, seem alone to deserve punishment; because such alone are
the approved objects of resentment, or excite the sympathetic
resentment of the spectator. | |
II.II.2 |
|
Beneficence is always free, it cannot be extorted by force, the
mere want of it exposes to no punishment; because the mere want of
beneficence tends to do no real positive evil. It may disappoint
of the good which might reasonably have been expected, and upon
that account it may justly excite dislike and disapprobation: it
cannot, however, provoke any resentment which mankind will go
along with. The man who does not recompense his benefactor when he
has it in his power, and when his benefactor needs his assistance,
is, no doubt, guilty of the blackest ingratitude. The heart of
every impartial spectator rejects all fellow-feeling with the
selfishness of his motives, and he is the proper object of the
highest disapprobation. But still he does no positive hurt to any
body. He only does not do that good which in propriety he ought to
have done. He is the object of hatred, a passion which is
naturally excited by impropriety of sentiment and behaviour; not
of resentment, a passion which is never properly called forth but
by actions which tend to do real and positive hurt to some
particular persons. His want of gratitude, therefore, cannot be
punished. To oblige him by force to perform what in gratitude he
ought to perform, and what every impartial spectator would approve
of him for performing, would, if possible, be still more improper
than his neglecting to perform it. His benefactor would dishonour
himself if he attempted by violence to constrain him to gratitude,
and it would be impertinent for any third person, who was not the
superior of either, to intermeddle. But of all the duties of
beneficence, those which gratitude recommends to us approach
nearest to what is called a perfect and complete obligation. What
friendship, what generosity, what charity, would prompt us to do
with universal approbation, is still more free, and can still less
be extorted by force than the duties of gratitude. We talk of the
debt of gratitude, not of charity, or generosity, nor even of
friendship, when friendship is mere esteem, and has not been
enhanced and complicated with gratitude for good offices.
| |
II.II.3 |
|
Resentment seems to have been given us by nature for defence,
and for defence only. It is the safeguard of justice and the
security of innocence. It prompts us to beat off the mischief
which is attempted to be done to us, and to retaliate that which
is already done; that the offender may be made to repent of his
injustice, and that others, through fear of the like punishment,
may be terrified from being guilty of the like offence. It must be
reserved therefore for these purposes, nor can the spectator ever
go along with it when it is exerted for any other. But the mere
want of the beneficent virtues, though it may disappoint us of the
good which might reasonably be expected, neither does, not
attempts to do, any mischief from which we can have occasion to
defend ourselves. | |
II.II.4 |
|
There is, however, another virtue, of which the observance is
not left to the freedom of our own wills, which may be extorted by
force, and of which the violation exposes to resentment, and
consequently to punishment. This virtue is justice: the violation
of justice is injury: it does real and positive hurt to some
particular persons, from motives which are naturally disapproved
of. It is, therefore, the proper object of resentment, and of
punishment, which is the natural consequence of resentment. As
mankind go along with, and approve of the violence employed to
avenge the hurt which is done by injustice, so they much more go
along with, and approve of, that which is employed to prevent and
beat off the injury, and to restrain the offender from hurting his
neighbours. The person himself who meditates an injustice is
sensible of this, and feels that force may, with the utmost
propriety, be made use of, both by the person whom he is about to
injure, and by others, either to obstruct the execution of his
crime, or to punish him when he has executed it. And upon this is
founded that remarkable distinction between justice and all the
other social virtues, which has of late been particularly insisted
upon by an author of very great and original genius, that we feel
ourselves to be under a stricter obligation to act according to
justice, than agreeably to friendship, charity, or generosity;
that the practice of these last mentioned virtues seems to be left
in some measure to our own choice, but that, somehow or other, we
feel ourselves to be in a peculiar manner tied, bound, and obliged
to the observation of justice. We feel, that is to say, that force
may, with the utmost propriety, and with the approbation of all
mankind, be made use of to constrain us to observe the rules of
the one, but not to follow the precepts of the other.
| |
II.II.5 |
|
We must always, however, carefully distinguish what is only
blamable, or the proper object of disapprobation, from what force
may be employed either to punish or to prevent. That seems
blamable which falls short of that ordinary degree of proper
beneficence which experience teaches us to expect of every body;
and on the contrary, that seems praise-worthy which goes beyond
it. The ordinary degree itself seems neither blamable nor
praise-worthy. A father, a son, a brother, who behaves to the
correspondent relation neither better nor worse than the greater
part of men commonly do, seems properly to deserve neither praise
nor blame. He who surprises us by extraordinary and unexpected,
though still proper and suitable kindness, or on the contrary by
extraordinary and unexpected, as well as unsuitable unkindness,
seems praise-worthy in the one case, and blamable in the other.
| |
II.II.6 |
|
Even the most ordinary degree of kindness or beneficence,
however, cannot, among equals, be extorted by force. Among equals
each individual is naturally, and antecedent to the institution of
civil government, regarded as having a right both to defend
himself from injuries, and to exact a certain degree of punishment
for those which have been done to him. Every generous spectator
not only approves of his conduct when he does this, but enters so
far into his sentiments as often to be willing to assist him. When
one man attacks, or robs, or attempts to murder another, all the
neighbours take the alarm, and think that they do right when they
run, either to revenge the person who has been injured, or to
defend him who is in danger of being so. But when a father fails
in the ordinary degree of parental affection towards a son; when a
son seems to want that filial reverence which might be expected to
his father; when brothers are without the usual degree of
brotherly affection; when a man shuts his breast against
compassion, and refuses to relieve the misery of his
fellow-creatures, when he can with the greatest ease; in all these
cases, though every body blames the conduct, nobody imagines that
those who might have reason, perhaps, to expect more kindness,
have any right to extort it by force. The sufferer can only
complain, and the spectator can intermeddle no other way than by
advice and persuasion. Upon all such occasions, for equals to use
force against one another, would be thought the highest degree of
insolence and presumption. | |
II.II.7 |
|
A superior may, indeed, sometimes, with universal approbation,
oblige those under his jurisdiction to behave, in this respect,
with a certain degree of propriety to one another. The laws of all
civilized nations oblige parents to maintain their children, and
children to maintain their parents, and impose upon men many other
duties of beneficence. The civil magistrate is entrusted with the
power not only of preserving the public peace by restraining
injustice, but of promoting the prosperity of the commonwealth, by
establishing good discipline, and by discouraging every sort of
vice and impropriety; he may prescribe rules, therefore, which not
only prohibit mutual injuries among fellow-citizens, but command
mutual good offices to a certain degree. When the sovereign
commands what is merely indifferent, and what, antecedent to his
orders, might have been omitted without any blame, it becomes not
only blamable but punishable to disobey him. When he commands,
therefore, what, antecedent to any such order, could not have been
omitted without the greatest blame, it surely becomes much more
punishable to be wanting in obedience. Of all the duties of a
law-giver, however, this, perhaps, is that which it requires the
greatest delicacy and reserve to execute with propriety and
judgment. To neglect it altogether exposes the commonwealth to
many gross disorders and shocking enormities, and to push it too
far is destructive of all liberty, security, and justice.
| |
II.II.8 |
|
Though the mere want of beneficence seems to merit no
punishment from equals, the greater exertions of that virtue
appear to deserve the highest reward. By being productive of the
greatest good, they are the natural and approved objects of the
liveliest gratitude. Though the breach of justice, on the
contrary, exposes to punishment, the observance of the rules of
that virtue seems scarce to deserve any reward. There is, no
doubt, a propriety in the practice of justice, and it merits, upon
that account, all the approbation which is due to propriety. But
as it does no real positive good, it is entitled to very little
gratitude. Mere justice is, upon most occasions, but a negative
virtue, and only hinders us from hurting our neighbour. The man
who barely abstains from violating either the person, or the
estate, or the reputation of his neighbours, has surely very
little positive merit. He fulfils, however, all the rules of what
is peculiarly called justice, and does every thing which his
equals can with propriety force him to do, or which they can
punish him for not doing. We may often fulfil all the rules of
justice by sitting still and doing nothing.
| |
II.II.9 |
|
As every man doth, so shall it be done to him, and retaliation
seems to be the great law which is dictated to us by Nature.
Beneficence and generosity we think due to the generous and
beneficent. Those whose hearts never open to the feelings of
humanity, should, we think, be shut out, in the same manner, from
the affections of all their fellow-creatures, and be allowed to
live in the midst of society, as in a great desert where there is
nobody to care for them, or to inquire after them. The violator of
the laws of justice ought to be made to feel himself that evil
which he has done to another; and since no regard to the
sufferings of his brethren is capable of restraining him, he ought
to be over-awed by the fear of his own. The man who is barely
innocent, who only observes the laws of justice with regard to
others, and merely abstains from hurting his neighbours, can merit
only that his neighbours in their turn should respect his
innocence, and that the same laws should be religiously observed
with regard to him. | |
II.II.10 |
|
Chapter II - Of the sense of Justice, of Remorse, and of
the consciousness of Merit
| |
|
There can be no proper motive for hurting
our neighbour, there can be no incitement to do evil to another,
which mankind will go along with, except just indignation for evil
which that other has done to us. To disturb his happiness merely
because it stands in the way of our own, to take from him what is
of real use to him merely because it may be of equal or of more
use to us, or to indulge, in this manner, at the expence of other
people, the natural preference which every man has for his own
happiness above that of other people, is what no impartial
spectator can go along with. Every man is, no doubt, by nature,
first and principally recommended to his own care; and as he is
fitter to take care of himself than of any other person, it is fit
and right that it should be so. Every man, therefore, is much more
deeply interested in whatever immediately concerns himself, than
in what concerns any other man: and to hear, perhaps, of the death
of another person, with whom we have no particular connexion, will
give us less concern, will spoil our stomach, or break our rest
much less than a very insignificant disaster which has befallen
ourselves. But though the ruin of our neighbour may affect us much
less than a very small misfortune of our own, we must not ruin him
to prevent that small misfortune, nor even to prevent our own
ruin. We must, here, as in all other cases, view ourselves not so
much according to that light in which we may naturally appear to
ourselves, as according to that in which we naturally appear to
others. Though every man may, according to the proverb, be the
whole world to himself, to the rest of mankind he is a most
insignificant part of it. Though his own happiness may be of more
importance to him than that of all the world besides, to every
other person it is of no more consequence than that of any other
man. Though it may be true, therefore, that every individual, in
his own breast, naturally prefers himself to all mankind, yet he
dares not look mankind in the face, and avow that he acts
according to this principle. He feels that in this preference they
can never go along with him, and that how natural soever it may be
to him, it must always appear excessive and extravagant to them.
When he views himself in the light in which he is conscious that
others will view him, he sees that to them he is but one of the
multitude in no respect better than any other in it. If he would
act so as that the impartial spectator may enter into the
principles of his conduct, which is what of all things he has the
greatest desire to do, he must, upon this, as upon all other
occasions, humble the arrogance of his self-love, and bring it
down to something which other men can go along with. They will
indulge it so far as to allow him to be more anxious about, and to
pursue with more earnest assiduity, his own happiness than that of
any other person. Thus far, whenever they place themselves in his
situation, they will readily go along with him. In the race for
wealth, and honours, and preferments, he may run as hard as he
can, and strain every nerve and every muscle, in order to outstrip
all his competitors. But if he should justle, or throw down any of
them, the indulgence of the spectators is entirely at an end. It
is a violation of fair play, which they cannot admit of. This man
is to them, in every respect, as good as he: they do not enter
into that self-love by which he prefers himself so much to this
other, and cannot go along with the motive from which he hurt him.
They readily, therefore, sympathize with the natural resentment of
the injured, and the offender becomes the object of their hatred
and indignation. He is sensible that he becomes so, and feels that
those sentiments are ready to burst out from all sides against
him. | |
II.II.11 |
|
As the greater and more irreparable the evil that is done, the
resentment of the sufferer runs naturally the higher; so does
likewise the sympathetic indignation of the spectator, as well as
the sense of guilt in the agent. Death is the greatest evil which
one man can inflict upon another, and excites the highest degree
of resentment in those who are immediately connected with the
slain. Murder, therefore, is the most atrocious of all crimes
which affect individuals only, in the sight both of mankind, and
of the person who has committed it. To be deprived of that which
we are possessed of, is a greater evil than to be disappointed of
what we have only the expectation. Breach of property, therefore,
theft and robbery, which take from us what we are possessed of,
are greater crimes than breach of contract, which only disappoints
us of what we expected. The most sacred laws of justice,
therefore, those whose violation seems to call loudest for
vengeance and punishment, are the laws which guard the life and
person of our neighbour; the next are those which guard his
property and possessions; and last of all come those which guard
what are called his personal rights, or what is due to him from
the promises of others. | |
II.II.12 |
|
The violator of the more sacred laws of justice can never
reflect on the sentiments which mankind must entertain with regard
to him, without feeling all the agonies of shame, and horror, and
consternation. When his passion is gratified, and he begins coolly
to reflect on his past conduct, he can enter into none of the
motives which influenced it. They appear now as detestable to him
as they did always to other people. By sympathizing with the
hatred and abhorrence which other men must entertain for him, he
becomes in some measure the object of his own hatred and
abhorrence. The situation of the person, who suffered by his
injustice, now calls upon his pity. He is grieved at the thought
of it; regrets the unhappy effects of his own conduct, and feels
at the same time that they have rendered him the proper object of
the resentment and indignation of mankind, and of what is the
natural consequence of resentment, vengeance and punishment. The
thought of this perpetually haunts him, and fills him with terror
and amazement. He dares no longer look society in the face, but
imagines himself as it were rejected, and thrown out from the
affections of all mankind. He cannot hope for the consolation of
sympathy in this his greatest and most dreadful distress. The
remembrance of his crimes has shut out all fellow-feeling with him
from the hearts of his fellow-creatures. The sentiments which they
entertain with regard to him, are the very thing which he is most
afraid of. Every thing seems hostile, and he would be glad to fly
to some inhospitable desert, where he might never more behold the
face of a human creature, nor read in the countenance of mankind
the condemnation of his crimes. But solitude is still more
dreadful than society. His own thoughts can present him with
nothing but what is black, unfortunate, and disastrous, the
melancholy forebodings of incomprehensible misery and ruin. The
horror of solitude drives him back into society, and he comes
again into the presence of mankind, astonished to appear before
them, loaded with shame and distracted with fear, in order to
supplicate some little protection from the countenance of those
very judges, who he knows have already all unanimously condemned
him. Such is the nature of that sentiment, which is properly
called remorse; of all the sentiments which can enter the human
breast the most dreadful. It is made up of shame from the sense of
the impropriety of past conduct; of grief for the effects of it;
of pity for those who suffer by it; and of the dread and terror of
punishment from the consciousness of the justly provoked
resentment of all rational creatures. | |
II.II.13 |
|
The opposite behaviour naturally inspires the opposite
sentiment. The man who, not from frivolous fancy, but from proper
motives, has performed a generous action, when he looks forward to
those whom he has served, feels himself to be the natural object
of their love and gratitude, and, by sympathy with them, of the
esteem and approbation of all mankind. And when he looks backward
to the motive from which he acted, and surveys it in the light in
which the indifferent spectator will survey it, he still continues
to enter into it, and applauds himself by sympathy with the
approbation of this supposed impartial judge. In both these points
of view his own conduct appears to him every way agreeable. His
mind, at the thought of it, is filled with cheerfulness, serenity,
and composure. He is in friendship and harmony with all mankind,
and looks upon his fellow-creatures with confidence and benevolent
satisfaction, secure that he has rendered himself worthy of their
most favourable regards. In the combination of all these
sentiments consists the consciousness of merit, or of deserved
reward. | |
II.II.14 |
|
Chapter III - Of the utility of this constitution of Nature
| |
|
It is thus that man, who can subsist only in society, was
fitted by nature to that situation for which he was made. All the
members of human society stand in need of each others assistance,
and are likewise exposed to mutual injuries. Where the necessary
assistance is reciprocally afforded from love, from gratitude,
from friendship, and esteem, the society flourishes and is happy.
All the different members of it are bound together by the
agreeable bands of love and affection, and are, as it were, drawn
to one common centre of mutual good offices.
| |
II.II.15 |
|
But though the necessary assistance should not be afforded from
such generous and disinterested motives, though among the
different members of the society there should be no mutual love
and affection, the society, though less happy and agreeable, will
not necessarily be dissolved. Society may subsist among different
men, as among different merchants, from a sense of its utility,
without any mutual love or affection; and though no man in it
should owe any obligation, or be bound in gratitude to any other,
it may still be upheld by a mercenary exchange of good offices
according to an agreed valuation. | |
II.II.16 |
|
Society, however, cannot subsist among those who are at all
times ready to hurt and injure one another. The moment that injury
begins, the moment that mutual resentment and animosity take
place, all the bands of it are broke asunder, and the different
members of which it consisted are, as it were, dissipated and
scattered abroad by the violence and opposition of their
discordant affections. If there is any society among robbers and
murderers, they must at least, according to the trite observation,
abstain from robbing and murdering one another. Beneficence,
therefore, is less essential to the existence of society than
justice. Society may subsist, though not in the most comfortable
state, without beneficence; hut the prevalence of injustice must
utterly destroy it. | |
II.II.17 |
|
Though Nature, therefore, exhorts mankind to acts of
beneficence, by the pleasing consciousness of deserved reward, she
has not thought it necessary to guard and enforce the practice of
it by the terrors of merited punishment in case it should be
neglected. It is the ornament which embellishes, not the
foundation which supports the building, and which it was,
therefore, sufficient to recommend, but by no means necessary to
impose. Justice, on the contrary, is the main pillar that upholds
the whole edifice. If it is removed, the great, the immense fabric
of human society, that fabric which to raise and support seems in
this world, if I may say so, to have been the peculiar and darling
care of Nature, must in a moment crumble into atoms. In order to
enforce the observation of justice, therefore, Nature has
implanted in the human breast that consciousness of ill-desert,
those terrors of merited punishment which attend upon its
violation, as the great safe-guards of the association of mankind,
to protect the weak, to curb the violent, and to chastise the
guilty. Men, though naturally sympathetic, feel so little for
another, with whom they have no particular connexion, in
comparison of what they feel for themselves; the misery of one,
who is merely their fellow-creature, is of so little importance to
them in comparison even of a small conveniency of their own; they
have it so much in their power to hurt him, and may have so many
temptations to do so, that if this principle did not stand up
within them in his defence, and overawe them into a respect for
his innocence, they would, like wild beasts, be at all times ready
to fly upon him; and a man would enter an assembly of men as he
enters a den of lions. | |
II.II.18 |
|
In every part of the universe we observe means adjusted with
the nicest artifice to the ends which they are intended to
produce; and in the mechanism of a plant, or animal body, admire
how every thing is contrived for advancing the two great purposes
of nature, the support of the individual, and the propagation of
the species. But in these, and in all such objects, we still
distinguish the efficient from the final cause of their several
motions and organizations. The digestion of the food, the
circulation of the blood, and the secretion of the several juices
which are drawn from it, are operations all of them necessary for
the great purposes of animal life. Yet we never endeavour to
account for them from those purposes as from their efficient
causes, nor imagine that the blood circulates, or that the food
digests of its own accord, and with a view or intention to the
purposes of circulation or digestion. The wheels of the watch are
all admirably adjusted to the end for which it was made, the
pointing of the hour. All their various motions conspire in the
nicest manner to produce this effect. If they were endowed with a
desire and intention to produce it, they could not do it better.
Yet we never ascribe any such desire or intention to them, but to
the watch-maker, and we know that they are put into motion by a
spring, which intends the effect it produces as little as they do.
But though, in accounting for the operations of bodies, we never
fail to distinguish in this manner the efficient from the final
cause, in accounting for those of the mind we are very apt to
confound these two different things with one another. When by
natural principles we are led to advance those ends, which a
refined and enlightened reason would recommend to us, we are very
apt to impute to that reason, as to their efficient cause, the
sentiments and actions by which we advance those ends, and to
imagine that to be the wisdom of man, which in reality is the
wisdom of God. Upon a superficial view, this cause seems
sufficient to produce the effects which are ascribed to it; and
the system of human nature seems to be more simple and agreeable
when all its different operations are in this manner deduced from
a single principle. | |
II.II.19 |
|
As society cannot subsist unless the laws of justice are
tolerably observed, as no social intercourse can take place among
men who do not generally abstain from injuring one another; the
consideration of this necessity, it has been thought, was the
ground upon which we approved of the enforcement of the laws of
justice by the punishment of those who violated them. Man, it has
been said, has a natural love for society, and desires that the
union of mankind should be preserved for its own sake, and though
he himself was to derive no benefit from it. The orderly and
flourishing state of society is agreeable to him, and he takes
delight in contemplating it. Its disorder and confusion, on the
contrary, is the object of his aversion, and he is chagrined at
whatever tends to produce it. He is sensible too that his own
interest is connected with the prosperity of society, and that the
happiness, perhaps the preservation of his existence, depends upon
its preservation. Upon every account, therefore, he has an
abhorrence at whatever can tend to destroy society, and is willing
to make use of every means, which can hinder so hated and so
dreadful an event. Injustice necessarily tends to destroy it.
Every appearance of injustice, therefore, alarms him, and he runs,
if I may say so, to stop the progress of what, if allowed to go
on, would quickly put an end to every thing that is dear to him.
If he cannot restrain it by gentle and fair means, he must beat it
down by force and violence, and at any rate must put a stop to its
further progress. Hence it is, they say, that he often approves of
the enforcement of the laws of justice even by the capital
punishment of those who violate them. The disturber of the public
peace is hereby removed out of the world, and others are terrified
by his fate from imitating his example.
| |
II.II.20 |
|
Such is the account commonly given of our approbation of the
punishment of injustice. And so far this account is undoubtedly
true, that we frequently have occasion to confirm our natural
sense of the propriety and fitness of punishment, by reflecting
how necessary it is for preserving the order of society. When the
guilty is about to suffer that just retaliation, which the natural
indignation of mankind tells them is due to his crimes; when the
insolence of his injustice is broken and humbled by the terror of
his approaching punishment; when he ceases to be an object of
fear, with the generous and humane he begins to be an object of
pity. The thought of what he is about to suffer extinguishes their
resentment for the sufferings of others to which he has given
occasion. They are disposed to pardon and forgive him, and to save
him from that punishment, which in all their cool hours they had
considered as the retribution due to such crimes. Here, therefore,
they have occasion to call to their assistance the consideration
of the general interest of society. They counterbalance the
impulse of this weak and partial humanity by the dictates of a
humanity that is more generous and comprehensive. They reflect
that mercy to the guilty is cruelty to the innocent, and oppose to
the emotions of compassion which they feel for a particular
person, a more enlarged compassion which they feel for mankind.
| |
II.II.21 |
|
Sometimes too we have occasion to defend the propriety of
observing the general rules of justice by the consideration of
their necessity to the support of society. We frequently hear the
young and the licentious ridiculing the most sacred rules of
morality, and professing, sometimes from the corruption, but more
frequently from the vanity of their hearts, the most abominable
maxims of conduct. Our indignation rouses, and we are eager to
refute and expose such detestable principles. But though it is
their intrinsic hatefulness and detestableness, which originally
inflames us against them, we are unwilling to assign this as the
sole reason why we condemn them, or to pretend that it is merely
because we ourselves hate and detest them. The reason, we think,
would not appear to be conclusive. Yet why should it not; if we
hate and detest them because they are the natural and proper
objects of hatred and detestation? But when we are asked why we
should not act in such or such a manner, the very question seems
to suppose that, to those who ask it, this manner of acting does
not appear to be for its own sake the natural and proper object of
those sentiments. We must show them, therefore, that it ought to
be so for the sake of something else. Upon this account we
generally cast about for other arguments, and the consideration
which first occurs to us, is the disorder and confusion of society
which would result from the universal prevalence of such
practices. We seldom fail, therefore, to insist upon this topic.
| |
II.II.22 |
|
But though it commonly requires no great discernment to see the
destructive tendency of all licentious practices to the welfare of
society, it is seldom this consideration which first animates us
against them. All men, even the most stupid and unthinking, abhor
fraud, perfidy, and injustice, and delight to see them punished.
But few men have reflected upon the necessity of justice to the
existence of society, how obvious soever that necessity may appear
to be. | |
II.II.23 |
|
That it is not a regard to the preservation of society, which
originally interests us in the punishment of crimes committed
against individuals, may be demonstrated by many obvious
considerations. The concern which we take in the fortune and
happiness of individuals does not, in common cases, arise from
that which we take in the fortune and happiness of society. We are
no more concerned for the destruction or loss of a single man,
because this man is a member or part of society, and because we
should be concerned for the destruction of society, than we are
concerned for the loss of a single guinea, because this guinea is
a part of a thousand guineas, and because we should be concerned
for the loss of the whole sum. In neither case does our regard for
the individuals arise from our regard for the multitude: but in
both cases our regard for the multitude is compounded and made up
of the particular regards which we feel for the different
individuals of which it is composed. As when a small sum is
unjustly taken from us, we do not so much prosecute the injury
from a regard to the preservation of our whole fortune, as from a
regard to that particular sum which we have lost; so when a single
man is injured, or destroyed, we demand the punishment of the
wrong that has been done to him, not so much from a concern for
the general interest of society, as from a concern for that very
individual who has been injured. It is to be observed, however,
that this concern does not necessarily include in it any degree of
those exquisite sentiments which are commonly called love, esteem,
and affection, and by which we distinguish our particular friends
and acquaintance. The concern which is requisite for this, is no
more than the general fellow-feeling which we have with every man
merely because he is our fellow-creature. We enter into the
resentment even of an odious person, when he is injured by those
to whom he has given no provocation. Our disapprobation of his
ordinary character and conduct does not in this case altogether
prevent our fellow-feeling with his natural indignation; though
with those who are not either extremely candid, or who have not
been accustomed to correct and regulate their natural sentiments
by general rules, it is very apt to damp it.
| |
II.II.24 |
|
Upon some occasions, indeed, we both punish and approve of
punishment, merely from a view to the general interest of society,
which, we imagine, cannot otherwise be secured. Of this kind are
all the punishments inflicted for breaches of what is called
either civil police, or military discipline. Such crimes do not
immediately or directly hurt any particular person; but their
remote consequences, it is supposed, do produce, or might produce,
either a considerable inconveniency, or a great disorder in the
society. A centinel, for example, who falls asleep upon his watch,
suffers death by the laws of war, because such carelessness might
endanger the whole army. This severity may, upon many occasions,
appear necessary, and, for that reason, just and proper. When the
preservation of an individual is inconsistent with the safety of a
multitude, nothing can be more just than that the many should be
preferred to the one. Yet this punishment, how necessary soever,
always appears to be excessively severe. The natural atrocity of
the crime seems to be so little, and the punishment so great, that
it is with great difficulty that our heart can reconcile itself to
it. Though such carelessness appears very blamable, yet the
thought of this crime does not naturally excite any such
resentment, as would prompt us to take such dreadful revenge. A
man of humanity must recollect himself, must make an effort, and
exert his whole firmness and resolution, before he can bring
himself either to inflict it, or to go along with it when it is
inflicted by others. It is not, however, in this manner, that he
looks upon the just punishment of an ungrateful murderer or
parricide. His heart, in this case, applauds with ardour, and even
with transport, the just retaliation which seems due to such
detestable crimes, and which, if, by any accident, they should
happen to escape, he would be highly enraged and disappointed. The
very different sentiments with which the spectator views those
different punishments, is a proof that his approbation of the one
is far from being founded upon the same principles with that of
the other. He looks upon the centinel as an unfortunate victim,
who, indeed, must, and ought to be, devoted to the safety of
numbers, but whom still, in his heart, he would be glad to save;
and he is only sorry, that the interest of the many should oppose
it. But if the murderer should escape from punishment, it would
excite his highest indignation, and he would call upon God to
avenge, in another world, that crime which the injustice of
mankind had neglected to chastise upon earth.
| |
II.II.25 |
|
For it well deserves to be taken notice of, that we are so far
from imagining that injustice ought to be punished in this life,
merely on account of the order of society, which cannot otherwise
be maintained, that Nature teaches us to hope, and religion, we
suppose, authorises us to expect, that it will be punished, even
in a life to come. Our sense of its ill desert pursues it, if I
may say so, even beyond the grave, though the example of its
punishment there cannot serve to deter the rest of mankind, who
see it not, who know it not, from being guilty of the like
practices here. The justice of God, however, we think, still
requires, that he should hereafter avenge the injuries of the
widow and the fatherless, who are here so often insulted with
impunity. In every religion, and in every superstition that the
world has ever beheld, accordingly, there has been a Tartarus as
well as an Elysium; a place provided for the punishment of the
wicked, as well as one for the reward of the just.
| |
II.II.26 |
|
Section III - Of the Influence of Fortune upon the
Sentiments of Mankind, with regard to the Merit or Demerit of
Actions
| |
|
Whatever
praise or blame can be due to any action, must belong either,
first, to the intention or affection of the heart, from which it
proceeds; or, secondly, to the external action or movement of the
body, which this affection gives occasion to; or, lastly, to the
good or bad consequences, which actually, and in fact, proceed
from it. These three different things constitute the whole nature
and circumstances of the action, and must be the foundation of
whatever quality can belong to it. | |
II.III.1 |
|
That the two last of these three circumstances cannot be the
foundation of any praise or blame, is abundantly evident; nor has
the contrary ever been asserted by any body. The external action
or movement of the body is often the same in the most innocent and
in the most blameable actions. He who shoots a bird, and he who
shoots a man, both of them perform the same external movement:
each of them draws the trigger of a gun. The consequences which
actually, and in fact, happen to proceed from any action, are, if
possible, still more indifferent either to praise or blame, than
even the external movement of the body. As they depend, not upon
the agent, but upon fortune, they cannot be the proper foundation
for any sentiment, of which his character and conduct are the
objects. | |
II.III.2 |
|
The only consequences for which he can be answerable, or by
which he can deserve either approbation or disapprobation of any
kind, are those which were someway or other intended, or those
which, at least, show some agreeable or disagreeable quality in
the intention of the heart, from which he acted. To the intention
or affection of the heart, therefore, to the propriety or
impropriety, to the beneficence or hurtfulness of the design, all
praise or blame, all approbation or disapprobation, of any kind,
which can justly be bestowed upon any action, must ultimately
belong. | |
II.III.3 |
|
When this maxim is thus proposed, in abstract and general
terms, there is nobody who does not agree to it. Its self-evident
justice is acknowledged by all the world, and there is not a
dissenting voice among all mankind. Every body allows, that how
different soever the accidental, the unintended and unforeseen
consequences of different actions, yet, if the intentions or
affections from which they arose were, on the one hand, equally
proper and equally beneficent, or, on the other, equally improper
and equally malevolent, the merit or demerit of the actions is
still the same, and the agent is equally the suitable object
either of gratitude or of resentment. | |
II.III.4 |
|
But how well soever we may seem to be persuaded of the truth of
this equitable maxim, when we consider it after this manner, in
abstract, yet when we come to particular cases, the actual
consequences which happen to proceed from any action, have a very
great effect upon our sentiments concerning its merit or demerit,
and almost always either enhance or diminish our sense of both.
Scarce, in any one instance, perhaps, will our sentiments be
found, after examination, to be entirely regulated by this rule,
which we all acknowledge ought entirely to regulate them.
| |
II.III.5 |
|
This irregularity of sentiment, which every body feels, which
scarce any body is sufficiently aware of, and which nobody is
willing to acknowledge, I proceed now to explain; and I shall
consider, first, the cause which gives occasion to it, or the
mechanism by which nature produces it; secondly, the extent of its
influence; and, last of all, the end which it answers, or the
purpose which the Author of nature seems to have intended by it.
| |
II.III.6 |
|
Chapter I - Of the Causes of this Influence of Fortune
| |
|
The causes of pain and pleasure, whatever they are, or however
they operate, seem to be the objects, which, in all animals,
immediately excite those two passions of gratitude and resentment.
They are excited by inanimated, as well as by animated objects. We
are angry, for a moment, even at the stone that hurts us. A child
beats it, a dog barks at it, a choleric man is apt to curse it.
The least reflection, indeed, corrects this sentiment, and we soon
become sensible, that what has no feeling is a very improper
object of revenge. When the mischief, however, is very great, the
object which caused it becomes disagreeable to us ever after, and
we take pleasure to burn or destroy it. We should treat, in this
manner, the instrument which had accidentally been the cause of
the death of a friend, and we should often think ourselves guilty
of a sort of inhumanity, if we neglected to vent this absurd sort
of vengeance upon it. | |
II.III.7 |
|
We conceive, in the same manner, a sort of gratitude for those
inanimated objects, which have been the causes of great, or
frequent pleasure to us. The sailor, who, as soon as he got
ashore, should mend his fire with the plank upon which he had just
escaped from a shipwreck, would seem to be guilty of an unnatural
action. We should expect that he would rather preserve it with
care and affection, as a monument that was, in some measure, dear
to him. A man grows fond of a snuff-box, of a pen-knife, of a
staff which he has long made use of, and conceives something like
a real love and affection for them. If he breaks or loses them, he
is vexed out of all proportion to the value of the damage. The
house which we have long lived in, the tree, whose verdure and
shade we have long enjoyed, are both looked upon with a sort of
respect that seems due to such benefactors. The decay of the one,
or the ruin of the other, affects us with a kind of melancholy,
though we should sustain no loss by it. The Dryads and the Lares
of the ancients, a sort of genii of trees and houses, were
probably first suggested by this sort of affection, which the
authors of those superstitions felt for such objects, and which
seemed unreasonable, if there was nothing animated about them.
| |
II.III.8 |
|
But, before any thing can be the proper object of gratitude or
resentment, it must not only be the cause of pleasure or pain, it
must likewise be capable of feeling them. Without this other
quality, those passions cannot vent themselves with any sort of
satisfaction upon it. As they are excited by the causes of
pleasure and pain, so their gratification consists in retaliating
those sensations upon what gave occasion to them; which it is to
no purpose to attempt upon what has no sensibility. Animals,
therefore, are less improper objects of gratitude and resentment
than inanimated objects. The dog that bites, the ox that gores,
are both of them punished. If they have been the causes of the
death of any person, neither the public, nor the relations of the
slain, can be satisfied, unless they are put to death in their
turn: nor is this merely for the security of the living, but, in
some measure, to revenge the injury of the dead. Those animals, on
the contrary, that have been remarkably serviceable to their
masters, become the objects of a very lively gratitude. We are
shocked at the brutality of that officer, mentioned in the Turkish
Spy, who stabbed the horse that had carried him across an arm of
the sea, lest that ani mal should afterwards distinguish some
other person by a similar adventure. | |
II.III.9 |
|
But, though animals are not only the causes of pleasure and
pain, but are also capable of feeling those sensations, they are
still far from being complete and perfect objects, either of
gratitude or resentment; and those passions still feel, that there
is something wanting to their entire gratification. What gratitude
chiefly desires, is not only to make the benefactor feel pleasure
in his turn, but to make him conscious that he meets with this
reward on account of his past conduct, to make him pleased with
that conduct, and to satisfy him that the person upon whom he
bestowed his good offices was not unworthy of them. What most of
all charms us in our benefactor, is the concord between his
sentiments and our own, with regard to what interests us so nearly
as the worth of our own character, and the esteem that is due to
us. We are delighted to find a person who values us as we value
ourselves, and distinguishes us from the rest of mankind, with an
attention not unlike that with which we distinguish ourselves. To
maintain in him these agreeable and flattering sentiments, is one
of the chief ends proposed by the returns we are disposed to make
to him. A generous mind often disdains the interested thought of
extorting new favours from its benefactor, by what may be called
the importunities of its gratitude. But to preserve and to
increase his esteem, is an interest which the greatest mind does
not think unworthy of its attention. And this is the foundation of
what I formerly observed, that when we cannot enter into the
motives of our benefactor, when his conduct and character appear
unworthy of our approbation, let his services have been ever so
great, our gratitude is always sensibly diminished. We are less
flattered by the distinction. and to preserve the esteem of so
weak, or so worthless a patron, seems to be an object which does
not deserve to be pursued for its own sake.
| |
II.III.10 |
|
The object, on the contrary, which resentment is chiefly intent
upon, is not so much to make our enemy feel pain in his turn, as
to make him conscious that he feels it upon account of his past
conduct, to make him repent of that conduct, and to make him
sensible, that the person whom he injured did not deserve to be
treated in that manner. What chiefly enrages us against the man
who injures or insults us, is the little account which he seems to
make of us, the unreasonable preference which he gives to himself
above us, and that absurd self-love, by which he seems to imagine,
that other people may be sacrificed at any time, to his
conveniency or his humour. The glaring impropriety of this
conduct, the gross insolence and injustice which it seems to
involve in it, often shock and exasperate us more than all the
mischief which we have suffered. To bring him back to a more just
sense of what is due to other people, to make him sensible of what
he owes us, and of the wrong that he has done to us, is frequently
the principal end proposed in our revenge, which is always
imperfect when it cannot accomplish this. When our enemy appears
to have done us no injury, when we are sensible that he acted
quite properly, that, in his situation, we should have done the
same thing, and that we deserved from him all the mischief we met
with; in that case, if we have the least spark either of candour
or justice, we can entertain no sort of resentment.
| |
II.III.11 |
|
Before any thing, therefore, can be the complete and proper
object, either of gratitude or resentment, it must possess three
different qualifications. First, it must be the cause of pleasure
in the one case, and of pain in the other. Secondly, it must be
capable of feeling those sensations. And, thirdly, it must not
only have produced those sensations, but it must in have produced
them from design, and from a design that is approved of the one
case, and disapproved of in the other. It is by the first
qualification, that any object is capable of exciting those
passions: it is by the second, that it is in any respect capable
of gratifying them: the third qualification is not only necessary
for their complete satisfaction, but as it gives a pleasure or
pain that is both exquisite and peculiar, it is likewise an
additional exciting cause of those passions.
| |
II.III.12 |
|
As what gives pleasure or pain, either in one way or another,
is the sole exciting cause of gratitude and resentment; though the
intentions of any person should be ever so proper and beneficent
on the one hand, or ever so improper and malevolent on the other;
yet, if he has failed in producing either the good or the evil
which he intended, as one of the exciting causes is wanting in
both cases, less gratitude seems due to him in the one, and less
resentment in the other. And, on the contrary, though in the
intentions of any person, there was either no laudable degree of
benevolence on the one hand, or no blameable degree of malice on
the other; yet, if his actions should produce either great good or
great evil, as one of the exciting causes takes place upon both
these occasions, some gratitude is apt to arise towards him in the
one, and some resentment in the other. A shadow of merit seems to
fall upon him in the first, a shadow of demerit in the second.
And, as the consequences of actions are altogether under the
empire of Fortune, hence arises her influence upon the sentiments
of mankind with regard to merit and demerit.
| |
II.III.13 |
|
Chapter II - Of the extent of this Influence of Fortune
| |
|
The effect of this influence of fortune is, first, to diminish
our sense of the merit or demerit of those actions which arose
from the most laudable or blamable intentions, when they fail of
producing their proposed effects: and, secondly, to increase our
sense of the merit or demerit of actions, beyond what is due to
the motives or affections from which they proceed, when they
accidentally give occasion either to extraordinary pleasure or
pain. | |
II.III.14 |
|
1. First, I say, though the intentions of any person should be
ever so proper and beneficent, on the one hand, or ever so
improper and malevolent, on the other, yet, if they fail in
producing their effects, his merit seems imperfect in the one
case, and his demerit incomplete in the other. Nor is this
irregularity of sentiment felt only by those who are immediately
affected by the consequences of any action. It is felt, in some
measure, even by the impartial spectator. The man who solicits an
office for another, without obtaining it, is regarded as his
friend, and seems to deserve his love and affection. But the man
who not only solicits, but procures it, is more peculiarly
considered as his patron and benefactor, and is entitled to his
respect and gratitude. The person obliged, we are apt to think,
may, with some justice, imagine himself on a level with the first:
but we cannot enter into his sentiments, if he does not feel
himself inferior to the second. It is common indeed to say, that
we are equally obliged to the man who has endeavoured to serve us,
as to him who actually did so. It is the speech which we
constantly make upon every unsuccessful attempt of this kind; but
which, like all other fine speeches, must be understood with a
grain of allowance. The sentiments which a man of generosity
entertains for the friend who fails, may often indeed be nearly
the same with those which he conceives for him who succeeds: and
the more generous he is, the more nearly will those sentiments
approach to an exact level. With the truly generous, to be
beloved, to be esteemed by those whom they themselves think worthy
of esteem, gives more pleasure, and thereby excites more
gratitude, than all the advantages which they can ever expect from
those sentiments. When they lose those advantages therefore, they
seem to lose but a trifle, which is scarce worth regarding. They
still however lose something. Their pleasure therefore, and
consequently their gratitude, is not perfectly complete: and
accordingly if, between the friend who fails and the friend who
succeeds, all other circumstances are equal, there will, even in
the noblest and the best mind, be some little difference of
affection in favour of him who succeeds. Nay, so unjust are
mankind in this respect, that though the intended benefit should
be procured, yet if it is not procured by the means of a
particular benefactor, they are apt to think that less gratitude
is due to the man, who with the best intentions in the world could
do no more than help it a little forward. As their gratitude is in
this case divided among the different persons who contributed to
their pleasure, a smaller share of it seems due to any one. Such a
person, we hear men commonly say, intended no doubt to serve us;
and we really believe exerted himself to the utmost of his
abilities for that purpose. We are not, however, obliged to him
for this benefit; since, had it not been for the concurrence of
others, all that he could have done would never have brought it
about. This consideration, they imagine, should, even in the eyes
of the impartial spectator, diminish the debt which they owe to
him. The person himself who has unsuccessfully endeavoured to
confer a benefit, has by no means the same dependency upon the
gratitude of the man whom he meant to oblige, nor the same sense
of his own merit towards him, which he would have had in the case
of success. | |
II.III.15 |
|
Even the merit of talents and abilities which some accident has
hindered from producing their effects, seems in some measure
imperfect, even to those who are fully convinced of their capacity
to produce them. The general who has been hindered by the envy of
ministers from gaining some great advantage over the enemies of
his country, regrets the loss of the opportunity for ever after.
Nor is it only upon account of the public that he regrets it. He
laments that he was hindered from performing an action which would
have added a new lustre to his character in his own eyes, as well
as in those of every other person. It satisfies neither himself
nor others to reflect that the plan or design was all that
depended on him, that no greater capacity was required to execute
it than what was necessary to concert it: that he was allowed to
be every way capable of executing it, and that had he been
permitted to go on, success was infallible. He still did not
execute it; and though he might deserve all the approbation which
is due to a magnanimous and great design, he still wanted the
actual merit of having performed a great action. To take the
management of any affair of public concern from the man who has
almost brought it to a conclusion, is regarded as the most
invidious injustice. As he had done so much, he should, we think,
have been allowed to acquire the complete merit of putting an end
to it. It was objected to Pompey, that he came in upon the
victories of Lucullus, and gathered those laurels which were due
to the fortune and valour of another. The glory of Lucullus, it
seems, was less complete even in the opinion of his own friends,
when he was not permitted to finish that conquest which his
conduct and courage had put in the power of almost any man to
finish. It mortifies an architect when his plans are either not
executed at all, or when they are so far altered as to spoil the
effect of the building. The plan, however, is all that depends
upon the architect. The whole of his genius is, to good judges, as
completely discovered in that as in the actual execution. But a
plan does not, even to the most intelligent, give the same
pleasure as a noble and magnificent building. They may discover as
much both of taste and genius in the one as in the other. But
their effects are still vastly different, and the amusement
derived from the first, never approaches to the wonder and
admiration which are sometimes excited by the second. We may
believe of many men, that their talents are superior to those of
Caesar and Alexander; and that in the same situations they would
perform still greater actions. In the mean time, however, we do
not behold them with that astonishment and admiration with which
those two heroes have been regarded in all ages and nations. The
calm judgments of the mind may approve of them more, but they want
the splendour of great actions to dazzle and transport it. The
superiority of virtues and talents has not, even upon those who
acknowledge that superiority, the same effect with the superiority
of atchievements. | |
II.III.16 |
|
As the merit of an unsuccessful attempt to do good seems thus,
in the eyes of ungrateful mankind, to be diminished by the
miscarriage, so does likewise the demerit of an unsuccessful
attempt to do evil. The design to commit a crime, how clearly
soever it may be proved, is scarce ever punished with the same
severity as the actual commission of it. The case of treason is
perhaps the only exception. That crime immediately affecting the
being of the government itself, the government is naturally more
jealous of it than of any other. In the punishment of treason, the
sovereign resents the injuries which are immediately done to
himself: in the punishment of other crimes, he resents those which
are done to other men. It is his own resentment which he indulges
in the one case: it is that of his subjects which by sympathy he
enters into in the other. In the first case, therefore, as he
judges in his own cause, he is very apt to be more violent and
sanguinary in his punishments than the impartial spectator can
approve of. His resentment too rises here upon smaller occasions,
and does not always, as in other cases, wait for the perpetration
of the crime, or even for the attempt to commit it. A treasonable
concert, though nothing has been done, or even attempted in
consequence of it, nay, a treasonable conversation, is in many
countries punished in the same manner as the actual commission of
treason. With regard to all other crimes, the mere design, upon
which no attempt has followed, is seldom punished at all, and is
never punished severely. A criminal design, and a criminal action,
it may be said indeed, do not necessarily suppose the same degree
of depravity, and ought not therefore to be subjected to the same
punishment. We are capable, it may be said, of resolving, and even
of taking measures to execute, many things which, when it comes to
the point, we feel ourselves altogether incapable of executing.
But this reason can have no place when the design has been carried
the length of the last attempt. The man, however, who fires a
pistol at his enemy but misses him, is punished with death by the
laws of scarce any country. By the old law of Scotland, though he
should wound him, yet, unless death ensues within a certain time,
the assassin is not liable to the last punishment. The resentment
of mankind, however, runs so high against this crime, their terror
for the man who shows himself capable of committing it, is so
great, that the mere attempt to commit it ought in all countries
to be capital. The attempt to commit smaller crimes is almost
always punished very lightly, and sometimes is not punished at
all. The thief, whose hand has been caught in his neighbour's
pocket before he had taken any thing out of it, is punished with
ignominy only. If he had got time to take away an handkerchief, he
would have been put to death. The house-breaker, who has been
found setting a ladder to his neighbour's window, but had not got
into it, is not exposed to the capital punishment. The attempt to
ravish is not punished as a rape. The attempt to seduce a married
woman is not punished at all, though seduction is punished
severely. Our resentment against the person who only attempted to
do a mischief, is seldom so strong as to bear us out in inflicting
the same punishment upon him, which we should have thought due if
he had actually done it. In the one case, the joy of our
deliverance alleviates our sense of the atrocity of his conduct;
in the other, the grief of our misfortune increases it. His real
demerit, however, is undoubtedly the same in both cases, since his
intentions were equally criminal; and there is in this respect,
therefore, an irregularity in the sentiments of all men, and a
consequent relaxation of discipline in the laws of, I believe, all
nations, of the most civilized, as well as of the most barbarous.
The humanity of a civilized people disposes them either to
dispense with, or to mitigate punishments wherever their natural
indignation is not goaded on by the consequences of the crime.
Barbarians, on the other hand, when no actual consequence has
happened from any action, are not apt to be very delicate or
inquisitive about the motives. | |
II.III.17 |
|
The person himself who either from passion, or from the
influence of bad company, has resolved, and perhaps taken measures
to perpetrate some crime, but who has fortunately been prevented
by an accident which put it out of his power, is sure, if he has
any remains of conscience, to regard this event all his life after
as a great and signal deliverance. He can never think of it
without returning thanks to Heaven for having been thus graciously
pleased to save him from the guilt in which he was just ready to
plunge himself, and to hinder him from rendering all the rest of
his life a scene of horror, remorse, and repentance. But though
his hands are innocent, he is conscious that his heart is equally
guilty as if he had actually executed what he was so fully
resolved upon. It gives great ease to his conscience, however, to
consider that the crime was not executed, though he knows that the
failure arose from no virtue in him. He still considers himself as
less deserving of punishment and resentment; and this good fortune
either diminishes, or takes away altogether, all sense of guilt.
To remember how much he was resolved upon it, has no other effect
than to make him regard his escape as the greater and more
miraculous: for he still fancies that he has escaped, and he looks
back upon the danger to which his peace of mind was exposed, with
that terror, with which one who is in safety may sometimes
remember the hazard he was in of falling over a precipice, and
shudder with horror at the thought. | |
II.III.18 |
|
2. The second effect of this influence of fortune, is to
increase our sense of the merit or demerit of actions beyond what
is due to the motives or affection from which they proceed, when
they happen to give occasion to extraordinary pleasure or pain.
The agreeable or disagreeable effects of the action often throw a
shadow of merit or demerit upon the agent, though in his intention
there was nothing that deserved either praise or blame, or at
least that deserved them in the degree in which we are apt to
bestow them. Thus, even the messenger of bad news is disagreeable
to us, and, on the contrary, we feel a sort of gratitude for the
man who brings us good tidings. For a moment we look upon them
both as the authors, the one of our good, the other of our bad
fortune, and regard them in some measure as if they had really
brought about the events which they only give an account of. The
first author of our joy is naturally the object of a transitory
gratitude: we embrace him with warmth and affection, and should be
glad, during the instant of our prosperity, to reward him as for
some signal service. By the custom of all courts, the officer, who
brings the news of a victory, is entitled to considerable
preferments, and the general always chuses one of his principal
favourites to go upon so agreeable an errand. The first author of
our sorrow is, on the contrary, just as naturally the object of a
transitory resentment. We can scarce avoid looking upon him with
chagrin and uneasiness; and the rude and brutal are apt to vent
upon him that spleen which his intelligence gives occasion to.
Tigranes, king of Armenia, struck off the head of the man who
brought him the first account of the approach of a formidable
enemy. To punish in this manner the author of bad tidings, seems
barbarous and inhuman: yet, to reward the messenger of good news,
is not disagreeable to us; we think it suitable to the bounty of
kings. But why do we make this difference, since, if there is no
fault in the one, neither is there any merit in the other? It is
because any sort of reason seems sufficient to authorize the
exertion of the social and benevolent affections. but it requires
the most solid and substantial to make us enter into that of the
unsocial and malevolent. | |
II.III.19 |
|
But though in general we are averse to enter into the unsocial
and malevolent affections, though we lay it down for a rule that
we ought never to approve of their gratification, unless so far as
the malicious and unjust intention of the person, against whom
they are directed, renders him their proper object; yet, upon some
occasions, we relax of this severity. When the negligence of one
man has occasioned some unintended damage to another, we generally
enter so far into the resentment of the sufferer, as to approve of
his inflicting a punishment upon the offender much beyond what the
offence would have appeared to deserve, had no such unlucky
consequence followed from it. | |
II.III.20 |
|
There is a degree of negligence, which would appear to deserve
some chastisement though it should occasion no damage to any body.
Thus, if a person should throw a large stone over a wall into a
public street without giving warning to those who might be passing
by, and without regarding where it was likely to fall, he would
undoubtedly deserve some chastisement. A very accurate police
would punish so absurd an action, even though it had done no
mischief. The person who has been guilty of it, shows an insolent
contempt of the happiness and safety of others. There is real
injustice in his conduct. He wantonly exposes his neighbour to
what no man in his senses would chuse to expose himself, and
evidently wants that sense of what is due to his fellow-creatures
which is the basis of justice and of society. Gross negligence
therefore is, in the law, said to be almost equal to malicious
design. When any unlucky consequences happen
from such carelessness, the person who has been guilty of it is
often punished as if he had really intended those consequences;
and his conduct, which was only thoughtless and insolent, and what
deserved some chastisement, is considered as atrocious, and as
liable to the severest punishment. Thus if, by the imprudent
action above-mentioned, he should accidentally kill a man, he is,
by the laws of many countries, particularly by the old law of
Scotland, liable to the last punishment. And though this is no
doubt excessively severe, it is not altogether inconsistent with
our natural sentiments. Our just indignation against the folly and
inhumanity of his conduct is exasperated by our sympathy with the
unfortunate sufferer. Nothing, however, would appear more shocking
to our natural sense of equity, than to bring a man to the
scaffold merely for having thrown a stone carelessly into the
street without hurting any body. The folly and inhumanity of his
conduct, however, would in this case be the same; but still our
sentiments would be very different. The consideration of this
difference may satisfy us how much the indignation, even of the
spectator, is apt to be animated by the actual consequences of the
action. In cases of this kind there will, if I am not mistaken, be
found a great degree of severity in the laws of almost all
nations; as I have already observed that in those of an opposite
kind there was a very general relaxation of discipline.
| |
II.III.21 |
|
There is another degree of negligence which does not involve in
it any sort of injustice. The person who is guilty of it treats
his neighbours as he treats himself, means no harm to any body,
and is far from entertaining any insolent contempt for the safety
and happiness of others. He is not, however, so careful and
circumspect in his conduct as he ought to be, and deserves upon
this account some degree of blame and censure, but no sort of
punishment. Yet if by a negligence of this kind he should occasion some
damage to another person, he is by the laws of, I believe, all
countries, obliged to compensate it. And though this is no doubt a
real punishment, and what no mortal would have thought of
inflicting upon him, had it not been for the unlucky accident
which his conduct gave occasion to; yet this decision of the law
is approved of by the natural sentiments of all mankind. Nothing,
we think, can be more just than that one man should not suffer by
the carelessness of another; and that the damage occasioned by
blamable negligence, should be made up by the person who was
guilty of it. | |
II.III.22 |
|
There is another species of negligence, which consists merely in a want of the
most anxious timidity and circumspection, with regard to all the
possible consequences of our actions. The want of this painful
attention, when no bad consequences follow from it, is so far from
being regarded as blamable, that the contrary quality is rather
considered as such. That timid circumspection which is afraid of
every thing, is never regarded as a virtue, but as a quality which
more than any other incapacitates for action and business. Yet
when, from a want of this excessive care, a person happens to
occasion some damage to another, he is often by the law obliged to
compensate it. Thus, by the Aquilian law, the man, who not being
able to manage a horse that had accidentally taken fright, should
happen to ride down his neighbour's slave, is obliged to
compensate the damage. When an accident of this kind happens, we
are apt to think that he ought not to have rode such a horse, and
to regard his attempting it as an unpardonable levity; though
without this accident we should not only have made no such
reflection, but should have regarded his refusing it as the effect
of timid weakness, and of an anxiety about merely possible events,
which it is to no purpose to be aware of. The person himself, who
by an accident even of this kind has involuntarily hurt another,
seems to have some sense of his own ill desert, with regard to
him. He naturally runs up to the sufferer to express his concern
for what has happened, and to make every acknowledgment in his
power. If he has any sensibility, he necessarily desires to
compensate the damage, and to do every thing he can to appease
that animal resentment, which he is sensible will be apt to arise
in the breast of the sufferer. To make no apology, to offer no
atonement, is regarded as the highest brutality. Yet why should he
make an apology more than any other person? Why should he, since
he was equally innocent with any other bystander, be thus singled
out from among all mankind, to make up for the bad fortune of
another? This task would surely never be imposed upon him, did not
even the impartial spectator feel some indulgence for what may be
regarded as the unjust resentment of that other.
| |
II.III.23 |
|
Chapter III - Of the final cause of this Irregularity of
Sentiments
| |
|
Such is the effect of the good or bad consequences of actions
upon the sentiments both of the person who performs them, and of
others; and thus, Fortune, which governs the world, has some
influence where we should be least willing to allow her any, and
directs in some measure the sentiments of mankind, with regard to
the character and conduct both of themselves and others. That the
world judges by the event, and not by the design, has been in all
ages the complaint, and is the great discouragement of virtue.
Every body agrees to the general maxim, that as the event does not
depend on the agent, it ought to have no influence upon our
sentiments, with regard to the merit or propriety of his conduct.
But when we come to particulars, we find that our sentiments are
scarce in any one instance exactly conformable to what this
equitable maxim would direct. The happy or unprosperous event of
any action, is not only apt to give us a good or bad opinion of
the prudence with which it was conducted, but almost always too
animates our gratitude or resentment, our sense of the merit or
demerit of the design. | |
II.III.24 |
|
Nature, however, when she implanted the seeds of this
irregularity in the human breast, seems, as upon all other
occasions, to have intended the happiness and perfection of the
species. If the hurtfulness of the design, if the malevolence of
the affection, were alone the causes which excited our resentment,
we should feel all the furies of that passion against any person
in whose breast we suspected or believed such designs or
affections were harboured, though they had never broke out into
any action. Sentiments, thoughts, intentions, would become the
objects of punishment; and if the indignation of mankind run as
high against them as against actions; if the baseness of the
thought which had given birth to no action, seemed in the eyes of
the world as much to call aloud for vengeance as the baseness of
the action, every court of judicature would become a real
inquisition. There would be no safety for the most innocent and
circumspect conduct. Bad wishes, bad views, bad designs, might
still be suspected; and while these excited the same indignation
with bad conduct, while bad intentions were as much resented as
bad actions, they would equally expose the person to punishment
and resentment. Actions, therefore, which either produce actual
evil, or attempt to produce it, and thereby put us in the
immediate fear of it, are by the Author of nature rendered the
only proper and approved objects of human punishment and
resentment. Sentiments, designs, affections, though it is from
these that according to cool reason human actions derive their
whole merit or demerit, are placed by the great Judge of hearts
beyond the limits of every human jurisdiction, and are reserved
for the cognizance of his own unerring tribunal. That necessary
rule of justice, therefore, that men in this life are liable to
punishment for their actions only, not for their designs and
intentions, is founded upon this salutary and useful irregularity
in human sentiments concerning merit or demerit, which at first
sight appears so absurd and unaccountable. But every part of
nature, when attentively surveyed, equally demonstrates the
providential care of its Author, and we may admire the wisdom and
goodness of God even in the weakness and folly of man.
| |
II.III.25 |
|
Nor is that irregularity of sentiments altogether without its
utility, by which the merit of an unsuccessful attempt to serve,
and much more that of mere good inclinations and kind wishes,
appears to be imperfect. Man was made for action, and to promote
by the exertion of his faculties such changes in the external
circumstances both of himself and others, as may seem most
favourable to the happiness of all. He must not be satisfied with
indolent benevolence, nor fancy himself the friend of mankind,
because in his heart he wishes well to the prosperity of the
world. That he may call forth the whole vigour of his soul, and
strain every nerve, in order to produce those ends which it is the
purpose of his being to advance, Nature has taught him, that
neither himself nor mankind can be fully satisfied with his
conduct, nor bestow upon it the full measure of applause, unless
he has actually produced them. He is made to know, that the praise
of good intentions, without the merit of good offices, will be but
of little avail to excite either the loudest acclamations of the
world, or even the highest degree of self-applause. The man who
has performed no single action of importance, but whose whole
conversation and deportment express the justest, the noblest, and
most generous sentiments, can be entitled to demand no very high
reward, even though his inutility should be owing to nothing but
the want of an opportunity to serve. We can still refuse it him
without blame. We can still ask him, What have you done? What
actual service can you produce, to entitle you to so great a
recompense? We esteem you, and love you; but we owe you nothing.
To reward indeed that latent virtue which has been useless only
for want of an opportunity to serve, to bestow upon it those
honours and preferments, which, though in some measure it may be
said to deserve them, it could not with propriety have insisted
upon, is the effect of the most divine benevolence. To punish, on
the contrary, for the affections of the heart only, where no crime
has been committed, is the most insolent and barbarous tyranny.
The benevolent affections seem to deserve most praise, when they
do not wait till it becomes almost a crime for them not to exert
themselves. The malevolent, on the contrary, can scarce be too
tardy, too slow, or deliberate. | |
II.III.26 |
|
It is even of considerable importance, that the evil which is
done without design should be regarded as a misfortune to the doer
as well as to the sufferer. Man is thereby taught to reverence the
happiness of his brethren, to tremble lest he should, even
unknowingly, do any thing that can hurt them, and to dread that
animal resentment which, he feels, is ready to burst out against
him, if he should, without design, be the unhappy instrument of
their calamity. As, in the ancient heathen religion, that holy
ground which had been consecrated to some god, was not to be trod
upon but upon solemn and necessary occasions, and the man who had
even ignorantly violated it, became piacular from that moment,
and, until proper atonement should be made, incurred the vengeance
of that powerful and invisible being to whom it had been set
apart; so, by the wisdom of Nature, the happiness of every
innocent man is, in the same manner, rendered holy, consecrated,
and hedged round against the approach of every other man; not to
be wantonly trod upon, not even to be, in any respect, ignorantly
and involuntarily violated, without requiring some expiation, some
atonement in proportion to the greatness of such undesigned
violation. A man of humanity, who accidentally, and without the
smallest degree of blamable negligence, has been the cause of the
death of another man, feels himself piacular, though not guilty.
During his whole life he considers this accident as one of the
greatest misfortunes that could have befallen him. If the family
of the slain is poor, and he himself in tolerable circumstances,
he immediately takes them under his protection, and, without any
other merit, thinks them entitled to every degree of favour and
kindness. If they are in better circumstances, he endeavours by
every submission, by every expression of sorrow, by rendering them
every good office which he can devise or they accept of, to atone
for what has happened, and to propitiate, as much as possible,
their, perhaps natural, though no doubt most unjust resentment,
for the great, though involuntary, offence which he has given
them. | |
II.III.27 |
|
The distress which an innocent person feels, who, by some
accident, has been led to do something which, if it had been done
with knowledge and design, would have justly exposed him to the
deepest reproach, has given occasion to some of the finest and
most interesting scenes both of the ancient and of the modern
drama. It is this fallacious sense of guilt, if I may call it so,
which constitutes the whole distress of Oedipus and Jocasta upon
the Greek, of Monimia and Isabella upon the English, theatre. They
are all of them in the highest degree piacular, though not one of
them is in the smallest degree guilty. | |
II.III.28 |
|
Notwithstanding, however, all these seeming irregularities of
sentiment, if man should unfortunately either give occasion to
those evils which he did not intend, or fail in producing that
good which he intended, Nature has not left his innocence
altogether without consolation, nor his virtue altogether without
reward. He then calls to his assistance that just and equitable
maxim, That those events which did not depend upon our conduct,
ought not to diminish the esteem that is due to us. He summons up
his whole magnanimity and firmness of soul, and strives to regard
himself, not in the light in which he at present appears, but in
that in which he ought to appear, in which he would have appeared
had his generous designs been crowned with success, and in which
he would still appear, notwithstanding their miscarriage, if the
sentiments of mankind were either altogether candid and equitable,
or even perfectly consistent with themselves. The more candid and
humane part of mankind entirely go along with the effort which he
thus makes to support himself in his own opinion. They exert their
whole generosity and greatness of mind, to correct in themselves
this irregularity of human nature, and endeavour to regard his
unfortunate magnanimity in the same light in which, had it been
successful, they would, without any such generous exertion, have
naturally been disposed to consider it.
| |
II.III.29 |
|
|
|
3. Of the Foundation of our Judgments concerning our own
Sentiments and Conduct, and of the Sense of Duty
|
Chapter I - Of the Principle of Self-approbation and of
Self-disapprobation
| |
|
In the
two foregoing parts of this discourse, I have chiefly considered
the origin and foundation of our judgments concerning the
sentiments and conduct of others. I come now to consider more
particularly the origin of those concerning our own.
| |
III.I.1 |
|
The principle by which we naturally either approve or
disapprove of our own conduct, seems to be altogether the same
with that by which we exercise the like judgments concerning the
conduct of other people. We either approve or disapprove of the
conduct of another man according as we feel that, when we bring
his case home to ourselves, we either can or cannot entirely
sympathize with the sentiments and motives which directed it. And,
in the same manner, we either approve or disapprove of our own
conduct, according as we feel that, when we place ourselves in the
situation of another man, and view it, as it were, with his eyes
and from his station, we either can or cannot entirely enter into
and sympathize with the sentiments and motives which influenced
it. We can never survey our own sentiments and motives, we can
never form any judgment concerning them; unless we remove
ourselves, as it were, from our own natural station, and endeavour
to view them as at a certain distance from us. But we can do this
in no other way than by endeavouring to view them with the eyes of
other people, or as other people are likely to view them. Whatever
judgment we can form concerning them, accordingly, must always
bear some secret reference, either to what are, or to what, upon a
certain condition, would be, or to what, we imagine, ought to be
the judgment of others. We endeavour to examine our own conduct as
we imagine any other fair and impartial spectator would examine
it. If, upon placing ourselves in his situation, we thoroughly
enter into all the passions and motives which influenced it, we
approve of it, by sympathy with the approbation of this supposed
equitable judge. If otherwise, we enter into his disapprobation,
and condemn it. | |
III.I.2 |
|
Were it possible that a human creature could grow up to manhood
in some solitary place, without any communication with his own
species, he could no more think of his own character, of the
propriety or demerit of his own sentiments and conduct, of the
beauty or deformity of his own mind, than of the beauty or
deformity of his own face. All these are objects which he cannot
easily see, which naturally he does not look at, and with regard
to which he is provided with no mirror which can present them to
his view. Bring him into society, and he is immediately provided
with the mirror which he wanted before. It is placed in the
countenance and behaviour of those he lives with, which always
mark when they enter into, and when they disapprove of his
sentiments; and it is here that he first views the propriety and
impropriety of his own passions, the beauty and deformity of his
own mind. To a man who from his birth was a stranger to society,
the objects of his passions, the external bodies which either
pleased or hurt him, would occupy his whole attention. The
passions themselves, the desires or aversions, the joys or
sorrows, which those objects excited, though of all things the
most immediately present to him, could scarce ever be the objects
of his thoughts. The idea of them could never interest him so much
as to call upon his attentive consideration. The consideration of
his joy could in him excite no new joy, nor that of his sorrow any
new sorrow, though the consideration of the causes of those
passions might often excite both. Bring him into society, and all
his own passions will immediately become the causes of new
passions. He will observe that mankind approve of some of them,
and are disgusted by others. He will be elevated in the one case,
and cast down in the other; his desires and aversions, his joys
and sorrows, will now often become the causes of new desires and
new aversions, new joys and new sorrows: they will now, therefore,
interest him deeply, and often call upon his most attentive
consideration. | |
III.I.3 |
|
Our first ideas of personal beauty and deformity, are drawn
from the shape and appearance of others, not from our own. We soon
become sensible, however, that others exercise the same criticism
upon us. We are pleased when they approve of our figure, and are
disobliged when they seem to be disgusted. We become anxious to
know how far our appearance deserves either their blame or
approbation. We examine our persons limb by limb, and by placing
ourselves before a looking-glass, or by some such expedient,
endeavour, as much as possible, to view ourselves at the distance
and with the eyes of other people. If, after this examination, we
are satisfied with our own appearance, we can more easily support
the most disadvantageous judgments of others. If, on the contrary,
we are sensible that we are the natural objects of distaste, every
appearance of their disapprobation mortifies us beyond all
measure. A man who is tolerably handsome, will allow you to laugh
at any little irregularity in his person; but all such jokes are
commonly unsupportable to one who is really deformed. It is
evident, however, that we are anxious about our own beauty and
deformity, only upon account of its effect upon others. If we had
no connexion with society, we should be altogether indifferent
about either. | |
III.I.4 |
|
In the same manner our first moral criticisms are exercised
upon the characters and conduct of other people; and we are all
very forward to observe how each of these affects us. But we soon
learn, that other people are equally frank with regard to our own.
We become anxious to know how far we deserve their censure or
applause, and whether to them we must necessarily appear those
agreeable or disagreeable creatures which they represent us. We
begin, upon this account, to examine our own passions and conduct,
and to consider how these must appear to them, by considering how
they would appear to us if in their situation. We suppose
ourselves the spectators of our own behaviour, and endeavour to
imagine what effect it would, in this light, produce upon us. This
is the only looking-glass by which we can, in some measure, with
the eyes of other people, scrutinize the propriety of our own
conduct. If in this view it pleases us, we are tolerably
satisfied. We can be more indifferent about the applause, and, in
some measure, despise the censure of the world. secure that,
however misunderstood or misrepresented, we are the natural and
proper objects of approbation. On the contrary, if we are doubtful
about it, we are often, upon that very account, more anxious to
gain their approbation, and, provided we have not already, as they
say, shaken hands with infamy, we are altogether distracted at the
thoughts of their censure, which then strikes us with double
severity. | |
III.I.5 |
|
When I endeavour to examine my own conduct, when I endeavour to
pass sentence upon it, and either to approve or condemn it, it is
evident that, in all such cases, I divide myself, as it were, into
two persons; and that I, the examiner and judge, represent a
different character from that other I, the person whose conduct is
examined into and judged of. The first is the spectator, whose
sentiments with regard to my own conduct I endeavour to enter
into, by placing myself in his situation, and by considering how
it would appear to me, when seen from that particular point of
view. The second is the agent, the person whom I properly call
myself, and of whose conduct, under the character of a spectator,
I was endeavouring to form some opinion. The first is the judge;
the second the person judged of. But that the judge should, in
every respect, be the same with the person judged of, is as
impossible, as that the cause should, in every respect, be the
same with the effect. | |
III.I.6 |
|
To be amiable and to be meritorious; that is, to deserve love
and to deserve reward, are the great characters of virtue; and to
be odious and punishable, of vice. But all these characters have
an immediate reference to the sentiments of others. Virtue is not
said to be amiable, or to be meritorious, because it is the object
of its own love, or of its own gratitude; but because it excites
those sentiments in other men. The consciousness that it is the
object of such favourable regards, is the source of that inward
tranquillity and self-satisfaction with which it is naturally
attended, as the suspicion of the contrary gives occasion to the
torments of vice. What so great happiness as to be beloved, and to
know that we deserve to be beloved? What so great misery as to be
hated, and to know that we deserve to be hated?
| |
III.I.7 |
|
Chapter II - Of the love of Praise, and of that of
Praise-worthiness; and of the dread of Blame, and of that of
Blame-worthiness
| |
|
Man naturally desires, not only to be loved, but to be lovely;
or to be that thing which is the natural and proper object of
love. He naturally dreads, not only to be hated, but to be
hateful; or to be that thing which is the natural and proper
object of hatred. He desires, not only praise, but
praiseworthiness; or to be that thing which, though it should be
praised by nobody, is, however, the natural and proper object of
praise. He dreads, not only blame, but blame-worthiness; or to be
that thing which, though it should be blamed by nobody, is,
however, the natural and proper object of blame.
| |
III.I.8 |
|
The love of praise-worthiness is by no means derived altogether
from the love of praise. Those two principles, though they
resemble one another, though they are connected, and often blended
with one another, are yet, in many respects, distinct and
independent of one another. | |
III.I.9 |
|
The love and admiration which we naturally conceive for those
whose character and conduct we approve of, necessarily dispose us
to desire to become ourselves the objects of the like agreeable
sentiments, and to be as amiable and as admirable as those whom we
love and admire the most. Emulation, the anxious desire that we
ourselves should excel, is originally founded in our admiration of
the excellence of others. Neither can we be satisfied with being
merely admired for what other people are admired. We must at least
believe ourselves to be admirable for what they are admirable.
But, in order to attain this satisfaction, we must become the
impartial spectators of our own character and conduct. We must
endeavour to view them with the eyes of other people, or as other
people are likely to view them. When seen in this light, if they
appear to us as we wish, we are happy and contented. But it
greatly confirms this happiness and contentment when we find that
other people, viewing them with those very eyes with which we, in
imagination only, were endeavouring to view them, see them
precisely in the same light in which we ourselves had seen them.
Their approbation necessarily confirms our own self-approbation.
Their praise necessarily strengthens our own sense of our own
praiseworthiness. In this case, so far is the love of
praise-worthiness from being derived altogether from that of
praise; that the love of praise seems, at least in a great
measure, to be derived from that of praise-worthiness.
| |
III.I.10 |
|
The most sincere praise can give little pleasure when it cannot
be considered as some sort of proof of praise-worthiness. It is by
no means sufficient that, from ignorance or mistake, esteem and
admiration should, in some way or other, be bestowed upon us. If
we are conscious that we do not deserve to be so favourably
thought of, and that if the truth were known, we should be
regarded with very different sentiments, our satisfaction is far
from being complete. The man who applauds us either for actions
which we did not perform, or for motives which had no sort of
influence upon our conduct, applauds not us, but another person.
We can derive no sort of satisfaction from his praises. To us they
should be more mortifying than any censure, and should perpetually
call to our minds, the most humbling of all reflections, the
reflection of what we ought to be, but what we are not. A woman
who paints, could derive, one should imagine, but little vanity
from the compliments that are paid to her complexion. These, we
should expect, ought rather to put her in mind of the sentiments
which her real complexion would excite, and mortify her the more
by the contrast. To be pleased with such groundless applause is a
proof of the most superficial levity and weakness. It is what is
properly called vanity, and is the foundation of the most
ridiculous and contemptible vices, the vices of affectation and
common lying; follies which, if experience did not teach us how
common they are, one should imagine the least spark of common
sense would save us from. The foolish liar, who endeavours to
excite the admiration of the company by the relation of adventures
which never had any existence; the important coxcomb, who gives
himself airs of rank and distinction which he well knows he has no
just pretensions to; are both of them, no doubt, pleased with the
applause which they fancy they meet with. But their vanity arises
from so gross an illusion of the imagination, that it is difficult
to conceive how any rational creature should be imposed upon by
it. When they place themselves in the situation of those whom they
fancy they have deceived, they are struck with the highest
admiration for their own persons. They look upon themselves, not
in that light in which, they know, they ought to appear to their
companions, but in that in which they believe their companions
actually look upon them. Their superficial weakness and trivial
folly hinder them from ever turning their eyes inwards, or from
seeing themselves in that despicable point of view in which their
own consciences must tell them that they would appear to every
body, if the real truth should ever come to be known.
| |
III.I.11 |
|
As ignorant and groundless praise can give no solid joy, no
satisfaction that will bear any serious examination, so, on the
contrary, it often gives real comfort to reflect, that though no
praise should actually be bestowed upon us, our conduct, however,
has been such as to deserve it, and has been in every respect
suitable to those measures and rules by which praise and
approbation are naturally and commonly bestowed. We are pleased,
not only with praise, but with having done what is praise-worthy.
We are pleased to think that we have rendered ourselves the
natural objects of approbation, though no approbation should ever
actually be bestowed upon us: and we are mortified to reflect that
we have justly merited the blame of those we live with, though
that sentiment should never actually be exerted against us. The
man who is conscious to himself that he has exactly observed those
measures of conduct which experience informs him are generally
agreeable, reflects with satisfaction on the propriety of his own
behaviour. When he views it in the light in which the impartial
spectator would view it, he thoroughly enters into all the motives
which influenced it. He looks back upon every part of it with
pleasure and approbation, and though mankind should never be
acquainted with what he has done, he regards himself, not so much
according to the light in which they actually regard him, as
according to that in which they would regard him if they were
better informed. He anticipates the applause and admiration which
in this case would be bestowed upon him, and he applauds and
admires himself by sympathy with sentiments, which do not indeed
actually take place, but which the ignorance of the public alone
hinders from taking place, which he knows are the natural and
ordinary effects of such conduct, which his imagination strongly
connects with it, and which he has acquired a habit of conceiving
as something that naturally and in propriety ought to follow from
it. Men have voluntarily thrown away life to acquire after death a
renown which they could no longer enjoy. Their imagination, in the
mean time, anticipated that fame which was in future times to be
bestowed upon them. Those applauses which they were never to hear
rung in their ears; the thoughts of that admiration, whose effects
they were never to feel, played about their hearts, banished from
their breasts the strongest of all natural fears, and transported
them to perform actions which seem almost beyond the reach of
human nature. But in point of reality there is surely no great
difference between that approbation which is not to be bestowed
till we can no longer enjoy it, and that which, indeed, is never
to be bestowed, but which would be bestowed, if the world was ever
made to understand properly the real circumstances of our
behaviour. If the one often produces such violent effects, we
cannot wonder that the other should always be highly regarded.
| |
III.I.12 |
|
Nature, when she formed man for society, endowed him with an
original desire to please, and an original aversion to offend his
brethren. She taught him to feel pleasure in their favourable, and
pain in their unfavourable regard. She rendered their approbation
most flattering and most agreeable to him for its own sake; and
their disapprobation most mortifying and most offensive.
| |
III.I.13 |
|
But this desire of the approbation, and this aversion to the
disapprobation of his brethren, would not alone have rendered him
fit for that society for which he was made. Nature, accordingly,
has endowed him, not only with a desire of being approved of, but
with a desire of being what ought to be approved of; or of being
what he himself approves of in other men. The first desire could
only have made him wish to appear to be fit for society. The
second was necessary in order to render him anxious to be really
fit. The first could only have prompted him to the affectation of
virtue, and to the concealment of vice. The second was necessary
in order to inspire him with the real love of virtue, and with the
real abhorrence of vice. In every well-formed mind this second
desire seems to be the strongest of the two. It is only the
weakest and most superficial of mankind who can be much delighted
with that praise which they themselves know to be altogether
unmerited. A weak man may sometimes be pleased with it, but a wise
man rejects it upon all occasions. But, though a wise man feels
little pleasure from praise where he knows there is no
praise-worthiness, he often feels the highest in doing what he
knows to be praise-worthy, though he knows equally well that no
praise is ever to be bestowed upon it. To obtain the approbation
of mankind, where no approbation is due, can never be an object of
any importance to him. To obtain that approbation where it is
really due, may sometimes be an object of no great importance to
him. But to be that thing which deserves approbation, must always
be an object of the highest. | |
III.I.14 |
|
To desire, or even to accept of praise, where no praise is due,
can be the effect only of the most contemptible vanity. To desire
it where it is really due, is to desire no more than that a most
essential act of justice should be done to us. The love of just
fame, of true glory, even for its own sake, and independent of any
advantage which he can derive from it, is not unworthy even of a
wise man. He sometimes, however, neglects, and even despises it;
and he is never more apt to do so than when he has the most
perfect assurance of the perfect propriety of every part of his
own conduct. His self-approbation, in this case, stands in need of
no confirmation from the approbation of other men. It is alone
sufficient, and he is contented with it. This self-approbation, if
not the only, is at least the principal object, about which he can
or ought to be anxious. The love of it, is the love of virtue.
| |
III.I.15 |
|
As the love and admiration which we naturally conceive for some
characters, dispose us to wish to become ourselves the proper
objects of such agreeable sentiments; so the hatred and contempt
which we as naturally conceive for others, dispose us, perhaps
still more strongly, to dread the very thought of resembling them
in any respect. Neither is it, in this case, too, so much the
thought of being hated and despised that we are afraid of, as that
of being hateful and despicable. We dread the thought of doing any
thing which can render us the just and proper objects of the
hatred and contempt of our fellow-creatures; even though we had
the most perfect security that those sentiments were never
actually to be exerted against us. The man who has broke through
all those measures of conduct, which can alone render him
agreeable to mankind, though he should have the most perfect
assurance that what he had done was for ever to be concealed from
every human eye, it is all to no purpose. When he looks back upon
it, and views it in the light in which the impartial spectator
would view it, he finds that he can enter into none of the motives
which influenced it. He is abashed and confounded at the thoughts
of it, and necessarily feels a very high degree of that shame
which he would be exposed to, if his actions should ever come to
be generally known. His imagination, in this case too, anticipates
the contempt and derision from which nothing saves him but the
ignorance of those he lives with. He still feels that he is the
natural object of these sentiments, and still trembles at the
thought of what he would suffer, if they were ever actually
exerted against him. But if what he had been guilty of was not
merely one of those improprieties which are the objects of simple
disapprobation, but one of those enormous crimes which excite
detestation and resentment, he could never think of it, as long as
he had any sensibility left, without feeling all the agony of
horror and remorse; and though he could be assured that no man was
ever to know it, and could even bring himself to believe that
there was no God to revenge it, he would still feel enough of both
these sentiments to embitter the whole of his life: he would still
regard himself as the natural object of the hatred and indignation
of all his fellow-creatures; and, if his heart was not grown
callous by the habit of crimes, he could not think without terror
and astonishment even of the manner in which mankind would look
upon him, of what would be the expression of their countenance and
of their eyes, if the dreadful truth should ever come to be known.
These natural pangs of an affrighted conscience are the daemons,
the avenging furies, which, in this life, haunt the guilty, which
allow them neither quiet nor repose, which often drive them to
despair and distraction, from which no assurance of secrecy can
protect them, from which no principles of irreligion can entirely
deliver them, and from which nothing can free them but the vilest
and most abject of all states, a complete insensibility to honour
and infamy, to vice and virtue. Men of the most detestable
characters, who, in the execution of the most dreadful crimes, had
taken their measures so coolly as to avoid even the suspicion of
guilt, have sometimes been driven, by the horror of their
situation, to discover, of their own accord, what no human
sagacity could ever have investigated. By acknowledging their
guilt, by submitting themselves to the resentment of their
offended fellow-citizens, and, by thus satiating that vengeance of
which they were sensible that they had become the proper objects,
they hoped, by their death to reconcile themselves, at least in
their own imagination, to the natural sentiments of mankind; to be
able to consider themselves as less worthy of hatred and
resentment; to atone, in some measure, for their crimes, and by
thus becoming the objects, rather of compassion than of horror, if
possible to die in peace and with the forgiveness of all their
fellow-creatures. Compared to what they felt before the discovery,
even the thought of this, it seems, was happiness.
| |
III.I.16 |
|
In such cases, the horror of blame-worthiness seems, even in
persons who cannot be suspected of any extraordinary delicacy or
sensibility of character, completely to conquer the dread of
blame. In order to allay that horror, in order to pacify, in some
degree, the remorse of their own consciences, they voluntarily
submitted themselves both to the reproach and to the punishment
which they knew were due to their crimes, but which, at the same
time, they might easily have avoided. | |
III.I.17 |
|
They are the most frivolous and superficial of mankind only who
can be much delighted with that praise which they themselves know
to be altogether unmerited. Unmerited reproach, however, is
frequently capable of mortifying very severely even men of more
than ordinary constancy. Men of the most ordinary constancy,
indeed, easily learn to despise those foolish tales which are so
frequently circulated in society, and which, from their own
absurdity and falsehood, never fail to die away in the course of a
few weeks, or of a few days. But an innocent man, though of more
than ordinary constancy, is often, not only shocked, but most
severely mortified by the serious, though false, imputation of a
crime; especially when that imputation happens unfortunately to be
supported by some circumstances which give it an air of
probability. He is humbled to find that any body should think so
meanly of his character as to suppose him capable of being guilty
of it. Though perfectly conscious of his own innocence, the very
imputation seems often, even in his own imagination, to throw a
shadow of disgrace and dishonour upon his character. His just
indignation, too, at so very gross an injury, which, however, it
may frequently be improper, and sometimes even impossible to
revenge, is itself a very painful sensation. There is no greater
tormentor of the human breast than violent resentment which cannot
be gratified. An innocent man, brought to the scaffold by the
false imputation of an infamous or odious crime, suffers the most
cruel misfortune which it is possible for innocence to suffer. The
agony of his mind may, in this case, frequently be greater than
that of those who suffer for the like crimes, of which they have
been actually guilty. Profligate criminals, such as common thieves
and highwaymen, have frequently little sense of the baseness of
their own conduct, and consequently no remorse. Without troubling
themselves about the justice or injustice of the punishment, they
have always been accustomed to look upon the gibbet as a lot very
likely to fall to them. When it does fall to them, therefore, they
consider themselves only as not quite so lucky as some of their
companions, and submit to their fortune, without any other
uneasiness than what may arise from the fear of death; a fear
which, even by such worthless wretches, we frequently see, can be
so easily, and so very completely conquered. The innocent man, on
the contrary, over and above the uneasiness which this fear may
occasion, is tormented by his own indignation at the injustice
which has been done to him. He is struck with horror at the
thoughts of the infamy which the punishment may shed upon his
memory, and foresees, with the most exquisite anguish, that he is
hereafter to be remembered by his dearest friends and relations,
not with regret and affection, but with shame, and even with
horror for his supposed disgraceful conduct: and the shades of
death appear to close round him with a darker and more melancholy
gloom than naturally belongs to them. Such fatal accidents, for
the tranquillity of mankind, it is to be hoped, happen very rarely
in any country; but they happen sometimes in all countries, even
in those where justice is in general very well administered. The
unfortunate Calas, a man of much more than ordinary constancy
(broke upon the wheel and burnt at Tholouse for the supposed
murder of his own son, of which he was perfectly innocent),
seemed, with his last breath, to deprecate, not so much the
cruelty of the punishment, as the disgrace which the imputation
might bring upon his memory. After he had been broke, and was just
going to be thrown into the fire, the monk, who attended the
execution, exhorted him to confess the crime for which he had been
condemned. My Father, said Calas, can you yourself bring yourself
to believe that I am guilty? | |
III.I.18 |
|
To persons in such unfortunate circumstances, that humble
philosophy which confines its views to this life, can afford,
perhaps, but little consolation. Every thing that could render
either life or death respectable is taken from them. They are
condemned to death and to everlasting infamy. Religion can alone
afford them any effectual comfort. She alone can tell them, that
it is of little importance what man may think of their conduct,
while the all-seeing Judge of the world approves of it. She alone
can present to them the view of another world; a world of more
candour, humanity, and justice, than the present; where their
innocence is in due time to be declared, and their virtue to be
finally rewarded: and the same great principle which can alone
strike terror into triumphant vice, affords the only effectual
consolation to disgraced and insulted innocence.
| |
III.I.19 |
|
In smaller offences, as well as in greater crimes, it
frequently happens that a person of sensibility is much more hurt
by the unjust imputation, than the real criminal is by the actual
guilt. A woman of gallantry laughs even at the well-founded
surmises which are circulated concerning her conduct. The worst
founded surmise of the same kind is a mortal stab to an innocent
virgin. The person who is deliberately guilty of a disgraceful
action, we may lay it down, I believe, as a general rule, can
seldom have much sense of the disgrace; and the person who is
habitually guilty of it, can scarce ever have any.
| |
III.I.20 |
|
When every man, even of middling understanding, so readily
despises unmerited applause, how it comes to pass that unmerited
reproach should often be capable of mortifying so severely men of
the soundest and best judgment, may, perhaps, deserve some
consideration. | |
III.I.21 |
|
Pain, I have already had occasion to observe, is, in almost all
cases, a more pungent sensation than the opposite and
correspondent pleasure. The one, almost always, depresses us much
more below the ordinary, or what may be called the natural state
of our happiness, than the other ever raises us above it. A man of
sensibility is apt to be more humiliated by just censure than he
is ever elevated by just applause. Unmerited applause a wise man
rejects with contempt upon all occasions; but he often feels very
severely the injustice of unmerited censure. By suffering himself
to be applauded for what he has not performed, by assuming a merit
which does not belong to him, he feels that he is guilty of a mean
falsehood, and deserves, not the admiration, but the contempt of
those very persons who, by mistake, had been led to admire him. It
may, perhaps, give him some well-founded pleasure to find that he
has been, by many people, thought capable of performing what he
did not perform. But, though he may be obliged to his friends for
their good opinion, he would think himself guilty of the greatest
baseness if he did not immediately undeceive them. It gives him
little pleasure to look upon himself in the light in which other
people actually look upon him, when he is conscious that, if they
knew the truth, they would look upon him in a very different
light. A weak man, however, is often much delighted with viewing
himself in this false and delusive light. He assumes the merit of
every laudable action that is ascribed to him, and pretends to
that of many which nobody ever thought of ascribing to him. He
pretends to have done what he never did, to have written what
another wrote, to have invented what another discovered; and is
led into all the miserable vices of plagiarism and common lying.
But though no man of middling good sense can derive much pleasure
from the imputation of a laudable action which he never performed,
yet a wise man may suffer great pain from the serious imputation
of a crime which he never committed. Nature, in this case, has
rendered the pain, not only more pungent than the opposite and
correspondent pleasure, but she has rendered it so in a much
greater than the ordinary degree. A denial rids a man at once of
the foolish and ridiculous pleasure; but it will not always rid
him of the pain. When he refuses the merit which is ascribed to
him, nobody doubts his veracity. It may be doubted when he denies
the crime which he is accused of. He is at once enraged at the
falsehood of the imputation, and mortified to find that any credit
should be given to it. He feels that his character is not
sufficient to protect him. He feels that his brethren, far from
looking upon him in that light in which he anxiously desires to be
viewed by them, think him capable of being guilty of what he is
accused of. He knows perfectly that he has not been guilty. He
knows perfectly what he has done; but, perhaps, scarce any man can
know perfectly what he himself is capable of doing. What the
peculiar constitution of his own mind may or may not admit of, is,
perhaps, more or less a matter of doubt to every man. The trust
and good opinion of his friends and neighbours, tends more than
any thing to relieve him from this most disagreeable doubt; their
distrust and unfavourable opinion to increase it. He may think
himself very confident that their unfavourable judgment is wrong:
but this confidence can seldom be so great as to hinder that
judgment from making some impression upon him; and the greater his
sensibility, the greater his delicacy, the greater his worth in
short, this impression is likely to be the greater.
| |
III.I.22 |
|
The agreement or disagreement both of the sentiments and
judgments of other people with our own, is, in all cases, it must
be observed, of more or less importance to us, exactly in
proportion as we ourselves are more or less uncertain about the
propriety of our own sentiments, about the accuracy of our own
judgments. | |
III.I.23 |
|
A man of sensibility may sometimes feel great uneasiness lest
he should have yielded too much even to what may be called an
honourable passion; to his just indignation, perhaps, at the
injury which may have been done either to himself or to his
friend. He is anxiously afraid lest, meaning only to act with
spirit, and to do justice, he may, from the too great vehemence of
his emotion, have done a real injury to some other person; who,
though not innocent, may not have been altogether so guilty as he
at first apprehended. The opinion of other people becomes, in this
case, of the utmost importance to him. Their approbation is the
most healing balsam; their disapprobation, the bitterest and most
tormenting poison that can be poured into his uneasy mind. When he
is perfectly satisfied with every part of his own conduct, the
judgment of other people is often of less importance to him.
| |
III.I.24 |
|
There are some very noble and beautiful arts, in which the
degree of excellence can be determined only by a certain nicety of
taste, of which the decisions, however, appear always, in some
measure, uncertain. There are others, in which the success admits,
either of clear demonstration, or very satisfactory proof. Among
the candidates for excellence in those different arts, the anxiety
about the public opinion is always much greater in the former than
in the latter. | |
III.I.25 |
|
The beauty of poetry is a matter of such nicety, that a young
beginner can scarce ever be certain that he has attained it.
Nothing delights him so much, therefore, as the favourable
judgments of his friends and of the public; and nothing mortifies
him so severely as the contrary. The one establishes, the other
shakes, the good opinion which he is anxious to entertain
concerning his own performances. Experience and success may in
time give him a little more confidence in his own judgment. He is
at all times, however, liable to be most severely mortified by the
unfavourable judgments of the public. Racine was so disgusted by
the indifferent success of his Phaedra, the finest tragedy,
perhaps, that is extant in any language, that, though in the
vigour of his life, and at the height of his abilities, he
resolved to write no more for the stage. That great poet used
frequently to tell his son, that the most paltry and impertinent
criticism had always given him more pain, than the highest and
justest eulogy had ever given him pleasure. The extreme
sensibility of Voltaire to the slightest censure of the same kind
is well known to every body. The Dunciad of Mr. Pope is an
everlasting monument of how much the most correct, as well as the
most elegant and harmonious of all the English poets, had been
hurt by the criticisms of the lowest and most contemptible
authors. Gray (who joins to the sublimity of Milton the elegance
and harmony of Pope, and to whom nothing is wanting to render him,
perhaps, the first poet in the English language, but to have
written a little more) is said to have been so much hurt, by a
foolish and impertinent parody of two of his finest odes, that he
never afterwards attempted any considerable work. Those men of
letters who value themselves upon what is called fine writing in
prose, approach somewhat to the sensibility of poets.
| |
III.I.26 |
|
Mathematicians, on the contrary, who may have the most perfect
assurance, both of the truth and of the importance of their
discoveries, are frequently very indifferent about the reception
which they may meet with from the public. The two greatest
mathematicians that I ever have had the honour to be known to,
and, I believe, the two greatest that have lived in my time, Dr.
Robert Simpson of Glasgow, and Dr. Matthew Stewart of Edinburgh,
never seemed to feel even the slightest uneasiness from the
neglect with which the ignorance of the public received some of
their most valuable works. The great work of Sir Isaac Newton, his
Mathematical Principles of Natural Philosophy, I have been
told, was for several years neglected by the public. The
tranquillity of that great man, it is probable, never suffered,
upon that account, the interruption of a single quarter of an
hour. Natural philosophers, in their independency upon the public
opinion, approach nearly to mathematicians, and, in their
judgments concerning the merit of their own discoveries and
observations, enjoy some degree of the same security and
tranquillity. | |
III.I.27 |
|
The morals of those different classes of men of letters are,
perhaps, sometimes somewhat affected by this very great difference
in their situation with regard to the public.
| |
III.I.28 |
|
Mathematicians and natural philosophers, from their
independency upon the public opinion, have little temptation to
form themselves into factions and cabals, either for the support
of their own reputation, or for the depression of that of their
rivals. They are almost always men of the most amiable simplicity
of manners, who live in good harmony with one another, are the
friends of one another's reputation, enter into no intrigue in
order to secure the public applause, but are pleased when their
works are approved of, without being either much vexed or very
angry when they are neglected. | |
III.I.29 |
|
It is not always the same case with poets, or with those who
value themselves upon what is called fine writing. They are very
apt to divide themselves into a sort of literary factions; each
cabal being often avowedly, and almost always secretly, the mortal
enemy of the reputation of every other, and employing all the mean
arts of intrigue and solicitation to preoccupy the public opinion
in favour of the works of its own members, and against those of
its enemies and rivals. In France, Despreaux and Racine did not
think it below them to set themselves at the head of a literary
cabal, in order to depress the reputation, first of Quinault and
Perreault, and afterwards of Fontenelle and La Motte, and even to
treat the good La Fontaine with a species of most disrespectful
kindness. In England, the amiable Mr. Addison did not think it
unworthy of his gentle and modest character to set himself at the
head of a little cabal of the same kind, in order to keep down the
rising reputation of Mr. Pope. Mr. Fontenelle, in writing the
lives and characters of the members of the academy of sciences, a
society of mathematicians and natural philosophers, has frequent
opportunities of celebrating the amiable simplicity of their
manners; a quality which, he observes, was so universal among them
as to be characteristical, rather of that whole class of men of
letters, than of any individual Mr. D'Alembert, in writing the
lives and characters of the members of the French academy, a
society of poets and fine writers, or of those who are supposed to
be such, seems not to have had such frequent opportunities of
making any remark of this kind, and nowhere pretends to represent
this amiable quality as characteristical of that class of men of
letters whom he celebrates. | |
III.I.30 |
|
Our uncertainty concerning our own merit, and our anxiety to
think favourably of it, should together naturally enough make us
desirous to know the opinion of other people concerning it; to be
more than ordinarily elevated when that opinion is favourable, and
to be more than ordinarily mortified when it is otherwise: but
they should not make us desirous either of obtaining the
favourable, or of avoiding the unfavourable opinion, by intrigue
and cabal. When a man has bribed all the judges, the most
unanimous decision of the court, though it may gain him his
law-suit, cannot give him any assurance that he was in the right:
and had he carried on his lawsuit merely to satisfy himself that
he was in the right, he never would have bribed the judges. But
though he wished to find himself in the right, he wished likewise
to gain his law-suit; and therefore he bribed the judges. If
praise were of no consequence to us, but as a proof of our own
praiseworthiness, we never should endeavour to obtain it by unfair
means. But, though to wise men it is, at least in doubtful cases,
of principal consequence upon this account; it is likewise of some
consequence upon its own account: and therefore (we cannot,
indeed, upon such occasions, call them wise men, but) men very
much above the common level have sometimes attempted both to
obtain praise, and to avoid blame, by very unfair means.
| |
III.I.31 |
|
Praise and blame express what actually are; praise-worthiness
and blameworthiness, what naturally ought to be the sentiments of
other people with regard to our character and conduct. The love of
praise is the desire of obtaining the favourable sentiments of our
brethren. The love of praiseworthiness is the desire of rendering
ourselves the proper objects of those sentiments. So far those two
principles resemble and are akin to one another. The like affinity
and resemblance take place between the dread of blame and that of
blame-worthiness. | |
III.I.32 |
|
The man who desires to do, or who actually does, a
praise-worthy action, may likewise desire the praise which is due
to it, and sometimes, perhaps, more than is due to it. The two
principles are in this case blended together. How far his conduct
may have been influenced by the one, and how far by the other, may
frequently be unknown even to himself. It must almost always be so
to other people. They who are disposed to lessen the merit of his
conduct, impute it chiefly or altogether to the mere love of
praise, or to what they call mere vanity. They who are disposed to
think more favourably of it, impute it chiefly or altogether to
the love of praise-worthiness; to the love of what is really
honourable and noble in human conduct; to the desire, not merely
of obtaining, but of deserving the approbation and applause of his
brethren. The imagination of the spectator throws upon it either
the one colour or the other, according either to his habits of
thinking, or to the favour or dislike which he may bear to the
person whose conduct he is considering.
| |
III.I.33 |
|
Some splenetic philosophers, in judging of human nature, have
done as peevish individuals are apt to do in judging of the
conduct of one another, and have imputed to the love of praise, or
to what they call vanity , every action which ought to be ascribed
to that of praise-worthiness. I shall hereafter have occasion to
give an account of some of their systems, and shall not at present
stop to examine them. | |
III.I.34 |
|
Very few men can be satisfied with their own private
consciousness that they have attained those qualities, or
performed those actions, which they admire and think praise-worthy
in other people; unless it is, at the same time, generally
acknowledged that they possess the one, or have performed the
other; or, in other words, unless they have actually obtained that
praise which they think due both to the one and to the other. In
this respect, however, men differ considerably from one another.
Some seem indifferent about the praise, when, in their own minds,
they are perfectly satisfied that they have attained the
praise-worthiness. Others appear much less anxious about the
praise-worthiness than about the praise.
| |
III.I.35 |
|
No man can be completely, or even tolerably satisfied, with
having avoided every thing blame-worthy in his conduct; unless he
has likewise avoided the blame or the reproach. A wise man may
frequently neglect praise, even when he has best deserved it; but,
in all matters of serious consequence, he will most carefully
endeavour so to regulate his conduct as to avoid, not only
blame-worthiness, but, as much as possible, every probable
imputation of blame. He will never, indeed, avoid blame by doing
any thing which he judges blame-worthy; by omitting any part of
his duty, or by neglecting any opportunity of doing any thing
which he judges to be really and greatly praise-worthy. But, with
these modifications, he will most anxiously and carefully avoid
it. To show much anxiety about praise, even for praise-worthy
actions, is seldom a mark of great wisdom, but generally of some
degree of weakness. But, in being anxious to avoid the shadow of
blame or reproach, there may be no weakness, but frequently the
most praise-worthy prudence. | |
III.I.36 |
|
'Many people,' says Cicero, 'despise glory, who are yet most
severely mortified by unjust reproach; and that most
inconsistently.' This inconsistency, however, seems to be founded
in the unalterable principles of human nature.
| |
III.I.37 |
|
The all-wise Author of Nature has, in this manner, taught man
to respect the sentiments and judgments of his brethren; to be
more or less pleased when they approve of his conduct, and to be
more or less hurt when they disapprove of it. He has made man, if
I may say so, the immediate judge of mankind; and has, in this
respect, as in many others, created him after his own image, and
appointed him his vicegerent upon earth, to superintend the
behaviour of his brethren. They are taught by nature, to
acknowledge that power and jurisdiction which has thus been
conferred upon him, to be more or less humbled and mortified when
they have incurred his censure, and to be more or less elated when
they have obtained his applause. | |
III.I.38 |
|
But though man has, in this manner, been rendered the immediate
judge of mankind, he has been rendered so only in the first
instance; and an appeal lies from his sentence to a much higher
tribunal, to the tribunal of their own consciences, to that of the
supposed impartial and well-informed spectator, to that of the man
within the breast, the great judge and arbiter of their conduct.
The jurisdictions of those two tribunals are founded upon
principles which, though in some respects resembling and akin,
are, however, in reality different and distinct. The jurisdiction
of the man without, is founded altogether in the desire of actual
praise, and in the aversion to actual blame. The jurisdiction of
the man within, is founded altogether in the desire of
praise-worthiness, and in the aversion to blame-worthiness; in the
desire of possessing those qualities, and performing those
actions, which we love and admire in other people; and in the
dread of possessing those qualities, and performing those actions,
which we hate and despise in other people. If the man without
should applaud us, either for actions which we have not performed,
or for motives which had no influence upon us; the man within can
immediately humble that pride and elevation of mind which such
groundless acclamations might otherwise occasion, by telling us,
that as we know that we do not deserve them, we render ourselves
despicable by accepting them. If, on the contrary, the man without
should reproach us, either for actions which we never performed,
or for motives which had no influence upon those which we may have
performed; the man within may immediately correct this false
judgment, and assure us, that we are by no means the proper
objects of that censure which has so unjustly been bestowed upon
us. But in this and in some other cases, the man within seems
sometimes, as it were, astonished and confounded by the vehemence
and clamour of the man without. The violence and loudness, with
which blame is sometimes poured out upon us, seems to stupify and
benumb our natural sense of praise-worthiness and
blame-worthiness; and the judgments of the man within, though not,
perhaps, absolutely altered or perverted, are, however, so much
shaken in the steadiness and firmness of their decision, that
their natural effect, in securing the tranquillity of the mind, is
frequently in a great measure destroyed. We scarce dare to absolve
ourselves, when all our brethren appear loudly to condemn us. The
supposed impartial spectator of our conduct seems to give his
opinion in our favour with fear and hesitation; when that of all
the real spectators, when that of all those with whose eyes and
from whose station he endeavours to consider it, is unanimously
and violently against us. In such cases, this demigod within the
breast appears, like the demigods of the poets, though partly of
immortal, yet partly too of mortal extraction. When his judgments
are steadily and firmly directed by the sense of praiseworthiness
and blame-worthiness, he seems to act suitably to his divine
extraction: But when he suffers himself to be astonished and
confounded by the judgments of ignorant and weak man, he discovers
his connexion with mortality, and appears to act suitably, rather
to the human, than to the divine, part of his origin.
| |
III.I.39 |
|
In such cases, the only effectual consolation of humbled and
afflicted man lies in an appeal to a still higher tribunal, to
that of the all-seeing Judge of the world, whose eye can never be
deceived, and whose judgments can never be perverted. A firm
confidence in the unerring rectitude of this great tribunal,
before which his innocence is in due time to be declared, and his
virtue to be finally rewarded, can alone support him under the
weakness and despondency of his own mind, under the perturbation
and astonishment of the man within the breast, whom nature has set
up as, in this life, the great guardian, not only of his
innocence, but of his tranquillity. Our happiness in this life is
thus, upon many occasions, dependent upon the humble hope and
expectation of a life to come: a hope and expectation deeply
rooted in human nature; which can alone support its lofty ideas of
its own dignity; can alone illumine the dreary prospect of its
continually approaching mortality, and maintain its cheerfulness
under all the heaviest calamities to which, from the disorders of
this life, it may sometimes be exposed. That there is a world to
come, where exact justice will be done to every man, where every
man will be ranked with those who, in the moral and intellectual
qualities, are really his equals; where the owner of those humble
talents and virtues which, from being depressed by fortune, had,
in this life, no opportunity of displaying themselves; which were
unknown, not only to the public, but which he himself could scarce
be sure that he possessed, and for which even the man within the
breast could scarce venture to afford him any distinct and clear
testimony; where that modest, silent, and unknown merit, will be
placed upon a level, and sometimes above those who, in this world,
had enjoyed the highest reputation, and who, from the advantage of
their situation, had been enabled to perform the most splendid and
dazzling actions; is a doctrine, in every respect so venerable, so
comfortable to the weakness, so flattering to the grandeur of
human nature, that the virtuous man who has the misfortune to
doubt of it, cannot possibly avoid wishing most earnestly and
anxiously to believe it. It could never have been exposed to the
derision of the scoffer, had not the distributions of rewards and
punishments, which some of its most zealous assertors have taught
us was to be made in that world to come, been too frequently in
direct opposition to all our moral sentiments.
| |
III.I.40 |
|
That the assiduous courtier is often more favoured than the
faithful and active servant; that attendance and adulation are
often shorter and surer roads to preferment than merit or service;
and that a campaign at Versailles or St. James's is often worth
two either in Germany or Flanders, is a complaint which we have
all heard from many a venerable, but discontented, old officer.
But what is considered as the greatest reproach even to the
weakness of earthly sovereigns, has been ascribed, as an act of
justice, to divine perfection; and the duties of devotion, the
public and private worship of the Deity, have been represented,
even by men of virtue and abilities, as the sole virtues which can
either entitle to reward or exempt from punishment in the life to
come. They were the virtues, perhaps, most suitable to their
station, and in which they themselves chiefly excelled; and we are
all naturally disposed to over-rate the excellencies of our own
characters. In the discourse which the eloquent and philosophical
Massillon pronounced, on giving his benediction to the standards
of the regiment of Catinat, there is the following address to the
officers: 'What is most deplorable in your situation, Gentlemen,
is, that in a life hard and painful, in which the services and the
duties sometimes go beyond the rigour and severity. of the most
austere cloisters; you suffer always in vain for the life to come,
and frequently even for this life. Alas! the solitary monk in his
cell, obliged to mortify the flesh and to subject it to the
spirit, is supported by the hope of an assured recompence, and by
the secret unction of that grace which softens the yoke of the
Lord. But you, on the bed of death, can you dare to represent to
Him your fatigues and the daily hardships of your employment? can
you dare to solicit Him for any recompence? and in all the
exertions that you have made, in all the violences that you have
done to yourselves, what is there that He ought to place to His
own account? The best days of your life, however, have been
sacrificed to your profession, and ten years service has more worn
out your body, than would, perhaps, have done a whole life of
repentance and mortification. Alas! my brother, one single day of
those sufferings, consecrated to the Lord, would, perhaps, have
obtained you an eternal happiness. One single action, painful to
nature, and offered up to Him, would, perhaps, have secured to you
the inheritance of the Saints. And you have done all this, and in
vain, for this world.' | |
III.I.41 |
|
To compare, in this manner, the futile mortifications of a
monastery, to the ennobling hardships and hazards of war; to
suppose that one day, or one hour, employed in the former should,
in the eye of the great Judge of the world, have more merit than a
whole life spent honourably in the latter, is surely contrary to
all our moral sentiments; to all the principles by which nature
has taught us to regulate our contempt or admiration. It is this
spirit, however, which, while it has reserved the celestial
regions for monks and friars, or for those whose conduct and
conversation resembled those of monks and friars, has condemned to
the infernal all the heroes, all the statesmen and lawgivers, all
the poets and philosophers of former ages; all those who have
invented, improved, or excelled in the arts which contribute to
the subsistence, to the conveniency, or to the ornament of human
life; all the great protectors, instructors, and benefactors of
mankind; all those to whom our natural sense of praise-worthiness
forces us to ascribe the highest merit and most exalted virtue.
Can we wonder that so strange an application of this most
respectable doctrine should sometimes have exposed it to contempt
and derision; with those at least who had themselves, perhaps, no
great taste or turn for the devout and contemplative virtues?
| |
III.I.42 |
|
Chapter III - Of the Influences and Authority of Conscience
| |
|
But though the approbation of his own conscience can scarce,
upon some extraordinary occasions, content the weakness of man;
though the testimony of the supposed impartial spectator, of the
great inmate of the breast, cannot always alone support him; yet
the influence and authority of this principle is, upon all
occasions, very great; and it is only by consulting this judge
within, that we can ever see what relates to ourselves in its
proper shape and dimensions; or that we can ever make any proper
comparison between our own interests and those of other people.
| |
III.I.43 |
|
As to the eye of the body, objects appear great or small, not
so much according to their real dimensions, as according to the
nearness or distance of their situation; so do they likewise to
what may be called the natural eye of the mind: and we remedy the
defects of both these organs pretty much in the same manner. In my
present situation an immense landscape of lawns, and woods, and
distant mountains, seems to do no more than cover the little
window which I write by and to be out of all proportion less than
the chamber in which I am sitting. I can form a just comparison
between those great objects and the little objects around me, in
no other way, than by transporting myself, at least in fancy, to a
different station, from whence I can survey both at nearly equal
distances, and thereby form some judgment of their real
proportions. Habit and experience have taught me to do this so
easily and so readily, that I am scarce sensible that I do it; and
a man must be, in some measure, acquainted with the philosophy of
vision, before he can be thoroughly convinced, how little those
distant objects would appear to the eye, if the imagination, from
a knowledge of their real magnitudes, did not swell and dilate
them. | |
III.I.44 |
|
In the same manner, to the selfish and original passions of
human nature, the loss or gain of a very small interest of our
own, appears to be of vastly more importance, excites a much more
passionate joy or sorrow, a much more ardent desire or aversion,
than the greatest concern of another with whom we have no
particular connexion. His interests, as long as they are surveyed
from this station, can never be put into the balance with our own,
can never restrain us from doing. whatever may tend to promote our
own, how ruinous soever to him. Before we can make any proper
comparison of those opposite interests, we must change our
position. We must view them, neither from our own place nor yet
from his, neither with our own eyes nor yet with his, but from the
place and with the eyes of a third person, who has no particular
connexion with either, and who judges with impartiality between
us. Here, too, habit and experience have taught us to do this so
easily and so readily, that we are scarce sensible that we do it;
and it requires, in this case too, some degree of reflection, and
even of philosophy, to convince us, how little interest we should
take in the greatest concerns of our neighbour, how little we
should be affected by whatever relates to him, if the sense of
propriety and justice did not correct the otherwise natural
inequality of our sentiments. | |
III.I.45 |
|
Let us suppose that the great
empire of China, with all its myriads of inhabitants, was suddenly
swallowed up by an earthquake, and let us consider how a man of
humanity in Europe, who had no sort of connexion with that part of
the world, would be affected upon receiving intelligence of this
dreadful calamity. He would, I imagine, first of all, express very
strongly his sorrow for the misfortune of that unhappy people, he
would make many melancholy reflections upon the precariousness of
human life, and the vanity of all the labours of man, which could
thus be annihilated in a moment. He would too, perhaps, if he was
a man of speculation, enter into many reasonings concerning the
effects which this disaster might produce upon the commerce of
Europe, and the trade and business of the world in general. And
when all this fine philosophy was over, when all these humane
sentiments had been once fairly expressed, he would pursue his
business or his pleasure, take his repose or his diversion, with
the same ease and tranquillity, as if no such accident had
happened. The most frivolous disaster which could befal himself
would occasion a more real disturbance. If he was to lose his
little finger to-morrow, he would not sleep to-night; but,
provided he never saw them, he will snore with the most profound
security over the ruin of a hundred millions of his brethren, and
the destruction of that immense multitude seems plainly an object
less interesting to him, than this paltry misfortune of his own.
To prevent, therefore, this paltry misfortune to himself, would a
man of humanity be willing to sacrifice the lives of a hundred
millions of his brethren, provided he had never seen them? Human
nature startles with horror at the thought, and the world, in its
greatest depravity and corruption, never produced such a villain
as could be capable of entertaining it. But what makes this
difference? When our passive feelings are almost always so sordid
and so selfish, how comes it that our active principles should
often be so generous and so noble? When we are always so much more
deeply affected by whatever concerns ourselves, than by whatever
concerns other men; what is it which prompts the generous, upon
all occasions, and the mean upon many, to sacrifice their own
interests to the greater interests of others? It is not the soft
power of humanity, it is not that feeble spark of benevolence
which Nature has lighted up in the human heart, that is thus
capable of counteracting the strongest impulses of self-love. It
is a stronger power, a more forcible motive, which exerts itself
upon such occasions. It is reason, principle, conscience, the
inhabitant of the breast, the man within, the great judge and
arbiter of our conduct. It is he who, whenever we are about to act
so as to affect the happiness of others, calls to us, with a voice
capable of astonishing the most presumptuous of our passions, that
we are but one of the multitude, in no respect better than any
other in it; and that when we prefer ourselves so shamefully and
so blindly to others, we become the proper objects of resentment,
abhorrence, and execration. It is from him only that we learn the
real littleness of ourselves, and of whatever relates to
ourselves, and the natural misrepresentations of self-love can be
corrected only by the eye of this impartial spectator. It is he
who shows us the propriety of generosity and the deformity of
injustice; the propriety of resigning the greatest interests of
our own, for the yet greater interests of others, and the
deformity of doing the smallest injury to another, in order to
obtain the greatest benefit to ourselves. It is not the love of
our neighbour, it is not the love of mankind, which upon many
occasions prompts us to the practice of those divine virtues. It
is a stronger love, a more powerful affection, which generally
takes place upon such occasions; the love of what is honourable
and noble, of the grandeur, and dignity, and superiority of our
own characters. | |
III.I.46 |
|
When the happiness or misery of others depends in any respect
upon our conduct, we dare not, as self-love might suggest to us,
prefer the interest of one to that of many. The man within
immediately calls to us, that we value ourselves too much and
other people too little, and that, by doing so, we render
ourselves the proper object of the contempt and indignation of our
brethren. Neither is this sentiment confined to men of
extraordinary magnanimity and virtue. It is deeply impressed upon
every tolerably good soldier, who feels that he would become the
scorn of his companions, if he could be supposed capable of
shrinking from danger, or of hesitating, either to expose or to
throw away his life, when the good of the service required it.
| |
III.I.47 |
|
One individual must never prefer himself so much even to any
other individual, as to hurt or injure that other, in order to
benefit himself, though the benefit to the one should be much
greater than the hurt or injury to the other. The poor man must
neither defraud nor steal from the rich, though the acquisition
might be much more beneficial to the one than the loss could be
hurtful to the other. The man within immediately calls to him, in
this case too, that he is no better than his neighbour, and that
by this unjust preference he renders himself the proper object of
the contempt and indignation of mankind; as well as of the
punishment which that contempt and indignation must naturally
dispose them to inflict, for having thus violated one of those
sacred rules, upon the tolerable observation of which depend the
whole security and peace of human society. There is no commonly
honest man who does not more dread the inward disgrace of such an
action, the indelible stain which it would for ever stamp upon his
own mind, than the greatest external calamity which, without any
fault of his own, could possibly befal him; and who does not
inwardly feel the truth of that great stoical maxim, that for one
man to deprive another unjustly of any thing, or unjustly to
promote his own advantage by the loss or disadvantage of another,
is more contrary to nature, than death, than poverty, than pain,
than all the misfortunes which can affect him, either in his body,
or in his external circumstances. | |
III.I.48 |
|
When the happiness or misery of others, indeed, in no respect
depends upon our conduct, when our interests are altogether
separated and detached from theirs, so that there is neither
connexion nor competition between them, we do not always think it
so necessary to restrain, either our natural and, perhaps,
improper anxiety about our own affairs, or our natural and,
perhaps, equally improper indifference about those of other men.
The most vulgar education teaches us to act, upon all important
occasions, with some sort of impartiality between ourselves and
others, and even the ordinary commerce of the world is capable of
adjusting our active principles to some degree of propriety. But
it is the most artificial and refined education only, it has been
said, which can correct the inequalities of our passive feelings;
and we must for this purpose, it has been pretended, have recourse
to the severest, as well as to the profoundest philosophy.
| |
III.I.49 |
|
Two different sets of philosophers have attempted to teach us
this hardest of all the lessons of morality. One set have laboured
to increase our sensibility to the interests of others; another,
to diminish that to our own. The first would have us feel for
others as we naturally feel for ourselves. The second would have
us feel for ourselves as we naturally feel for others. Both,
perhaps, have carried their doctrines a good deal beyond the just
standard of nature and propriety. | |
III.I.50 |
|
The first are those whining
and melancholy moralists, who are perpetually reproaching us with
our happiness, while so many of our brethren are in misery, who regard as impious the natural joy
of prosperity, which does not think of the many wretches that are
at every instant labouring under all sorts of calamities, in the
languor of poverty, in the agony of disease, in the horrors of
death, under the insults and oppression of their enemies.
Commiseration for those miseries which we never saw, which we
never heard of, but which we may be assured are at all times
infesting such numbers of our fellow-creatures, ought, they think,
to damp the pleasures of the fortunate, and to render a certain
melancholy dejection habitual to all men. But first of all, this
extreme sympathy with misfortunes which we know nothing about,
seems altogether absurd and unreasonable. Take the whole earth at
an average, for one man who suffers pain or misery, you will find
twenty in prosperity and joy, or at least in tolerable
circumstances. No reason, surely, can be assigned why we should
rather weep with the one than rejoice with the twenty. This
artificial commiseration, besides, is not only absurd, but seems
altogether unattainable; and those who affect this character have
commonly nothing but a certain affected and sentimental sadness,
which, without reaching the heart, serves only to render the
countenance and conversation impertinently dismal and
disagreeable. And last of all, this disposition of mind, though it
could be attained, would be perfectly useless, and could serve no
other purpose than to render miserable the person who possessed
it. Whatever interest we take in the fortune of those with whom we
have no acquaintance or connexion, and who are placed altogether
out of the sphere of our activity, can produce only anxiety to
ourselves, without any manner of advantage to them. To what
purpose should we trouble ourselves about the world in the moon?
All men, even those at the greatest distance, are no doubt
entitled to our good wishes, and our good wishes we naturally give
them. But if, notwithstanding, they should be unfortunate, to give
ourselves any anxiety upon that account, seems to be no part of
our duty. That we should be but little interested, therefore, in
the fortune of those whom we can neither serve nor hurt, and who
are in every respect so very remote from us, seems wisely ordered
by Nature; and if it were possible to alter in this respect the
original constitution of our frame, we could yet gain nothing by
the change. | |
III.I.51 |
|
It is never objected to us that we have too little
fellow-feeling with the joy of success. Wherever envy does not
prevent it, the favour which we bear to prosperity is rather apt
to be too great; and the same moralists who blame us for want of
sufficient sympathy with the miserable, reproach us for the levity
with which we are too apt to admire and almost to worship the
fortunate, the powerful, and the rich. | |
III.I.52 |
|
Among the moralists who endeavour to correct the natural
inequality of our passive feelings by diminishing our sensibility
to what peculiarly concerns ourselves, we may count all the
ancient sects of philosophers, but particularly the ancient
Stoics. Man, according to the Stoics, ought to regard himself, not
as something separated and detached, but as a citizen of the
world, a member of the vast commonwealth of nature. To the
interest of this great community, he ought at all times to be
willing that his own little interest should be sacrificed.
Whatever concerns himself, ought to affect him no more than
whatever concerns any other equally important part of this immense
system. We should view ourselves, not in the light in which our
own selfish passions are apt to place us, but in the light in
which any other citizen of the world would view us. What befalls
ourselves we should regard as what befalls our neighbour, or, what
comes to the same thing, as our neighbour regards what befalls us.
'When our neighbour,' says Epictetus, 'loses his wife, or his son,
there is nobody who is not sensible that this is a human calamity,
a natural event altogether according to the ordinary course of
things; but, when the same thing happens to ourselves, then we cry
out, as if we had suffered the most dreadful misfortune. We ought,
however, to remember how we were affected when this accident
happened to another, and such as we were in his case, such ought
we to be in our own.' | |
III.I.53 |
|
Those private misfortunes, for which our feelings are apt to go
beyond the bounds of propriety, are of two different kinds. They
are either such as affect us only indirectly, by affecting, in the
first place, some other persons who are particularly dear to us;
such as our parents, our children, our brothers and sisters, our
intimate friends; or they are such as affect ourselves immediately
and directly, either in our body, in our fortune, or in our
reputation; such as pain, sickness, approaching death, poverty,
disgrace, etc. | |
III.I.54 |
|
In misfortunes of the first kind, our emotions may, no doubt,
go very much beyond what exact propriety will admit of; but they
may likewise fall short of it, and they frequently do so. The man
who should feel no more for the death or distress of his own
father, or son, than for those of any other man's father or son,
would appear neither a good son nor a good father. Such unnatural
indifference, far from exciting our applause, would incur our
highest disapprobation. Of those domestic affections, however,
some are most apt to offend by their excess, and others by their
defect. Nature, for the wisest purposes, has rendered, in most
men, perhaps in all men, parental tenderness a much stronger
affection than filial piety. The continuance and propagation of
the species depend altogether upon the former, and not upon the
latter. In ordinary cases, the existence and preservation of the
child depend altogether upon the care of the parents. Those of the
parents seldom depend upon that of the child. Nature, therefore,
has rendered the former affection so strong, that it generally
requires not to be excited, but to be moderated; and moralists
seldom endeavour to teach us how to indulge, but generally how to
restrain our fondness, our excessive attachment, the unjust
preference which we are disposed to give to our own children above
those of other people. They exhort us, on the contrary, to an
affectionate attention to our parents, and to make a proper return
to them, in their old age, for the kindness which they had shown
to us in our infancy and youth. In the Decalogue we are commanded
to honour our fathers and mothers. No mention is made of the love
of our children. Nature had sufficiently prepared us for the
performance of this latter duty. Men are seldom accused of
affecting to be fonder of their children than they really are.
They have sometimes been suspected of displaying their piety to
their parents with too much ostentation. The ostentatious sorrow
of widows has, for a like reason, been suspected of insincerity.
We should respect, could we believe it sincere, even the excess of
such kind affections; and though we might not perfectly approve,
we should not severely condemn it. That it appears praise-worthy,
at least in the eyes of those who affect it, the very affectation
is a proof. | |
III.I.55 |
|
Even the excess of those kind affections which are most apt to
offend by their excess, though it may appear blameable, never
appears odious. We blame the excessive fondness and anxiety of a
parent, as something which may, in the end, prove hurtful to the
child, and which, in the mean time, is excessively inconvenient to
the parent; but we easily pardon it, and never regard it with
hatred and detestation. But the defect of this usually excessive
affection appears always peculiarly odious. The man who appears to
feel nothing for his own children, but who treats them upon all
occasions with unmerited severity and harshness, seems of all
brutes the most detestable. The sense of propriety, so far from
requiring us to eradicate altogether that extraordinary
sensibility, which we naturally feel for the misfortunes of our
nearest connections, is always much more offended by the defect,
than it ever is by the excess of that sensibility. The stoical
apathy is, in such cases, never agreeable, and all the
metaphysical sophisms by which it is supported can seldom serve
any other purpose than to blow up the hard insensibility of a
coxcomb to ten times its native impertinence. The poets and
romance writers, who best paint the refinements and delicacies of
love and friendship, and of all other private and domestic
affections, Racine and Voltaire; Richardson, Maurivaux, and
Riccoboni; are, in such cases, much better instructors than Zeno,
Chrysippus, or Epictetus. | |
III.I.56 |
|
That moderated sensibility to the misfortunes of others, which
does not disqualify us for the performance of any duty; the
melancholy and affectionate remembrance of our departed friends;
the pang, as Gray says, to secret sorrow dear; are
by no means undelicious sensations. Though they outwardly wear the
features of pain and grief, they are all inwardly stamped with the
ennobling characters of virtue and self-approbation.
| |
III.I.57 |
|
It is otherwise in the misfortunes which affect ourselves
immediately and directly, either in our body, in our fortune, or
in our reputation. The sense of propriety is much more apt to be
offended by the excess, than by the defect of our sensibility, and
there are but very few cases in which we can approach too near to
the stoical apathy and indifference. | |
III.I.58 |
|
That we have very little fellow-feeling with any of the
passions which take their origin from the body, has already been
observed. That pain which is occasioned by an evident cause; such
as, the cutting or tearing of the flesh; is, perhaps, the
affection of the body with which the spectator feels the most
lively sympathy. The approaching death of his neighbour, too,
seldom fails to affect him a good deal. In both cases, however, he
feels so very little in comparison of what the person principally
concerned feels, that the latter can scarce ever offend the former
by appearing to suffer with too much ease.
| |
III.I.59 |
|
The mere want of fortune, mere poverty, excites little
compassion. Its complaints are too apt to be the objects rather of
contempt than of fellow-feeling. We despise a beggar; and, though
his importunities may extort an alms from us, he is scarce ever
the object of any serious commiseration. The fall from riches to
poverty, as it commonly occasions the most real distress to the
sufferer, so it seldom fails to excite the most sincere
commiseration in the spectator. Though, in the present state of
society, this misfortune can seldom happen without some
misconduct, and some very considerable misconduct too, in the
sufferer; yet he is almost always so much pitied that he is scarce
ever allowed to fall into the lowest state of poverty; but by the
means of his friends, frequently by the indulgence of those very
creditors who have much reason to complain of his imprudence, is
almost always supported in some degree of decent, though humble,
mediocrity. To persons under such misfortunes, we could, perhaps,
easily pardon some degree of weakness; but, at the same time, they
who carry the firmest countenance, who accommodate themselves with
the greatest ease to their new situation, who seem to feel no
humiliation from the change, but to rest their rank in the
society, not upon their fortune, but upon their character and
conduct, are always the most approved of, and never fail to
command our highest and most affectionate admiration.
| |
III.I.60 |
|
As, of all the external misfortunes which can affect an
innocent man immediately and directly, the undeserved loss of
reputation is certainly the greatest; so a considerable degree of
sensibility to whatever can bring on so great a calamity, does not
always appear ungraceful or disagreeable. We often esteem a young
man the more, when he resents, though with some degree of
violence, any unjust reproach that may have been thrown upon his
character or his honour. The affliction of an innocent young lady,
on account of the groundless surmises which may have been
circulated concerning her conduct, appears often perfectly
amiable. Persons of an advanced age, whom long experience of the
folly and injustice of the world, has taught to pay little regard,
either to its censure or to its applause, neglect and despise
obloquy, and do not even deign to honour its futile authors with
any serious resentment. This indifference, which is founded
altogether on a firm confidence in their own well-tried and
well-established characters, would be disagreeable in young
people, who neither can nor ought to have any such confidence. It
might in them be supposed to forebode, in their advancing years, a
most improper insensibility to real honour and infamy.
| |
III.I.61 |
|
In all other private misfortunes which affect ourselves
immediately and directly, we can very seldom offend by appearing
to be too little affected. We frequently remember our sensibility
to the misfortunes of others with pleasure and satisfaction. We
can seldom remember that to our own, without some degree of shame
and humiliation. | |
III.I.62 |
|
If we examine the different shades and gradations of weakness
and self-command, as we meet with them in common life, we shall
very easily satisfy ourselves that this control of our passive
feelings must be acquired, not from the abstruse syllogisms of a
quibbling dialectic, but from that great discipline which Nature
has established for the acquisition of this and of every other
virtue; a regard to the sentiments of the real or supposed
spectator of our conduct. | |
III.I.63 |
|
A very young child has no self-command; but, whatever are its
emotions, whether fear, or grief, or anger, it endeavours always,
by the violence of its outcries, to alarm, as much as it can, the
attention of its nurse, or of its parents. While it remains under
the custody of such partial protectors, its anger is the first
and, perhaps, the only passion which it is taught to moderate. By
noise and threatening they are, for their own ease, often obliged
to frighten it into good temper; and the passion which incites it
to attack, is restrained by that which teaches it to attend to its
own safety. When it is old enough to go to school, or to mix with
its equals, it soon finds that they have no such indulgent
partiality. It naturally wishes to gain their favour, and to avoid
their hatred or contempt. Regard even to its own safety teaches it
to do so; and it soon finds that it can do so in no other way than
by moderating, not only its anger, but all its other passions, to
the degree which its play-fellows and companions are likely to be
pleased with. It thus enters into the great school of
self-command, it studies to be more and more master of itself, and
begins to exercise over its own feelings a discipline which the
practice of the longest life is very seldom sufficient to bring to
complete perfection. | |
III.I.64 |
|
In all private misfortunes, in pain, in sickness, in sorrow,
the weakest man, when his friend, and still more when a stranger
visits him, is immediately impressed with the view in which they
are likely to look upon his situation. Their view calls off his
attention from his own view; and his breast is, in some measure,
becalmed the moment they come into his presence. This effect is
produced instantaneously and, as it were, mechanically; but, with
a weak man, it is not of long continuance. His own view of his
situation immediately recurs upon him. He abandons himself, as
before, to sighs and tears and lamentations; and endeavours, like
a child that has not yet gone to school, to produce some sort of
harmony between his own grief and the compassion of the spectator,
not by moderating the former, but by importunately calling upon
the latter. | |
III.I.65 |
|
With a man of a little more firmness, the effect is somewhat
more permanent. He endeavours, as much as he can, to fix his
attention upon the view which the company are likely to take of
his situation. He feels, at the same time, the esteem and
approbation which they naturally conceive for him when he thus
preserves his tranquillity; and, though under the pressure of some
recent and great calamity, appears to feel for himself no more
than what they really feel for him. He approves and applauds
himself by sympathy with their approbation, and the pleasure which
he derives from this sentiment supports and enables him more
easily to continue this generous effort. In most cases he avoids
mentioning his own misfortune; and his company, if they are
tolerably well bred, are careful to say nothing which can put him
in mind of it. He endeavours to entertain them, in his usual way,
upon indifferent subjects, or, if he feels himself strong enough
to venture to mention his misfortune, he endeavours to talk of it
as, he thinks, they are capable of talking of it, and even to feel
it no further than they are capable of feeling it. If he has not,
however, been well inured to the hard discipline of self-command,
he soon grows weary of this restraint. A long visit fatigues him;
and, towards the end of it, he is constantly in danger of doing,
what he never fails to do the moment it is over, of abandoning
himself to all the weakness of excessive sorrow. Modern good
manners, which are extremely indulgent to human weakness, forbid,
for some time, the visits of strangers to persons under great
family distress, and permit those only of the nearest relations
and most intimate friends. The presence of the latter, it is
thought, will impose less restraint than that of the former; and
the sufferers can more easily accommodate themselves to the
feelings of those, from whom they have reason to expect a more
indulgent sympathy. Secret enemies, who fancy that they are not
known to be such, are frequently fond of making those charitable
visits as early as the most intimate friends. The weakest man in
the world, in this case, endeavours to support his manly
countenance, and, from indignation and contempt of their malice,
to behave with as much gaiety and ease as he can.
| |
III.I.66 |
|
The man of real constancy and firmness, the wise and just man
who has been thoroughly bred in the great school of self-command,
in the bustle and business of the world, exposed, perhaps, to the
violence and injustice of faction, and to the hardships and
hazards of war, maintains this control of his passive feelings
upon all occasions; and whether in solitude or in society, wears
nearly the same countenance, and is affected very nearly in the
same manner. In success and in disappointment, in prosperity and
in adversity, before friends and before enemies, he has often been
under the necessity of supporting this manhood. He has never dared
to forget for one moment the judgment which the impartial
spectator would pass upon his sentiments and conduct. He has never
dared to suffer the man within the breast to be absent one moment
from his attention. With the eyes of this great inmate he has
always been accustomed to regard whatever relates to himself. This
habit has become perfectly familiar to him. He has been in the
constant practice, and, indeed, under the constant necessity, of
modelling, or of endeavouring to model, not only his outward
conduct and behaviour, but, as much as he can, even his inward
sentiments and feelings, according to those of this awful and
respectable judge. He does not merely affect the sentiments of the
impartial spectator. He really adopts them. He almost identifies
himself with, he almost becomes himself that impartial spectator,
and scarce even feels but as that great arbiter of his conduct
directs him to feel. | |
III.I.67 |
|
The degree of the self-approbation with which every man, upon
such occasions, surveys his own conduct, is higher or lower,
exactly in proportion to the degree of self-command which is
necessary in order to obtain that self-approbation. Where little
self-command is necessary, little self-approbation is due. The man
who has only scratched his finger, cannot much applaud himself,
though he should immediately appear to have forgot this paltry
misfortune. The man who has lost his leg by a cannon shot, and
who, the moment after, speaks and acts with his usual coolness and
tranquillity, as he exerts a much higher degree of self-command,
so he naturally feels a much higher degree of self-approbation.
With most men, upon such an accident, their own natural view of
their own misfortune would force itself upon them with such a
vivacity and strength of colouring, as would entirely efface all
thought of every other view. They would feel nothing, they could
attend to nothing, but their own pain and their own fear; and not
only the judgment of the ideal man within the breast, but that of
the real spectators who might happen to be present, would be
entirely overlooked and disregarded. | |
III.I.68 |
|
The reward which Nature bestows upon good behaviour under
misfortune, is thus exactly proportioned to the degree of that
good behaviour. The only compensation she could possibly make for
the bitterness of pain and distress is thus too, in equal degrees
of good behaviour, exactly proportioned to the degree of that pain
and distress. In proportion to the degree of the self-command
which is necessary in order to conquer our natural sensibility,
the pleasure and pride of the conquest are so much the greater;
and this pleasure and pride are so great that no man can be
altogether unhappy who completely enjoys them. Misery and
wretchedness can never enter the breast in which dwells complete
self-satisfaction; and though it may be too much, perhaps, to say,
with the Stoics, that, under such an accident as that above
mentioned, the happiness of a wise man is in every respect equal
to what it could have been under any other circumstances; yet it
must be acknowledged, at least, that this complete enjoyment of
his own self-applause, though it may not altogether extinguish,
must certainly very much alleviate his sense of his own
sufferings. | |
III.I.69 |
|
In such paroxysms of distress, if I may be allowed to call them
so, the wisest and firmest man, in order to preserve his
equanimity, is obliged, I imagine, to make a considerable, and
even a painful exertion. His own natural feeling of his own
distress, his own natural view of his own situation, presses hard
upon him, and he cannot, without a very great effort, fix his
attention upon that of the impartial spectator. Both views present
themselves to him at the same time. His sense of honour, his
regard to his own dignity, directs him to fix his whole attention
upon the one view. His natural, his untaught and undisciplined
feelings, are continually calling it off to the other. He does
not, in this case, perfectly identify himself with the ideal man
within the breast, he does not become himself the impartial
spectator of his own conduct. The different views of both
characters exist in his mind separate and distinct from one
another, and each directing him to a behaviour different from that
to which the other directs him. When he follows that view which
honour and dignity point out to him, Nature does not, indeed,
leave him without a recompense. He enjoys his own complete
self-approbation, and the applause of every candid and impartial
spectator. By her unalterable laws, however, he still suffers; and
the recompense which she bestows, though very considerable, is not
sufficient completely to compensate the sufferings which those
laws inflict. Neither is it fit that it should. If it did
completely compensate them, he could, from self-interest, have no
motive for avoiding an accident which must necessarily diminish
his utility both to himself and to society; and Nature, from her
parental care of both, meant that he should anxiously avoid all
such accidents. He suffers, therefore, and though, in the agony of
the paroxysm, he maintains, not only the manhood of his
countenance, but the sedateness and sobriety of his judgment, it
requires his utmost and most fatiguing exertions, to do so.
| |
III.I.70 |
|
By the constitution of human nature, however, agony can never
be permanent; and, if he survives the paroxysm, he soon comes,
without any effort, to enjoy his ordinary tranquillity. A man with
a wooden leg suffers, no doubt, and foresees that he must continue
to suffer during the reminder of his life, a very considerable
inconveniency. He soon comes to view it, however, exactly as every
impartial spectator views it; as an inconveniency under which he
can enjoy all the ordinary pleasures both of solitude and of
society. He soon identifies himself with the ideal man within the
breast, he soon becomes himself the impartial spectator of his own
situation. He no longer weeps, he no longer laments, he no longer
grieves over it, as a weak man may sometimes do in the beginning.
The view of the impartial spectator becomes so perfectly habitual
to him, that, without any effort, without any exertion, he never
thinks of surveying his misfortune in any other view.
| |
III.I.71 |
|
The never-failing certainty with which all men, sooner or
later, accommodate themselves to whatever becomes their permanent
situation, may, perhaps, induce us to think that the Stoics were,
at least, thus far very nearly in the right; that, between one
permanent situation and another, there was, with regard to real
happiness, no essential difference: or that, if there were any
difference, it was no more than just sufficient to render some of
them the objects of simple choice or preference; but not of any
earnest or anxious desire: and others, of simple rejection, as
being fit to be set aside or avoided; but not of any earnest or
anxious aversion. Happiness consists in tranquillity and
enjoyment. Without tranquillity there can be no enjoyment; and
where there is perfect tranquillity there is scarce any thing
which is not capable of amusing. But in every permanent situation,
where there is no expectation of change, the mind of every man, in
a longer or shorter time, returns to its natural and usual state
of tranquillity. In prosperity, after a certain time, it falls
back to that state; in adversity, after a certain time, it rises
up to it. In the confinement and solitude of the Bastile, after a
certain time, the fashionable and frivolous Count de Lauzun
recovered tranquillity enough to be capable of amusing himself
with feeding a spider. A mind better furnished would, perhaps,
have both sooner recovered its tranquillity, and sooner found, in
its own thoughts, a much better amusement.
| |
III.I.72 |
|
The great source of both the misery and disorders of human
life, seems to arise from over-rating the difference between one
permanent situation and another. Avarice over-rates the difference
between poverty and riches: ambition, that between a private and a
public station: vain-glory, that between obscurity and extensive
reputation. The person under the influence of any of those
extravagant passions, is not only miserable in his actual
situation, but is often disposed to disturb the peace of society,
in order to arrive at that which he so foolishly admires. The
slightest observation, however, might satisfy him, that, in all
the ordinary situations of human life, a well-disposed mind may be
equally calm, equally cheerful, and equally contented. Some of
those situations may, no doubt, deserve to be preferred to others:
but none of them can deserve to be pursued with that passionate
ardour which drives us to violate the rules either of prudence or
of justice; or to corrupt the future tranquillity of our minds,
either by shame from the remembrance of our own folly, or by
remorse from the horror of our own injustice. Wherever prudence
does not direct, wherever justice does not permit, the attempt to
change our situation, the man who does attempt it, plays at the
most Unequal of all games of hazard, and stakes every thing
against scarce any thing. What the favourite of the king of Epirus
said to his master, may be applied to men in all the ordinary
situations of human life. When the King had recounted to him, in
their proper order, all the conquests which he proposed to make,
and had come to the last of them; And what does your Majesty
propose to do then? said the Favourite.—I propose then, said the
King, to enjoy myself with my friends, and endeavour to be good
company over a bottle.—And what hinders your Majesty from doing so
now? replied the Favourite. In the most glittering and exalted
situation that our idle fancy can hold out to us, the pleasures
from which we propose to derive our real happiness, are almost
always the same with those which, in our actual, though humble
station, we have at all times at hand, and in our power. except
the frivolous pleasures of vanity and superiority, we may find, in
the most humble station, where there is only personal liberty,
every other which the most exalted can afford; and the pleasures
of vanity and superiority are seldom consistent with perfect
tranquillity, the principle and foundation of all real and
satisfactory enjoyment. Neither is it always certain that, in the
splendid situation which we aim at, those real and satisfactory
pleasures can be enjoyed with the same security as in the humble
one which we are so very eager to abandon. examine the records of
history, recollect what has happened within the circle of your own
experience, consider with attention what has been the conduct of
almost all the greatly unfortunate, either in private or public
life, whom you may have either read of, or heard of, or remember;
and you will find that the misfortunes of by far the greater part
of them have arisen from their not knowing when they were well,
when it was proper for them to sit still and to be contented. The
inscription upon the tomb-stone of the man who had endeavoured to
mend a tolerable constitution by taking physic; 'I was well, I
wished to be better; here I am; may generally be applied with
great justness to the distress of disappointed avarice and
ambition. | |
III.I.73 |
|
It may be thought a singular, but I believe it to be a just
observation, that, in the misfortunes which admit of some remedy,
the greater part of men do not either so readily or so universally
recover their natural and usual tranquillity, as in those which
plainly admit of none. In misfortunes of the latter kind, it is
chiefly in what may be called the paroxysm, or in the first
attack, that we can discover any sensible difference between the
sentiments and behaviour of the wise and those of the weak man. In
the end, Time, the great and universal comforter, gradually
composes the weak man to the same degree of tranquillity which a
regard to his own dignity and manhood teaches the wise man to
assume in the beginning. The case of the man with the wooden leg
is an obvious example of this. In the irreparable misfortunes
occasioned by the death of children, or of friends and relations,
even a wise man may for some time indulge himself in some degree
of moderated sorrow. An affectionate, but weak woman, is often,
upon such occasions, almost perfectly distracted. Time, however,
in a longer or shorter period, never fails to compose the weakest
woman to the same degree of tranquillity as the strongest man. In
all the irreparable calamities which affect himself immediately
and directly, a wise man endeavours, from the beginning, to
anticipate and to enjoy before-hand, that tranquillity which he
foresees the course of a few months, or a few years, will
certainly restore to him in the end. | |
III.I.74 |
|
In the misfortunes for which the nature of things admits, or
seems to admit, of a remedy, but in which the means of applying
that remedy are not within the reach of the sufferer, his vain and
fruitless attempts to restore himself to his former situation, his
continual anxiety for their success, his repeated disappointments
upon their miscarriage, are what chiefly hinder him from resuming
his natural tranquillity, and frequently render miserable, during
the whole of his life, a man to whom a greater misfortune, but
which plainly admitted of no remedy, would not have given a
fortnight's disturbance. In the fall from royal favour to
disgrace, from power to insignificancy, from riches to poverty,
from liberty to confinement, from strong health to some lingering,
chronical, and perhaps incurable disease, the man who struggles
the least, who most easily and readily acquiesces in the fortune
which has fallen to him, very soon recovers his usual and natural
tranquility, and surveys the most disagreeable circumstances of
his actual situation in the same light, or, perhaps, in a much
less unfavourable light, than that in which the most indifferent
spectator is disposed to survey them. Faction, intrigue, and
cabal, disturb the quiet of the unfortunate statesman. extravagant
projects, visions of gold mines, interrupt the repose of the
ruined bankrupt. The prisoner, who is continually plotting to
escape from his confinement, cannot enjoy that careless security
which even a prison can afford him. The medicines of the physician
are often the greatest torment of the incurable patient. The monk
who, in order to comfort Joanna of Castile, upon the death of her
husband Philip, told her of a King, who, fourteen years after his
decease, had been restored to life again, by the prayers of his
afflicted queen, was not likely, by his legendary tale, to restore
sedateness to the distempered mind of that unhappy Princess. She
endeavoured to repeat the same experiment in hopes of the same
success; resisted for a long time the burial of her husband, soon
after raised his body from the grave, attended it almost
constantly herself, and watched, with all the impatient anxiety of
frantic expectation, the happy moment when her wishes were to be
gratified by the revival of her beloved Philip.
| |
III.I.75 |
|
Our sensibility to the feelings of others, so far from being
inconsistent with the manhood of self-command, is the very
principle upon which that manhood is founded. The very same
principle or instinct which, in the misfortune of our neighbour,
prompts us to compassionate his sorrow; in our own misfortune,
prompts us to restrain the abject and miserable lamentations of
our own sorrow. The same principle or instinct which, in his
prosperity and success, prompts us to congratulate his joy; in our
own prosperity and success, prompts us to restrain the levity and
intemperance of our own joy. In both cases, the propriety of our
own sentiments and feelings seems to be exactly in proportion to
the vivacity and force with which we enter into and conceive his
sentiments and feelings. | |
III.I.76 |
|
The man of the most perfect virtue, the man whom we naturally
love and revere the most, is he who joins, to the most perfect
command of his own original and selfish feelings, the most
exquisite sensibility both to the original and sympathetic
feelings of others. The man who, to all the soft, the amiable, and
the gentle virtues, joins all the great, the awful, and the
respectable, must surely be the natural and proper object of our
highest love and admiration. | |
III.I.77 |
|
The person best fitted by nature for acquiring the former of
those two sets of virtues, is likewise best fitted for acquiring
the latter. The man who feels the most for the joys and sorrows of
others, is best fitted for acquiring the most complete control of
his own joys and sorrows. The man of the most exquisite humanity,
is naturally the most capable of acquiring the highest degree of
self-command. He may not, however, always have acquired it; and it
very frequently happens that he has not. He may have lived too
much in ease and tranquillity. He may have never been exposed to
the violence of faction, or to the hardships and hazards of war.
He may have never experienced the insolence of his superiors, the
jealous and malignant envy of his equals, or the pilfering
injustice of his inferiors. When, in an advanced age, some
accidental change of fortune exposes him to all these, they all
make too great an impression upon him. He has the disposition
which fits him for acquiring the most perfect self-command; but he
has never had the opportunity of acquiring it. exercise and
practice have been wanting; and without these no habit can ever be
tolerably established. Hardships, dangers, injuries, misfortunes,
are the only masters under whom we can learn the exercise of this
virtue. But these are all masters to whom nobody willingly puts
himself to school. | |
III.I.78 |
|
The situations in which the gentle virtue of humanity can be
most happily cultivated, are by no means the same with those which
are best fitted for forming the austere virtue of self-command.
The man who is himself at ease can best attend to the distress of
others. The man who is himself exposed to hardships is most
immediately called upon to attend to, and to control his own
feelings. In the mild sunshine of undisturbed tranquillity, in the
calm retirement of undissipated and philosophical leisure, the
soft virtue of humanity flourishes the most, and is capable of the
highest improvement. But, in such situations, the greatest and
noblest exertions of self-command have little exercise. Under the
boisterous and stormy sky of war and faction, of public tumult and
confusion, the sturdy severity of self-command prospers the most,
and can be the most successfully cultivated. But, in such
situations, the strongest suggestions of humanity must frequently
be stifled or neglected; and every such neglect necessarily tends
to weaken the principle of humanity. As it may frequently be the
duty of a soldier not to take, so it may sometimes be his duty not
to give quarter; and the humanity of the man who has been several
times under the necessity of submitting to this disagreeable duty,
can scarce fail to suffer a considerable diminution. For his own
ease, he is too apt to learn to make light of the misfortunes
which he is so often under the necessity of occasioning; and the
situations which call forth the noblest exertions of self-command,
by imposing the necessity of violating sometimes the property, and
sometimes the life of our neighbour, always tend to diminish, and
too often to extinguish altogether, that sacred regard to both,
which is the foundation of justice and humanity. It is upon this
account, that we so frequently find in the world men of great
humanity who have little self-command, but who are indolent and
irresolute, and easily disheartened, either by difficulty or
danger, from the most honourable pursuits; and, on the contrary
men of the most perfect self-command, whom no difficulty can
discourage, no danger appal, and who are at all times ready for
the most daring and desperate enterprises, but who, at the same
time, seem to be hardened against all sense either of justice or
humanity. | |
III.I.79 |
|
In solitude, we are apt to feel too strongly whatever relates
to ourselves: we are apt to over-rate the good offices we may have
done, and the injuries we may have suffered: we are apt to be too
much elated by our own good, and too much dejected by our own bad
fortune. The conversation of a friend brings us to a better, that
of a stranger to a still better temper. The man within the breast,
the abstract and ideal spectator of our sentiments and conduct,
requires often to be awakened and put in mind of his duty, by the
presence of the real spectator: and it is always from that
spectator, from whom we can expect the least sympathy and
indulgence, that we are likely to learn the most complete lesson
of self-command. | |
III.I.80 |
|
Are you in adversity? Do not mourn in the darkness of solitude,
do not regulate your sorrow according to the indulgent sympathy of
your intimate friends; return, as soon as possible, to the
day-light of the world and of society. Live with strangers, with
those who know nothing, or care nothing about your misfortune; do
not even shun the company of enemies; but give yourself the
pleasure of mortifying their malignant joy, by making them feel
how little you are affected by your calamity, and how much you are
above it. | |
III.I.81 |
|
Are you in prosperity? Do not confine the enjoyment of your
good fortune to your own house, to the company of your own
friends, perhaps of your flatterers, of those who build upon your
fortune the hopes of mending their own; frequent those who are
independent of you, who can value you only for your character and
conduct, and not for your fortune. Neither seek nor shun, neither
intrude yourself into nor run away from the society of those who
were once your superiors, and who may be hurt at finding you their
equal, or, perhaps, even their superior. The impertinence of their
pride may, perhaps, render their company too disagreeable: but if
it should not, be assured that it is the best company you can
possibly keep; and if, by the simplicity of your unassuming
demeanour, you can gain their favour and kindness, you may rest
satisfied that you are modest enough, and that your head has been
in no respect turned by your good fortune.
| |
III.I.82 |
|
The propriety of our moral sentiments is never so apt to be
corrupted, as when the indulgent and partial spectator is at hand,
while the indifferent and impartial one is at a great distance.
| |
III.I.83 |
|
Of the conduct of one independent nation towards another,
neutral nations are the only indifferent and impartial spectators.
But they are placed at so great a distance that they are almost
quite out of sight. When two nations are at variance, the citizen
of each pays little regard to the sentiments which foreign nations
may entertain concerning his conduct. His whole ambition is to
obtain the approbation of his own fellow-citizens; and as they are
all animated by the same hostile passions which animate himself,
he can never please them so much as by enraging and offending
their enemies. The partial spectator is at hand: the impartial one
at a great distance. In war and negotiation, therefore, the laws
of justice are very seldom observed. Truth and fair dealing are
almost totally disregarded. Treaties are violated; and the
violation, if some advantage is gained by it, sheds scarce any
dishonour upon the violator. The ambassador who dupes the minister
of a foreign nation, is admired and applauded. The just man who
disdains either to take or to give any advantage, but who would
think it less dishonourable to give than to take one; the man who,
in all private transactions, would be the most beloved and the
most esteemed; in those public transactions is regarded as a fool
and an idiot, who does not understand his business; and he incurs
always the contempt, and sometimes even the detestation of his
fellow-citizens. In war, not only what are called the laws of
nations, are frequently violated, without bringing (among his own
fellow-citizens, whose judgments he only regards) any considerable
dishonour upon the violator; but those laws themselves are, the
greater part of them, laid down with very little regard to the
plainest and most obvious rules of justice. That the innocent,
though they may have some connexion or dependency upon the guilty
(which, perhaps, they themselves cannot help), should not, upon
that account, suffer or be punished for the guilty, is one of the
plainest and most obvious rules of justice. In the most unjust
war, however, it is commonly the sovereign or the rulers only who
are guilty. The subjects are almost always perfectly innocent.
Whenever it suits the conveniency of a public enemy, however, the
goods of the peaceable citizens are seized both at land and at
sea; their lands are laid waste, their houses are burnt, and they
themselves, if they presume to make any resistance, are murdered
or led into captivity; and all this in the most perfect conformity
to what are called the laws of nations.
| |
III.I.84 |
|
The animosity of hostile factions, whether civil or
ecclesiastical, is often still more furious than that of hostile
nations; and their conduct towards one another is often still more
atrocious. What may be called the laws of faction have often been
laid down by grave authors with still less regard to the rules of
justice than what are called the laws of nations. The most
ferocious patriot never stated it as a serious question, Whether
faith ought to be kept with public enemies?—Whether faith ought to
be kept with rebels? Whether faith ought to be kept with heretics?
are questions which have been often furiously agitated by
celebrated doctors both civil and ecclesiastical. It is needless
to observe, I presume, that both rebels and heretics are those
unlucky persons, who, when things have come to a certain degree of
violence, have the misfortune to be of the weaker party. In a
nation distracted by faction, there are, no doubt, always a few,
though commonly but a very few, who preserve their judgment
untainted by the general contagion. They seldom amount to more
than, here and there, a solitary individual, without any
influence, excluded, by his own candour, from the confidence of
either party, and who, though he may be one of the wisest, is
necessarily, upon that very account, one of the most insignificant
men in the society. All such people are held in contempt and
derision, frequently in detestation, by the furious zealots of
both parties. A true party-man hates and
despises candour; and, in reality, there is no vice which could so
effectually disqualify him for the trade of a party-man as that
single virtue. The real, revered, and impartial spectator,
therefore, is, upon no occasion, at a greater distance than amidst
the violence and rage of contending parties. To them, it may be
said, that such a spectator scarce exists any where in the
universe. Even to the great Judge of the universe, they impute all
their own prejudices, and often view that Divine Being as animated
by all their own vindictive and implacable passions. Of all the
corrupters of moral sentiments, therefore, faction and fanaticism
have always been by far the greatest. | |
III.I.85 |
|
Concerning the subject of self-command, I shall only observe
further, that our admiration for the man who, under the heaviest
and most unexpected misfortunes, continues to behave with
fortitude and firmness, always supposes that his sensibility to
those misfortunes is very great, and such as it requires a very
great effort to conquer or command. The man who was altogether
insensible to bodily pain, could deserve no applause from enduring
the torture with the most perfect patience and equanimity. The man
who had been created without the natural fear of death, could
claim no merit from preserving his coolness and presence of mind
in the midst of the most dreadful dangers. It is one of the
extravagancies of Seneca, that the Stoical wise man was, in this
respect, superior even to a God; that the security of the God was
altogether the benefit of nature, which had exempted him from
suffering; but that the security of the wise man was his own
benefit, and derived altogether from himself and from his own
exertions. | |
III.I.86 |
|
The sensibility of some men, however, to some of the objects
which immediately affect themselves, is sometimes so strong as to
render all self-command impossible. No sense of honour can control
the fears of the man who is weak enough to faint, or to fall into
convulsions, upon the approach of danger. Whether such weakness of
nerves, as it has been called, may not, by gradual exercise and
proper discipline, admit of some cure, may, perhaps, be doubtful.
It seems certain that it ought never to be trusted or employed.
| |
III.I.87 |
|
Chapter IV - Of the Nature of Self-deceit, and of the
Origin and Use of general Rules
| |
|
In order to pervert the rectitude of our own judgments
concerning the propriety of our own conduct, it is not always
necessary that the real and impartial spectator should be at a
great distance. When he is at hand, when he is present, the
violence and injustice of our own selfish passions are sometimes
sufficient to induce the man within the breast to make a report
very different from what the real circumstances of the case are
capable of authorising. | |
III.I.88 |
|
There are two different occasions upon which we examine our own
conduct, and endeavour to view it in the light in which the
impartial spectator would view it: first, when we are about to
act; and secondly, after we have acted. Our views are apt to be
very partial in both cases; but they are apt to be most partial
when it is of most importance that they should be otherwise.
| |
III.I.89 |
|
When we are about to act, the eagerness of passion will seldom
allow us to consider what we are doing, with the candour of an
indifferent person. The violent emotions which at that time
agitate us, discolour our views of things; even when we are
endeavouring to place ourselves in the situation of another, and
to regard the objects that interest us in the light in which they
will naturally appear to him, the fury of our own passions
constantly calls us back to our own place, where every thing
appears magnified and misrepresented by self-love. Of the manner
in which those objects would appear to another, of the view which
he would take of them, we can obtain, if I may say so, but
instantaneous glimpses, which vanish in a moment, and which, even
while they last, are not altogether just. We cannot even for that
moment divest ourselves entirely of the heat and keenness with
which our peculiar situation inspires us, nor consider what we are
about to do with the complete impartiality of an equitable judge.
The passions, upon this account, as father Malebranche says, all
justify themselves, and seem reasonable and proportioned to their
objects, as long as we continue to feel them.
| |
III.I.90 |
|
When the action is over, indeed, and the passions which
prompted it have subsided, we can enter more coolly into the
sentiments of the indifferent spectator. What before interested us
is now become almost as indifferent to us as it always was to him,
and we can now examine our own conduct with his candour and
impartiality. The man of to-day is no longer agitated by the same
passions which distracted the man of yesterday: and when the
paroxysm of emotion, in the same manner as when the paroxysm of
distress, is fairly over, we can identify ourselves, as it were,
with the ideal man within the breast, and, in our own character,
view, as in the one case, our own situation, so in the other, our
own conduct, with the severe eyes of the most impartial spectator.
But our judgments now are often of little importance in comparison
of what they were before; and can frequently produce nothing but
vain regret and unavailing repentance; without always securing us
from the like errors in time to come. It is seldom, however, that
they are quite candid even in this case. The opinion which we
entertain of our own character depends entirely on our judgments
concerning our past conduct. It is so disagreeable to think ill of
ourselves, that we often purposely turn away our view from those
circumstances which might render that judgment unfavourable. He is
a bold surgeon, they say, whose hand does not tremble when he
performs an operation upon his own person; and he is often equally
bold who does not hesitate to pull off the mysterious veil of
self-delusion, which covers from his view the deformities of his
own conduct. Rather than see our own behaviour under so
disagreeable an aspect, we too often, foolishly and weakly,
endeavour to exasperate anew those unjust passions which had
formerly misled us; we endeavour by artifice to awaken our old
hatreds, and irritate afresh our almost forgotten resentments: we
even exert ourselves for this miserable purpose, and thus
persevere in injustice, merely because we once were unjust, and
because we are ashamed and afraid to see that we were so.
| |
III.I.91 |
|
So partial are the views of mankind with regard to the
propriety of their own conduct, both at the time of action and
after it; and so difficult is it for them to view it in the light
in which any indifferent spectator would consider it. But if it
was by a peculiar faculty, such as the moral sense is supposed to
be, that they judged of their own conduct, if they were endued
with a particular power of perception, which distinguished the
beauty or deformity of passions and affections; as their own
passions would be more immeDiately exposed to the view of this
faculty, it would judge with more accuracy concerning them, than
concerning those of other men, of which it had only a more distant
prospect. | |
III.I.92 |
|
This self-deceit, this fatal weakness of mankind, is the source
of half the disorders of human life. If we saw ourselves in the
light in which others see us, or in which they would see us if
they knew all, a reformation would generally be unavoidable. We
could not otherwise endure the sight. | |
III.I.93 |
|
Nature, however, has not left this weakness, which is of so
much importance, altogether without a remedy; nor has she
abandoned us entirely to the delusions of self-love. Our continual
observations upon the conduct of others, insensibly lead us to
form to ourselves certain general rules concerning what is fit and
proper either to be done or to be avoided. Some of their actions
shock all our natural sentiments. We hear every body about us
express the like detestation against them. This still further
confirms, and even exasperates our natural sense of their
deformity. It satisfies us that we view them in the proper light,
when we see other people view them in the same light. We resolve
never to be guilty of the like, nor ever, upon any account, to
render ourselves in this manner the objects of universal
disapprobation. We thus naturally lay down to ourselves a general
rule, that all such actions are to be avoided, as tending to
render us odious, contemptible, or punishable, the objects of all
those sentiments for which we have the greatest dread and
aversion. Other actions, on the contrary, call forth our
approbation, and we hear every body around us express the same
favourable opinion concerning them. Every body is eager to honour
and reward them. They excite all those sentiments for which we
have by nature the strongest desire; the love, the gratitude, the
admiration of mankind. We become ambitious of performing the like;
and thus naturally lay down to ourselves a rule of another kind,
that every opportunity of acting in this manner is carefully to be
sought after. | |
III.I.94 |
|
It is thus that the general rules of morality are formed. They
are ultimately founded upon experience of what, in particular
instances, our moral faculties, our natural sense of merit and
propriety, approve, or disapprove of. We do not originally approve
or condemn particular actions; because, upon examination, they
appear to be agreeable or inconsistent with a certain general
rule. The general rule, on the contrary, is formed, by finding
from experience, that all actions of a certain kind, or
circumstanced in a certain manner, are approved or disapproved of.
To the man who first saw an inhuman murder, committed from
avarice, envy, or unjust resentment, and upon one too that loved
and trusted the murderer, who beheld the last agonies of the dying
person, who heard him, with his expiring breath, complain more of
the perfidy and ingratitude of his false friend, than of the
violence which had been done to him, there could be no occasion,
in order to conceive how horrible such an action was, that he
should reflect, that one of the most sacred rules of conduct was
what prohibited the taking away the life of an innocent person,
that this was a plain violation of that rule, and consequently a
very blamable action. His detestation of this crime, it is
evident, would arise instantaneously and antecedent to his having
formed to himself any such general rule. The general rule, on the
contrary, which he might afterwards form, would be founded upon
the detestation which he felt necessarily arise in his own breast,
at the thought of this, and every other particular action of the
same kind. | |
III.I.95 |
|
When we read in history or romance, the account of actions
either of generosity or of baseness, the admiration which we
conceive for the one, and the contempt which we feel for the
other, neither of them arise from reflecting that there are
certain general rules which declare all actions of the one kind
admirable, and all actions of the other contemptible. Those
general rules, on the contrary, are all formed from the experience
we have had of the effects which actions of all different kinds
naturally produce upon us. | |
III.I.96 |
|
An amiable action, a respectable action, an horrid action, are
all of them actions which naturally excite for the person who
performs them, the love, the respect, or the horror of the
spectator. The general rules which determine what actions are, and
what are not, the objects of each of those sentiments, can be
formed no other way than by observing what actions actually and in
fact excite them. | |
III.I.97 |
|
When these general rules, indeed, have been formed, when they
are universally acknowledged and established, by the concurring
sentiments of mankind, we frequently appeal to them as to the
standards of judgment, in debating concerning the degree of praise
or blame that is due to certain actions of a complicated and
dubious nature. They are upon these occasions commonly cited as
the ultimate foundations of what is just and unjust in human
conduct; and this circumstance seems to have misled several very
eminent authors, to draw up their systems in such a manner, as if
they had supposed that the original judgments of mankind with
regard to right and wrong, were formed like the decisions of a
court of judicatory, by considering first the general rule, and
then, secondly, whether the particular action under consideration
fell properly within its comprehension.
| |
III.I.98 |
|
Those general rules of conduct, when they have been fixed in
our mind by habitual reflection, are of great use in correcting
the misrepresentations of self-love concerning what is fit and
proper to be done in our particular situation. The man of furious
resentment, if he was to listen to the dictates of that passion,
would perhaps regard the death of his enemy, as but a small
compensation for the wrong, he imagines, he has received; which,
however, may be no more than a very slight provocation. But his
observations upon the conduct of others, have taught him how
horrible all such sanguinary revenges appear. Unless his education
has been very singular, he has laid it down to himself as an
inviolable rule, to abstain from them upon all occasions. This
rule preserves its authority with him, and renders him incapable
of being guilty of such a violence. Yet the fury of his own temper
may be such, that had this been the first time in which he
considered such an action, he would undoubtedly have determined it
to be quite just and proper, and what every impartial spectator
would approve of. But that reverence for the rule which past
experience has impressed upon him, checks the impetuosity of his
passion, and helps him to correct the too partial views which
self-love might otherwise suggest, of what was proper to be done
in his situation. If he should allow himself to be so far
transported by passion as to violate this rule, yet, even in this
case, he cannot throw off altogether the awe and respect with
which he has been accustomed to regard it. At the very time of
acting, at the moment in which passion mounts the highest, he
hesitates and trembles at the thought of what he is about to do:
he is secretly conscious to himself that he is breaking through
those measures of conduct which, in all his cool hours, he had
resolved never to infringe, which he had never seen infringed by
others without the highest disapprobation, and of which the
infringement, his own mind forebodes, must soon render him the
object of the same disagreeable sentiments. Before he can take the
last fatal resolution, he is tormented with all the agonies of
doubt and uncertainty; he is terrified at the thought of violating
so sacred a rule, and at the same time is urged and goaded on by
the fury of his desires to violate it. He changes his purpose
every moment; sometimes he resolves to adhere to his principle,
and not indulge a passion which may corrupt the remaining part of
his life with the horrors of shame and repentance; and a momentary
calm takes possession of his breast, from the prospect of that
security and tranquillity which he will enjoy when he thus
determines not to expose himself to the hazard of a contrary
conduct. But immediately the passion rouses anew, and with fresh
fury drives him on to commit what he had the instant before
resolved to abstain from. Wearied and distracted with those
continual irresolutions, he at length, from a sort of despair,
makes the last fatal and irrecoverable step; but with that terror
and amazement with which one flying from an enemy, throws himself
over a precipice, where he is sure of meeting with more certain
destruction than from any thing that pursues him from behind. Such
are his sentiments even at the time of acting; though he is then,
no doubt, less sensible of the impropriety of his own conduct than
afterwards, when his passion being gratified and palled, he begins
to view what he has done in the light in which others are apt to
view it; and actually feels, what he had only foreseen very
imperfectly before, the stings of remorse and repentance begin to
agitate and torment him. | |
III.I.99 |
|
Chapter V - Of the influence and authority of the general Rules of
Morality, and that they are justly regarded as the Laws of the
Deity
| |
|
The regard to those general rules of conduct, is what is
properly called a sense of duty, a principle of the greatest
consequence in human life, and the only principle by which the
bulk of mankind are capable of directing their actions. Many men
behave very decently, and through the whole of their lives avoid
any considerable degree of blame, who yet, perhaps, never felt the
sentiment upon the propriety of which we found our approbation of
their conduct, but acted merely from a regard to what they saw
were the established rules of behaviour. The man who has received
great benefits from another person, may, by the natural coldness
of his temper, feel but a very small degree of the sentiment of
gratitude. If he has been virtuously educated, however, he will
often have been made to observe how odious those actions appear
which denote a want of this sentiment, and how amiable the
contrary. Though his heart therefore is not warmed with any
grateful affection, he will strive to act as if it was, and will
endeavour to pay all those regards and attentions to his patron
which the liveliest gratitude could suggest. He will visit him
regularly. he will behave to him respectfully; he will never talk
of him but with expressions of the highest esteem, and of the many
obligations which he owes to him. And what is more, he will
carefully embrace every opportunity of making a proper return for
past services. He may do all this too without any hypocrisy or
blamable dissimulation, without any selfish intention of obtaining
new favours, and without any design of imposing either upon his
benefactor or the public. The motive of his actions may be no
other than a reverence for the established rule of duty, a serious
and earnest desire of acting, in every respect, according to the
law of gratitude. A wife, in the same manner, may sometimes not
feel that tender regard for her husband which is suitable to the
relation that subsists between them. If she has been virtuously
educated, however, she will endeavour to act as if she felt it, to
be careful, officious, faithful, and sincere, and to be deficient
in none of those attentions which the sentiment of conjugal
affection could have prompted her to perform. Such a friend, and
such a wife, are neither of them, undoubtedly, the very best of
their kinds; and though both of them may have the most serious and
earnest desire to fulfil every part of their duty, yet they will
fail in many nice and delicate regards, they will miss many
opportunities of obliging, which they could never have overlooked
if they had possessed the sentiment that is proper to their
situation. Though not the very first of their kinds, however, they
are perhaps the second; and if the regard to the general rules of
conduct has been very strongly impressed upon them, neither of
them will fail in any very essential part of their duty. None but
those of the happiest mould are capable of suiting, with exact
justness, their sentiments and behaviour to the smallest
difference of situation, and of acting upon all occasions with the
most delicate and accurate propriety. The coarse clay of which the
bulk of mankind are formed, cannot be wrought up to such
perfection. There is scarce any man, however, who by discipline,
education, and example, may not be so impressed with a regard to
general rules, as to act upon almost every occasion with tolerable
decency, and through the whole of his life to avoid any
considerable degree of blame. | |
III.I.100 |
|
Without this sacred regard to general rules, there is no man
whose conduct can be much depended upon. It is this which
constitutes the most essential difference between a man of
principle and honour and a worthless fellow. The one adheres, on
all occasions, steadily and resolutely to his maxims, and
preserves through the whole of his life one even tenour of
conduct. The other, acts variously and accidentally, as humour,
inclination, or interest chance to be uppermost. Nay, such are the
inequalities of humour to which all men are subject, that without
this principle, the man who, in all his cool hours, had the most
delicate sensibility to the propriety of conduct, might often be
led to act absurdly upon the most frivolous occasions, and when it
was scarce possible to assign any serious motive for his behaving
in this manner. Your friend makes you a visit when you happen to
be in a humour which makes it disagreeable to receive him: in your
present mood his civility is very apt to appear an impertinent
intrusion; and if you were to give way to the views of things
which at this time occur, though civil in your temper, you would
behave to him with coldness and contempt. What renders you
incapable of such a rudeness, is nothing but a regard to the
general rules of civility and hospitality, which prohibit it. That
habitual reverence which your former experience has taught you for
these, enables you to act, upon all such occasions, with nearly
equal propriety, and hinders those inequalities of temper, to
which all men are subject, from influencing your conduct in any
very sensible degree. But if without regard to these general
rules, even the duties of politeness, which are so easily
observed, and which one can scarce have any serious motive to
violate, would yet be so frequently violated, what would become of
the duties of justice, of truth, of chastity, of fidelity, which
it is often so difficult to observe, and which there may be so
many strong motives to violate? But upon the tolerable observance
of these duties, depends the very existence of human society,
which would crumble into nothing if mankind were not generally
impressed with a reverence for those important rules of conduct.
| |
III.I.101 |
|
This reverence is still further enhanced by an opinion which is
first impressed by nature, and afterwards confirmed by reasoning
and philosophy, that those important rules of morality are the
commands and laws of the Deity, who will finally reward the
obedient, and punish the transgressors of their duty.
| |
III.I.102 |
|
This opinion or apprehension, I say, seems first to be
impressed by nature. Men are naturally led to ascribe to those
mysterious beings, whatever they are, which happen, in any
country, to be the objects of religious fear, all their own
sentiments and passions. They have no other, they can conceive no
other to ascribe to them. Those unknown intelligences which they
imagine but see not, must necessarily be formed with some sort of
resemblance to those intelligences of which they have experience.
During the ignorance and darkness of pagan superstition, mankind
seem to have formed the ideas of their divinities with so little
delicacy, that they ascribed to them, indiscriminately, all the
passions of human nature, those not excepted which do the least
honour to our species, such as lust, hunger, avarice, envy,
revenge. They could not fail, therefore, to ascribe to those
beings, for the excellence of whose nature they still conceived
the highest admiration, those sentiments and qualities which are
the great ornaments of humanity, and which seem to raise it to a
resemblance of divine perfection, the love of virtue and
beneficence, and the abhorrence of vice and injustice. The man who
was injured, called upon Jupiter to be witness of the wrong that
was done to him, and could not doubt, but that divine being would
behold it with the same indignation which would animate the
meanest of mankind, who looked on when injustice was committed.
The man who did the injury, felt himself to be the proper object
of the detestation and resentment of mankind; and his natural
fears led him to impute the same sentiments to those awful beings,
whose presence he could not avoid, and whose power he could not
resist. These natural hopes and fears, and suspicions, were
propagated by sympathy, and confirmed by education; and the gods
were universally represented and believed to be the rewarders of
humanity and mercy, and the avengers of perfidy and injustice. And
thus religion, even in its rudest form, gave a sanction to the
rules of morality, long before the age of artificial reasoning and
philosophy. That the terrors of religion should thus enforce the
natural sense of duty, was of too much importance to the happiness
of mankind, for nature to leave it dependent upon the slowness and
uncertainty of philosophical researches.
| |
III.I.103 |
|
These researches, however, when they came to take place,
confirmed those original anticipations of nature. Upon whatever we
suppose that our moral faculties are founded, whether upon a
certain modification of reason, upon an original instinct, called
a moral sense, or upon some other principle of our nature, it
cannot be doubted, that they were given us for the direction of
our conduct in this life. They carry along with them the most
evident badges of this authority, which denote that they were set
up within us to be the supreme arbiters of all our actions, to
superintend all our senses, passions, and appetites, and to judge
how far each of them was either to be indulged or restrained. Our
moral faculties are by no means, as some have pretended, upon a
level in this respect with the other faculties and appetites of
our nature, endowed with no more right to restrain these last,
than these last are to restrain them. No other faculty or
principle of action judges of any other. Love does not judge of
resentment, nor resentment of love. Those two passions may be
opposite to one another, but cannot, with any propriety, be said
to approve or disapprove of one another. But it is the peculiar
office of those faculties now under our consideration to judge, to
bestow censure or applause upon all the other principles of our
nature. They may be considered as a sort of senses of which those
principles are the objects. Every sense is supreme over its own
objects. There is no appeal from the eye with regard to the beauty
of colours, nor from the ear with regard to the harmony of sounds,
nor from the taste with regard to the agreeableness of flavours.
Each of those senses judges in the last resort of its own objects.
Whatever gratifies the taste is sweet, whatever pleases the eye is
beautiful, whatever soothes the ear is harmonious. The very
essence of each of those qualities consists in its being fitted to
please the sense to which it is addressed. It belongs to our moral
faculties, in the same manner to determine when the ear ought to
be soothed, when the eye ought to be indulged, when the taste
ought to be gratified, when and how far every other principle of
our nature ought either to be indulged or restrained. What is
agreeable to our moral faculties, is fit, and right, and proper to
be done; the contrary wrong, unfit, and improper. The sentiments
which they approve of, are graceful and becoming: the contrary,
ungraceful and unbecoming. The very words, right, wrong, fit,
improper, graceful, unbecoming, mean only what pleases or
displeases those faculties. | |
III.I.104 |
|
Since these, therefore, were plainly intended to be the
governing principles of human nature, the rules which they
prescribe are to be regarded as the commands and laws of the
Deity, promulgated by those vice-gerents which he has thus set up
within us. All general rules are commonly denominated laws: thus
the general rules which bodies observe in the communication of
motion, are called the laws of motion. But those general rules
which our moral faculties observe in approving or condemning
whatever sentiment or action is subjected to their examination,
may much more justly be denominated such. They have a much greater
resemblance to what are properly called laws, those general rules
which the sovereign lays down to direct the conduct of his
subjects. Like them they are rules to direct the free actions of
men: they are prescribed most surely by a lawful superior, and are
attended too with the sanction of rewards and punishments. Those
vice-gerents of God within us, never fail to punish the violation
of them, by the torments of inward shame, and self-condemnation;
and on the contrary, always reward obedience with tranquillity of
mind, with contentment, and self-satisfaction.
| |
III.I.105 |
|
There are innumerable other considerations which serve to
confirm the same conclusion. The happiness of mankind, as well as
of all other rational creatures, seems to have been the original
purpose intended by the Author of nature, when he brought them
into existence. No other end seems worthy of that supreme wisdom
and divine benignity which we necessarily ascribe to him; and this
opinion, which we are led to by the abstract consideration of his
infinite perfections, is still more confirmed by the examination
of the works of nature, which seem all intended to promote
happiness, and to guard against misery. But by acting according to
the dictates of our moral faculties, we necessarily pursue the
most effectual means for promoting the happiness of mankind, and
may therefore be said, in some sense, to co-operate with the
Deity, and to advance as far as in our power the plan of
Providence. By acting other ways, on the contrary, we seem to
obstruct, in some measure, the scheme which the Author of nature
has established for the happiness and perfection of the world, and
to declare ourselves, if I may say so, in some measure the enemies
of God. Hence we are naturally encouraged to hope for his
extraordinary favour and reward in the one case, and to dread his
vengeance and punishment in the other. | |
III.I.106 |
|
There are besides many other reasons, and many other natural
principles, which all tend to confirm and inculcate the same
salutary doctrine. If we consider the general rules by which
external prosperity and adversity are commonly distributed in this
life, we shall find, that notwithstanding the disorder in which
all things appear to be in this world, yet even here every virtue
naturally meets with its proper reward, with the recompense which
is most fit to encourage and promote it; and this too so surely,
that it requires a very extraordinary concurrence of circumstances
entirely to disappoint it. What is the reward most proper for
encouraging industry, prudence, and circumspection? Success in
every sort of business. And is it possible that in the whole of
life these virtues should fail of attaining it? Wealth and
external honours are their proper recompense, and the recompense
which they can seldom fail of acquiring. What reward is most
proper for promoting the practice of truth, justice, and humanity?
The confidence, the esteem, and love of those we live with.
Humanity does not desire to be great, but to be beloved. It is not
in being rich that truth and justice would rejoice, but in being
trusted and believed, recompenses which those virtues must almost
always acquire. By some very extraordinary and unlucky
circumstance, a good man may come to be suspected of a crime of
which he was altogether incapable, and upon that account be most
unjustly exposed for the remaining part of his life to the horror
and aversion of mankind. By an accident of this kind he may be
said to lose his all, notwithstanding his integrity and justice;
in the same manner as a cautious man, notwithstanding his utmost
circumspection, may be ruined by an earthquake or an inundation.
Accidents of the first kind, however, are perhaps still more rare,
and still more contrary to the common course of things than those
of the second; and it still remains true, that the practice of
truth, justice, and humanity is a certain and almost infallible
method of acquiring what those virtues chiefly aim at, the
confidence and love of those we live with. A person may be very
easily misrepresented with regard to a particular action; but it
is scarce possible that he should be so with regard to the general
tenor of his conduct. An innocent man may be believed to have done
wrong: this, however, will rarely happen. On the contrary, the
established opinion of the innocence of his manners, will often
lead us to absolve him where he has really been in the fault,
notwithstanding very strong presumptions. A knave, in the same
manner, may escape censure, or even meet with applause, for a
particular knavery, in which his conduct is not understood. But no
man was ever habitually such, without being almost universally
known to be so, and without being even frequently suspected of
guilt, when he was in reality perfectly innocent. And so far as
vice and virtue can be either punished or rewarded by the
sentiments and opinions of mankind, they both, according to the
common course of things, meet even here with something more than
exact and impartial justice. | |
III.I.107 |
|
But though the general rules by which prosperity and adversity
are commonly distributed, when considered in this cool and
philosophical light, appear to be perfectly suited to the
situation of mankind in this life, yet they are by no means suited
to some of our natural sentiments. Our natural love and admiration
for some virtues is such, that we should wish to bestow on them
all sorts of honours and rewards, even those which we must
acknowledge to be the proper recompenses of other qualities, with
which those virtues are not always accompanied. Our detestation,
on the contrary, for some vices is such, that we should desire to
heap upon them every sort of disgrace and disaster, those not
excepted which are the natural consequences of very different
qualities. Magnanimity, generosity, and justice, command so high a
degree of admiration, that we desire to see them crowned with
wealth, and power, and honours of every kind, the natural
consequences of prudence, industry, and application; qualities
with which those virtues are not inseparably connected. Fraud,
falsehood, brutality, and violence, on the other hand, excite in
every human breast such scorn and abhorrence, that our indignation
rouses to see them possess those advantages which they may in some
sense be said to have merited, by the diligence and industry with
which they are sometimes attended. The industrious knave
cultivates the soil; the indolent good man leaves it uncultivated.
Who ought to reap the harvest? who starve, and who live in plenty?
The natural course of things decides it in favour of the knave:
the natural sentiments of mankind in favour of the man of virtue.
Man judges, that the good qualities of the one are greatly
over-recompensed by those advantages which they tend to procure
him, and that the omissions of the other are by far too severely
punished by the distress which they naturally bring upon him; and
human laws, the consequences of human sentiments, forfeit the life
and the estate of the industrious and cautious traitor, and
reward, by extraordinary recompenses, the fidelity and public
spirit of the improvident and careless good citizen. Thus man is
by Nature directed to correct, in some measure, that distribution
of things which she herself would otherwise have made. The rules
which for this purpose she prompts him to follow, are different
from those which she herself observes. She bestows upon every
virtue, and upon every vice, that precise reward or punishment
which is best fitted to encourage the one, or to restrain the
other. She is directed by this sole consideration, and pays little
regard to the different degrees of merit and demerit, which they
may seem to possess in the sentiments and passions of man. Man, on
the contrary, pays regard to this only, and would endeavour to
render the state of every virtue precisely proportioned to that
degree of love and esteem, and of every vice to that degree of
contempt and abhorrence, which he himself conceives for it. The
rules which she follows are fit for her, those which he follows
for him: but both are calculated to promote the same great end,
the order of the world, and the perfection and happiness of human
nature. | |
III.I.108 |
|
But though man is thus employed to
alter that distribution of things which natural events would make,
if left to themselves; though, like the gods of the poets, he is
perpetually interposing, by extraordinary means, in favour of
virtue, and in opposition to vice, and, like them, endeavours to
turn away the arrow that is aimed at the head of the righteous,
but to accelerate the sword of destruction that is lifted up
against the wicked; yet he is by no means able to render the
fortune of either quite suitable to his own sentiments and wishes.
The natural course of things cannot be entirely controlled by the
impotent endeavours of man: the current is too rapid and too
strong for him to stop it; and though the rules which direct it
appear to have been established for the wisest and best purposes,
they sometimes produce effects which shock all his natural
sentiments. That a great combination of men should prevail over a
small one; that those who engage in an enterprise with forethought
and all necessary preparation, should prevail over such as oppose
them without any; and that every end should be acquired by those
means only which Nature has established for acquiring it, seems to
be a rule not only necessary and unavoidable in itself, but even
useful and proper for rousing the industry and attention of
mankind. Yet, when, in consequence of this rule, violence and
artifice prevail over sincerity and justice, what indignation does
it not excite in the breast of every human spectator? What sorrow
and compassion for the sufferings of the innocent, and what
furious resentment against the success of the oppressor? We are
equally grieved and enraged at the wrong that is done, but often
find it altogether out of our power to redress it. When we thus
despair of finding any force upon earth which can check the
triumph of injustice, we naturally appeal to heaven, and hope,
that the great Author of our nature will himself execute
hereafter, what all the principles which he has given us for the
direction of our conduct, prompt us to attempt even here; that he
will complete the plan which he himself has thus taught us to
begin; and will, in a life to come, render to every one according
to the works which he has performed in this world. And thus we are
led to the belief of a future state, not only by the weaknesses,
by the hopes and fears of human nature, but by the noblest and
best principles which belong to it, by the love of virtue, and by
the abhorrence of vice and injustice. | |
III.I.109 |
|
'Does it suit the greatness of God,' says the eloquent and
philosophical bishop of Clermont, with that passionate and
exaggerating force of imagination, which seems sometimes to exceed
the bounds of decorum; 'does it suit the greatness of God, to
leave the world which he has created in so universal a disorder?
To see the wicked prevail almost always over the just; the
innocent dethroned by the usurper; the father become the victim of
the ambition of an unnatural son; the husband expiring under the
stroke of a barbarous and faithless wife? From the height of his
greatness ought God to behold those melancholy events as a
fantastical amusement, without taking any share in them? Because
he is great, should he be weak, or unjust, or barbarous? Because
men are little, ought they to be allowed either to be dissolute
without punishment, or virtuous without reward? O God! if this is
the character of your Supreme Being; if it is you whom we adore
under such dreadful ideas; I can no longer acknowledge you for my
father, for my protector, for the comforter of my sorrow, the
support of my weakness, the rewarder of my fidelity. You would
then be no more than an indolent and fantastical tyrant, who
sacrifices mankind to his insolent vanity, and who has brought
them out of nothing, only to make them serve for the sport of his
leisure and of his caprice.' | |
III.I.110 |
|
When the general rules which determine the merit and demerit of
actions, come thus to be regarded as the laws of an All-powerful
Being, who watches over our conduct, and who, in a life to come,
will reward the observance, and punish the breach of them; they
necessarily acquire a new sacredness from this consideration. That
our regard to the will of the Deity ought to be the supreme rule
of our conduct, can be doubted of by nobody who believes his
existence. The very thought of disobedience appears to involve in
it the most shocking impropriety. How vain, how absurd would it be
for man, either to oppose or to neglect the commands that were
laid upon him by Infinite Wisdom, and Infinite Power! How
unnatural, how impiously ungrateful not to reverence the precepts
that were prescribed to him by the infinite goodness of his
Creator, even though no punishment was to follow their violation.
The sense of propriety too is here well supported by the strongest
motives of self-interest. The idea that, however we may escape the
observation of man, or be placed above the reach of human
punishment, yet we are always acting under the eye, and exposed to
the punishment of God, the great avenger of injustice, is a motive
capable of restraining the most headstrong passions, with those at
least who, by constant reflection, have rendered it familiar to
them. | |
III.I.111 |
|
It is in this manner that religion enforces the natural sense
of duty: and hence it is, that mankind are generally disposed to
place great confidence in the probity of those who seem deeply
impressed with religious sentiments. Such persons, they imagine,
act under an additional tie, besides those which regulate the
conduct of other men. The regard to the propriety of action, as
well as to reputation, the regard to the applause of his own
breast, as well as to that of others, are motives which they
suppose have the same influence over the religious man, as over
the man of the world. But the former lies under another restraint,
and never acts deliberately but as in the presence of that Great
Superior who is finally to recompense him according to his deeds.
A greater trust is reposed, upon this account, in the regularity
and exactness of his conduct. And wherever the natural principles
of religion are not corrupted by the factious and party zeal of
some worthless cabal; wherever the first duty which it requires,
is to fulfil all the obligations of morality; wherever men are not
taught to regard frivolous observances, as more immediate duties
of religion, than acts of justice and beneficence; and to imagine,
that by sacrifices, and ceremonies, and vain supplications, they
can bargain with the Deity for fraud, and perfidy, and violence,
the world undoubtedly judges right in this respect, and justly
places a double confidence in the rectitude of the religious man's
behaviour. | |
III.I.112 |
|
Chapter VI - In what cases the Sense of Duty ought to be
the sole principle of our conduct; and in what cases it ought to
concur with other motives
| |
|
Religion affords such strong motives to the practice of virtue,
and guards us by such powerful restraints from the temptations of
vice, that many have been led to suppose, that religious
principles were the sole laudable motives of action. We ought
neither, they said, to reward from gratitude, nor punish from
resentment; we ought neither to protect the helplessness of our
children, nor afford support to the infirmities of our parents,
from natural affection. All affections for particular objects,
ought to be extinguished in our breast, and one great affection
take the place of all others, the love of the Deity, the desire of
rendering ourselves agreeable to him, and of directing our
conduct, in every respect, according to his will. We ought not to
be grateful from gratitude, we ought not to be charitable from
humanity, we ought not to be public-spirited from the love of our
country, nor generous and just from the love of mankind. The sole
principle and motive of our conduct in the performance of all
those different duties, ought to be a sense that God has commanded
us to perform them. I shall not at present take time to examine
this opinion particularly; I shall only observe, that we should
not have expected to have found it entertained by any sect, who
professed themselves of a religion in which, as it is the first
precept to love the Lord our God with all our heart, with all our
soul, and with all our strength, so it is the second to love our
neighbour as we love ourselves; and we love ourselves surely for
our own sakes, and not merely because we are commanded to do so.
That the sense of duty should be the sole principle of our
conduct, is no where the precept of Christianity; but that it
should be the ruling and the governing one, as philosophy, and as,
indeed, common sense directs. It may be a question, however, in
what cases our actions ought to arise chiefly or entirely from a
sense of duty, or from a regard to general rules; and in what
cases some other sentiment or affection ought to concur, and have
a principal influence. | |
III.I.113 |
|
The decision of this question, which cannot, perhaps, be given
with any very great accuracy, will depend upon two different
circumstances; first, upon the natural agreeableness or deformity
of the sentiment or affection which would prompt us to any action
independent of all regard to general rules; and, secondly, upon
the precision and exactness, or the looseness and inaccuracy, of
the general rules themselves. | |
III.I.114 |
|
I. First, I say, it will depend upon the natural agreeableness
or deformity of the affection itself, how far our actions ought to
arise from it, or entirely proceed from a regard to the general
rule. | |
III.I.115 |
|
All those graceful and admired actions, to which the benevolent
affections would prompt us, ought to proceed as much from the
passions themselves, as from any regard to the general rules of
conduct. A benefactor thinks himself but ill requited, if the
person upon whom he has bestowed his good offices, repays them
merely from a cold sense of duty, and without any affection to his
person. A husband is dissatisfied with the most obedient wife,
when he imagines her conduct is animated by no other principle
besides her regard to what the relation she stands in requires.
Though a son should fail in none of the offices of filial duty,
yet if he wants that affectionate reverence which it so well
becomes him to feel, the parent may justly complain of his
indifference. Nor could a son be quite satisfied with a parent
who, though he performed all the duties of his situation, had
nothing of that fatherly fondness which might have been expected
from him. With regard to all such benevolent and social
affections, it is agreeable to see the sense of duty employed
rather to restrain than to enliven them, rather to hinder us from
doing too much, than to prompt us to do what we ought. It gives us
pleasure to see a father obliged to check his own fondness, a
friend obliged to set bounds to his natural generosity, a person
who has received a benefit, obliged to restrain the too sanguine
gratitude of his own temper. | |
III.I.116 |
|
The contrary maxim takes place with regard to the malevolent
and unsocial passions. We ought to reward from the gratitude and
generosity of our own hearts, without any reluctance, and without
being obliged to reflect how great the propriety of rewarding: but
we ought always to punish with reluctance, and more from a sense
of the propriety of punishing, than from any savage disposition to
revenge. Nothing is more graceful than the behaviour of the man
who appears to resent the greatest injuries, more from a sense
that they deserve, and are the proper objects of resentment, than
from feeling himself the furies of that disagreeable passion; who,
like a judge, considers only the general rule, which determines
what vengeance is due for each particular offence; who, in
executing that rule, feels less for what himself has suffered,
than for what the offender is about to suffer; who, though in
wrath, remembers mercy, and is disposed to interpret the rule in
the most gentle and favourable manner, and to allow all the
alleviations which the most candid humanity could, consistently
with good sense, admit of. | |
III.I.117 |
|
As the selfish passions, according to what has formerly been
observed, hold, in other respects, a sort of middle place, between
the social and unsocial affections, so do they likewise in this.
The pursuit of the objects of private interest, in all common,
little, and ordinary cases, ought to flow rather from a regard to
the general rules which prescribe such conduct, than from any
passion for the objects themselves; but upon more important and
extraordinary occasions, we should be awkward, insipid, and
ungraceful, if the objects themselves did not appear to animate us
with a considerable degree of passion. To be anxious, or to be
laying a plot either to gain or to save a single shilling, would
degrade the most vulgar tradesman in the opinion of all his
neighbours. Let his circumstances be ever so mean, no attention to
any such small matters, for the sake of the things themselves,
must appear in his conduct. His situation may require the most
severe oeconomy and the most exact assiduity: but each particular
exertion of that oeconomy and assiduity must proceed, not so much
from a regard for that particular saving or gain, as for the
general rule which to him prescribes, with the utmost rigour, such
a tenor of conduct. His parsimony to-day must not arise from a
desire of the particular three-pence which be will save by it, nor
his attendance in his shop from a passion for the particular
ten-pence which he will acquire by it: both the one and the other
ought to proceed solely from a regard to the general rule, which
prescribes, with the most unrelenting severity, this plan of
conduct to all persons in his way of life. In this consists the
difference between the character of a miser and that of a person
of exact oeconomy and assiduity. The one is anxious about small
matters for their own sake; the other attends to them only in
consequence of the scheme of life which he has laid down to
himself. | |
III.I.118 |
|
It is quite otherwise with regard to the more extraordinary and
important objects of self-interest. A person appears
mean-spirited, who does not pursue these with some degree of
earnestness for their own sake. We should despise a prince who was
not anxious about conquering or defending a province. We should
have little respect for a private gentleman who did not exert
himself to gain an estate, or even a considerable office, when he
could acquire them without either meanness or injustice. A member
of parliament who shews no keenness about his own election, is
abandoned by his friends, as altogether unworthy of their
attachment. Even a tradesman is thought a poor-spirited fellow
among his neighbours, who does not bestir himself to get what they
call an extraordinary job, or some uncommon advantage. This spirit
and keenness constitutes the difference between the man of
enterprise and the man of dull regularity. Those great objects of
self-interest, of which the loss or acquisition quite changes the
rank of the person, are the objects of the passion properly called
ambition; a passion, which when it keeps within the bounds of
prudence and justice, is always admired in the world, and has even
sometimes a certain irregular greatness, which dazzles the
imagination, when it passes the limits of both these virtues, and
is not only unjust but extravagant. Hence the general admiration
for heroes and conquerors, and even for statesmen, whose projects
have been very daring and extensive, though altogether devoid of
justice; such as those of the Cardinals of Richlieu and of Retz.
The objects of avarice and ambition differ only in their
greatness. A miser is as furious about a halfpenny, as a man of
ambition about the conquest of a kingdom.
| |
III.I.119 |
|
II. Secondly, I say, it will depend partly upon the precision
and exactness, or the looseness and inaccuracy of the general
rules themselves, how far our conduct ought to proceed entirely
from a regard to them. | |
III.I.120 |
|
The general rules of almost all the virtues, the general rules
which determine what are the offices of prudence, of charity, of
generosity, of gratitude, of friendship, are in many respects
loose and inaccurate, admit of many exceptions, and require so
many modifications, that it is scarce possible to regulate our
conduct entirely by a regard to them. The common proverbial maxims
of prudence, being founded in universal experience, are perhaps
the best general rules which can be given about it. To affect,
however, a very strict and literal adherence to them would
evidently be the most absurd and ridiculous pedantry. Of all the
virtues I have just now mentioned, gratitude is that, perhaps, of
which the rules are the most precise, and admit of the fewest
exceptions. That as soon as we can we should make a return of
equal, and if possible of superior value to the services we have
received, would seem to be a pretty plain rule, and one which
admitted of scarce any exceptions. Upon the most superficial
examination, however, this rule will appear to be in the highest
degree loose and inaccurate, and to admit of ten thousand
exceptions. If your benefactor attended you in your sickness,
ought you to attend him in his? or can you fulfil the obligation
of gratitude, by making a return of a different kind? If you ought
to attend him, how long ought you to attend him? The same time
which he attended you, or longer, and how much longer? If your
friend lent you money in your distress, ought you to lend him
money in his? How much ought you to lend him? When ought you to
lend him? Now, or to-morrow, or next month? And for how long a
time? It is evident, that no general rule can be laid down, by
which a precise answer can, in all cases, be given to any of these
questions. The difference between his character and yours, between
his circumstances and yours, may be such, that you may be
perfectly grateful, and justly refuse to lend him a halfpenny:
and, on the contrary, you may be willing to lend, or even to give
him ten times the sum which he lent you, and yet justly be accused
of the blackest ingratitude, and of not having fulfilled the
hundredth part of the obligation you lie under. As the duties of
gratitude, however, are perhaps the most sacred of all those which
the beneficent virtues prescribe to us, so the general rules which
determine them are, as I said before, the most accurate. Those
which ascertain the actions required by friendship, humanity,
hospitality, generosity, are still more vague and indeterminate.
| |
III.I.121 |
|
There is, however, one virtue of which the general rules
determine with the greatest exactness every external action which
it requires. This virtue is justice. The rules of justice are
accurate in the highest degree, and admit of no exceptions or
modifications, but such as may be ascertained as accurately as the
rules themselves, and which generally, indeed, flow from the very
same principles with them. If I owe a man ten pounds, justice
requires that I should precisely pay him ten pounds, either at the
time agreed upon, or when he demands it. What I ought to perform,
how much I ought to perform, when and where I ought to perform it,
the whole nature and circumstances of the action prescribed, are
all of them precisely fixt and determined. Though it may be
awkward and pedantic, therefore, to affect too strict an adherence
to the common rules of prudence or generosity, there is no
pedantry in sticking fast by the rules of justice. On the
contrary, the most sacred regard is due to them; and the actions
which this virtue requires are never so properly performed, as
when the chief motive for performing them is a reverential and
religious regard to those general rules which require them. In the
practice of the other virtues, our conduct should rather be
directed by a certain idea of propriety, by a certain taste for a
particular tenor of conduct, than by any regard to a precise maxim
or rule; and we should consider the end and foundation of the
rule, more than the rule itself. But it is otherwise with regard
to justice: the man who in that refines the least, and adheres
with the most obstinate stedfastness to the general rules
themselves, is the most commendable, and the most to be depended
upon. Though the end of the rules of justice be, to hinder us from
hurting our neighbour, it may frequently be a crime to violate
them, though we could pretend, with some pretext of reason, that
this particular violation could do no hurt. A man often becomes a
villain the moment he begins, even in his own heart, to chicane in
this manner. The moment he thinks of departing from the most
staunch and positive adherence to what those inviolable precepts
prescribe to him, he is no longer to be trusted, and no man can
say what degree of guilt he may not arrive at. The thief imagines
he does no evil, when he steals from the rich, what he supposes
they may easily want, and what possibly they may never even know
has been stolen from them. The adulterer imagines he does no evil,
when he corrupts the wife of his friend, provided he covers his
intrigue from the suspicion of the husband, and does not disturb
the peace of the family. When once we begin to give way to such
refinements, there is no enormity so gross of which we may not be
capable. | |
III.I.122 |
|
The rules of justice may be compared to the rules of grammar;
the rules of the other virtues, to the rules which critics lay
down for the attainment of what is sublime and elegant in
composition. The one, are precise, accurate, and indispensable.
The other, are loose, vague, and indeterminate, and present us
rather with a general idea of the perfection we ought to aim at,
than afford us any certain and infallible directions for acquiring
it. A man may learn to write grammatically by rule, with the most
absolute infallibility; and so, perhaps, he may be taught to act
justly. But there are no rules whose observance will infallibly
lead us to the attainment of elegance or sublimity in writing;
though there are some which may help us, in some measure, to
correct and ascertain the vague ideas which we might otherwise
have entertained of those perfections. And there are no rules by
the knowledge of which we can infallibly be taught to act upon all
occasions with prudence, with just magnanimity, or proper
beneficence: though there are some which may enable us to correct
and ascertain, in several respects, the imperfect ideas which we
might otherwise have entertained of those virtues.
| |
III.I.123 |
|
It may sometimes happen, that with the most serious and earnest
desire of acting so as to deserve approbation, we may mistake the
proper rules of conduct, and thus be misled by that very principle
which ought to direct us. It is in vain to expect, that in this
case mankind should entirely approve of our behaviour. They cannot
enter into that absurd idea of duty which influenced us, nor go
along with any of the actions which follow from it. There is
still, however, something respectable in the character and
behaviour of one who is thus betrayed into vice, by a wrong sense
of duty, or by what is called an erroneous conscience. How fatally
soever he may be misled by it, he is still, with the generous and
humane, more the object of commiseration than of hatred or
resentment. They lament the weakness of human nature, which
exposes us to such unhappy delusions, even while we are most
sincerely labouring after perfection, and endeavouring to act
according to the best principle which can possibly direct us.
False notions of religion are almost the only causes which can
occasion any very gross perversion of our natural sentiments in
this way; and that principle which gives the greatest authority to
the rules of duty, is alone capable of distorting our ideas of
them in any considerable degree. In all other cases common sense
is sufficient to direct us, if not to the most exquisite propriety
of conduct, yet to something which is not very far from it; and
provided we are in earnest desirous to do well, our behaviour will
always, upon the whole, be praise-worthy. That to obey the will of
the Deity, is the first rule of duty, all men are agreed. But
concerning the particular commandments which that will may impose
upon us, they differ widely from one another. In this, therefore,
the greatest mutual forbearance and toleration is due; and though
the defence of society requires that crimes should be punished,
from whatever motives they proceed, yet a good man will always
punish them with reluctance, when they evidently proceed from
false notions of religious duty. He will never feel against those
who commit them that indignation which he feels against other
criminals, but will rather regret, and sometimes even admire their
unfortunate firmness and magnanimity, at the very time that he
punishes their crime. In the tragedy of Mahomet, one of the finest
of Mr. Voltaire's, it is well represented, what ought to be our
sentiments for crimes which proceed from such motives. In that
tragedy, two young people of different sexes, of the most innocent
and virtuous dispositions, and without any other weakness except
what endears them the more to us, a mutual fondness for one
another, are instigated by the strongest motives of a false
religion, to commit a horrid murder, that shocks all the
principles of human nature. A venerable old man, who had expressed
the most tender affection for them both, for whom, notwithstanding
he was the avowed enemy of their religion, they had both conceived
the highest reverence and esteem, and who was in reality their
father, though they did not know him to be such, is pointed out to
them as a sacrifice which God had expressly required at their
hands, and they are commanded to kill him. While they are about
executing this crime, they are tortured with all the agonies which
can arise from the struggle between the idea of the
indispensableness of religious duty on the one side, and
compassion, gratitude, reverence for the age, and love for the
humanity and virtue of the person whom they are going to destroy,
on the other. The representation of this exhibits one of the most
interesting, and perhaps the most instructive spectacle that was
ever introduced upon any theatre. The sense of duty, however, at
last prevails over all the amiable weaknesses of human nature.
They execute the crime imposed upon them; but immediately discover
their error, and the fraud which had deceived them, and are
distracted with horror, remorse, and resentment. Such as are our
sentiments for the unhappy Seid and Palmira, such ought we to feel
for every person who is in this manner misled by religion, when we
are sure that it is really religion which misleads him, and not
the pretence of it, which is made a cover to some of the worst of
human passions. | |
III.I.124 |
|
As a person may act wrong by following a wrong sense of duty,
so nature may sometimes prevail, and lead him to act right in
opposition to it. We cannot in this case be displeased to see that
motive prevail, which we think ought to prevail, though the person
himself is so weak as to think otherwise. As his conduct, however,
is the effect of weakness, not principle, we are far from
bestowing upon it any thing that approaches to complete
approbation. A bigoted Roman Catholic, who, during the massacre of
St. Bartholomew, had been so overcome by compassion, as to save
some unhappy Protestants, whom he thought it his duty to destroy,
would not seem to be entitled to that high applause which we
should have bestowed upon him, had he exerted the same generosity
with complete self-approbation. We might be pleased with the
humanity of his temper, but we should still regard him with a sort
of pity which is altogether inconsistent with the admiration that
is due to perfect virtue. It is the same case with all the other
passions. We do not dislike to see them exert themselves properly,
even when a false notion of duty would direct the person to
restrain them. A very devout Quaker, who upon being struck upon
one cheek, instead of turning up the other, should so far forget
his literal interpretation of our Saviour's precept, as to bestow
some good discipline upon the brute that insulted him, would not
be disagreeable to us. We should laugh and be diverted with his
spirit, and rather like him the better for it. But we should by no
means regard him with that respect and esteem which would seem due
to one who, upon a like occasion, had acted properly from a just
sense of what was proper to be done. No action can properly be
called virtuous, which is not accompanied with the sentiment of
self-approbation. | |
III.I.125 |
|
|
|
4. Of the Effect of Utility upon the Sentiment of Approbation
|
Chapter I - Of the beauty which the appearance of Utility bestows
upon all the productions of art, and of the extensive influence of
this species of Beauty
| |
|
That
utility is one of the principal sources of beauty has been
observed by every body, who has considered with any attention what
constitutes the nature of beauty. The conveniency of a house gives
pleasure to the spectator as well as its regularity, and he is as
much hurt when he observes the contrary defect, as when he sees
the correspondent windows of different forms, or the door not
placed exactly in the middle of the building. That the fitness of
any system or machine to produce the end for which it was
intended, bestows a certain propriety and beauty upon the whole,
and renders the very thought and contemplation of it agreeable, is
so very obvious that nobody has overlooked it.
| |
IV.I.1 |
|
The cause too, why utility pleases, has of late been assigned
by an ingenious and agreeable philosopher, who joins the greatest
depth of thought to the greatest elegance of expression, and
possesses the singular and happy talent of treating the abstrusest
subjects not only with the most perfect perspicuity, but with the
most lively eloquence. The utility of any object, according to
him, pleases the master by perpetually suggesting to him the
pleasure or conveniency which it is fitted to promote. Every time
he looks at it, he is put in mind of this pleasure; and the object
in this manner becomes a source of perpetual satisfaction and
enjoyment. The spectator enters by sympathy into the sentiments of
the master, and necessarily views the object under the same
agreeable aspect. When we visit the palaces of the great, we
cannot help conceiving the satisfaction we should enjoy if we
ourselves were the masters, and were possessed of so much artful
and ingeniously contrived accommodation. A similar account is
given why the appearance of inconveniency should render any object
disagreeable both to the owner and to the spectator.
| |
IV.I.2 |
|
But that this fitness, this happy contrivance of any production
of art, should often be more valued, than the very end for which
it was intended; and that the exact adjustment of the means for
attaining any conveniency or pleasure, should frequently be more
regarded, than that very conveniency or pleasure, in the
attainment of which their whole merit would seem to consist, has
not, so far as I know, been yet taken notice of by any body. That
this however is very frequently the case, may be observed in a
thousand instances, both in the most frivolous and in the most
important concerns of human life. | |
IV.I.3 |
|
When a person comes into his chamber, and finds the chairs all
standing in the middle of the room, he is angry with his servant,
and rather than see them continue in that disorder, perhaps takes
the trouble himself to set them all in their places with their
backs to the wall. The whole propriety of this new situation
arises from its superior conveniency in leaving the floor free and
disengaged. To attain this conveniency he voluntarily puts himself
to more trouble than all he could have suffered from the want of
it; since nothing was more easy, than to have set himself down
upon one of them, which is probably what he does when his labour
is over. What he wanted therefore, it seems, was not so much this
conveniency, as that arrangement of things which promotes it. Yet
it is this conveniency which ultimately recommends that
arrangement, and bestows upon it the whole of its propriety and
beauty. | |
IV.I.4 |
|
A watch, in the same manner, that falls behind above two
minutes in a day, is despised by one curious in watches. He sells
it perhaps for a couple of guineas, and purchases another at
fifty, which will not lose above a minute in a fortnight. The sole
use of watches however, is to tell us what o'clock it is, and to
hinder us from breaking any engagement, or suffering any other
inconveniency by our ignorance in that particular point. But the
person so nice with regard to this machine, will not always be
found either more scrupulously punctual than other men, or more
anxiously concerned upon any other account, to know precisely what
time of day it is. What interests him is not so much the
attainment of this piece of knowledge, as the perfection of the
machine which serves to attain it. | |
IV.I.5 |
|
How many people ruin themselves by laying out money on trinkets
of frivolous utility? What pleases these lovers of toys is not so
much the utility, as the aptness of the machines which are fitted
to promote it. All their pockets are stuffed with little
conveniencies. They contrive new pockets, unknown in the clothes
of other people, in order to carry a greater number. They walk
about loaded with a multitude of baubles, in weight and sometimes
in value not inferior to an ordinary Jew's-box, some of which may
sometimes be of some little use, but all of which might at all
times be very well spared, and of which the whole utility is
certainly not worth the fatigue of bearing the burden.
| |
IV.I.6 |
|
Nor is it only with regard to such frivolous objects that our
conduct is influenced by this principle; it is often the secret
motive of the most serious and important pursuits of both private
and public life. | |
IV.I.7 |
|
The poor man's son, whom heaven in its
anger has visited with ambition, when he begins to look around
him, admires the condition of the rich. He finds the cottage of
his father too small for his accommodation, and fancies he should
be lodged more at his ease in a palace. He is displeased with
being obliged to walk a-foot, or to endure the fatigue of riding
on horseback. He sees his superiors carried about in machines, and
imagines that in one of these he could travel with less
inconveniency. He feels himself naturally indolent, and willing to
serve himself with his own hands as little as possible; and
judges, that a numerous retinue of servants would save him from a
great deal of trouble. He thinks if he had attained all these, he
would sit still contentedly, and be quiet, enjoying himself in the
thought of the happiness and tranquillity of his situation. He is
enchanted with the distant idea of this felicity. It appears in
his fancy like the life of some superior rank of beings, and, in
order to arrive at it, he devotes himself for ever to the pursuit
of wealth and greatness. To obtain the conveniencies which these
afford, he submits in the first year, nay in the first month of
his application, to more fatigue of body and more uneasiness of
mind than he could have suffered through the whole of his life
from the want of them. He studies to distinguish himself in some
laborious profession. With the most unrelenting industry he
labours night and day to acquire talents superior to all his
competitors. He endeavours next to bring those talents into public
view, and with equal assiduity solicits every opportunity of
employment. For this purpose he makes his court to all mankind; he
serves those whom he hates, and is obsequious to those whom he
despises. Through the whole of his life he pursues the idea of a
certain artificial and elegant repose which he may never arrive
at, for which he sacrifices a real tranquillity that is at all
times in his power, and which, if in the extremity of old age he
should at last attain to it, he will find to be in no respect
preferable to that humble security and contentment which he had
abandoned for it. It is then, in the last dregs of life, his body
wasted with toil and diseases, his mind galled and ruffled by the
memory of a thousand injuries and disappointments which he
imagines he has met with from the injustice of his enemies, or
from the perfidy and ingratitude of his friends, that he begins at
last to find that wealth and greatness are mere trinkets of
frivolous utility, no more adapted for procuring ease of body or
tranquillity of mind than the tweezer-cases of the lover of toys;
and like them too, more troublesome to the person who carries them
about with him than all the advantages they can afford him are
commodious. There is no other real difference between them, except
that the conveniencies of the one are somewhat more observable
than those of the other. The palaces, the gardens, the equipage,
the retinue of the great, are objects of which the obvious
conveniency strikes every body. They do not require that their
masters should point out to us wherein consists their utility. Of
our own accord we readily enter into it, and by sympathy enjoy and
thereby applaud the satisfaction which they are fitted to afford
him. But the curiosity of a tooth-pick, of an ear-picker, of a
machine for cutting the nails, or of any other trinket of the same
kind, is not so obvious. Their conveniency may perhaps be equally
great, but it is not so striking, and we do not so readily enter
into the satisfaction of the man who possesses them. They are
therefore less reasonable subjects of vanity than the magnificence
of wealth and greatness; and in this consists the sole advantage
of these last. They more effectually gratify that love of
distinction so natural to man. To one who was to live alone in a
desolate island it might be a matter of doubt, perhaps, whether a
palace, or a collection of such small conveniencies as are
commonly contained in a tweezer-case, would contribute most to his
happiness and enjoyment. If he is to live in society, indeed,
there can be no comparison, because in this, as in all other
cases, we constantly pay more regard to the sentiments of the
spectator, than to those of the person principally concerned, and
consider rather how his situation will appear to other people,
than how it will appear to himself. If we examine, however, why
the spectator distinguishes with such admiration the condition of
the rich and the great, we shall find that it is not so much upon
account of the superior ease or pleasure which they are supposed
to enjoy, as of the numberless artificial and elegant contrivances
for promoting this ease or pleasure. He does not even imagine that
they are really happier than other people: but he imagines that
they possess more means of happiness. And it is the ingenious and
artful adjustment of those means to the end for which they were
intended, that is the principal source of his admiration. But in
the languor of disease and the weariness of old age, the pleasures
of the vain and empty distinctions of greatness disappear. To one,
in this situation, they are no longer capable of recommending
those toilsome pursuits in which they had formerly engaged him. In
his heart he curses ambition, and vainly regrets the ease and the
indolence of youth, pleasures which are fled for ever, and which
he has foolishly sacrificed for what, when he has got it, can
afford him no real satisfaction. In this miserable aspect does
greatness appear to every man when reduced either by spleen or
disease to observe with attention his own situation, and to
consider what it is that is really wanting to his happiness. Power
and riches appear then to be, what they are, enormous and operose
machines contrived to produce a few trifling conveniencies to the
body, consisting of springs the most nice and delicate, which must
be kept in order with the most anxious attention, and which in
spite of all our care are ready every moment to burst into pieces,
and to crush in their ruins their unfortunate possessor. They are
immense fabrics, which it requires the labour of a life to raise,
which threaten every moment to overwhelm the person that dwells in
them, and which while they stand, though they may save him from
some smaller inconveniencies, can protect him from none of the
severer inclemencies of the season. They keep off the summer
shower, not the winter storm, but leave him always as much, and
sometimes more exposed than before, to anxiety, to fear, and to
sorrow; to diseases, to danger, and to death.
| |
IV.I.8 |
|
But though this splenetic philosophy, which in time of sickness
or low spirits is familiar to every man, thus entirely depreciates
those great objects of human desire, when in better health and in
better humour, we never fail to regard them under a more agreeable
aspect. Our imagination, which in pain and sorrow seems to be
confined and cooped up within our own persons, in times of ease
and prosperity expands itself to every thing around us. We are
then charmed with the beauty of that accommodation which reigns in
the palaces and oeconomy of the great; and admire how every thing
is adapted to promote their ease, to prevent their wants, to
gratify their wishes, and to amuse and entertain their most
frivolous desires. If we consider the real satisfaction which all
these things are capable of affording, by itself and separated
from the beauty of that arrangement which is fitted to promote it,
it will always appear in the highest degree contemptible and
trifling. But we rarely view it in this abstract and philosophical
light. We naturally confound it in our imagination with the order,
the regular and harmonious movement of the system, the machine or
oeconomy by means of which it is produced. The pleasures of wealth
and greatness, when considered in this complex view, strike the
imagination as something grand and beautiful and noble, of which
the attainment is well worth all the toil and anxiety which we are
so apt to bestow upon it. | |
IV.I.9 |
|
And it is well that nature imposes upon us in this manner. It
is this deception which rouses and keeps in continual motion the
industry of mankind. It is this which first prompted them to
cultivate the ground, to build houses, to found cities and
commonwealths, and to invent and improve all the sciences and
arts, which ennoble and embellish human life; which have entirely
changed the whole face of the globe, have turned the rude forests
of nature into agreeable and fertile plains, and made the
trackless and barren ocean a new fund of subsistence, and the
great high road of communication to the different nations of the
earth. The earth by these labours of mankind has been obliged to
redouble her natural fertility, and to maintain a greater
multitude of inhabitants. It is to no purpose, that the proud and
unfeeling landlord views his extensive fields, and without a
thought for the wants of his brethren, in imagination consumes
himself the whole harvest that grows upon them. The homely and
vulgar proverb, that the eye is larger than the belly, never was
more fully verified than with regard to him. The capacity of his
stomach bears no proportion to the immensity of his desires, and
will receive no more than that of the meanest peasant. The rest he
is obliged to distribute among those, who prepare, in the nicest
manner, that little which he himself makes use of, among those who
fit up the palace in which this little is to be consumed, among
those who provide and keep in order all the different baubles and
trinkets, which are employed in the oeconomy of greatness; all of
whom thus derive from his luxury and caprice, that share of the
necessaries of life, which they would in vain have expected from
his humanity or his justice. The
produce of the soil maintains at all times nearly that number of
inhabitants which it is capable of maintaining. The rich only
select from the heap what is most precious and agreeable. They
consume little more than the poor, and in spite of their natural
selfishness and rapacity, though they mean only their own
conveniency, though the sole end which they propose from the
labours of all the thousands whom they employ, be the
gratification of their own vain and insatiable desires, they
divide with the poor the produce of all their improvements. They
are led by an invisible hand to make nearly the same distribution
of the necessaries of life, which would have been made, had the
earth been divided into equal portions among all its inhabitants,
and thus without intending it, without knowing it, advance the
interest of the society, and afford means to the multiplication of
the species. When Providence divided the earth among a few lordly
masters, it neither forgot nor abandoned those who seemed to have
been left out in the partition. These last too enjoy their share
of all that it produces. In what constitutes the real happiness of
human life, they are in no respect inferior to those who would
seem so much above them. In ease of body and peace of mind, all
the different ranks of life are nearly upon a level, and the
beggar, who suns himself by the side of the highway, possesses
that security which kings are fighting for.
| |
IV.I.10 |
|
The same principle, the same love of system, the same regard to
the beauty of order, of art and contrivance, frequently serves to
recommend those institutions which tend to promote the public
welfare. When a patriot exerts himself for the improvement of any
part of the public police, his conduct does not always arise from
pure sympathy with the happiness of those who are to reap the
benefit of it. It is not commonly from a fellow-feeling with
carriers and waggoners that a public-spirited man encourages the
mending of high roads. When the legislature establishes premiums
and other encouragements to advance the linen or woollen
manufactures, its conduct seldom proceeds from pure sympathy with
the wearer of cheap or fine cloth, and much less from that with
the manufacturer or merchant. The perfection of police, the
extension of trade and manufactures, are noble and magnificent
objects. The contemplation of them pleases us, and we are
interested in whatever can tend to advance them. They make part of
the great system of government, and the wheels of the political
machine seem to move with more harmony and ease by means of them.
We take pleasure in beholding the perfection of so beautiful and
grand a system, and we are uneasy till we remove any obstruction
that can in the least disturb or encumber the regularity of its
motions. All constitutions of government, however, are valued only
in proportion as they tend to promote the happiness of those who
live under them. This is their sole use and end. From a certain
spirit of system, however, from a certain love of art and
contrivance, we sometimes seem to value the means more than the
end, and to be eager to promote the happiness of our
fellow-creatures, rather from a view to perfect and improve a
certain beautiful and orderly system, than from any immediate
sense or feeling of what they either suffer or enjoy. There have
been men of the greatest public spirit, who have shown themselves
in other respects not very sensible to the feelings of humanity.
And on the contrary, there have been men of the greatest humanity,
who seem to have been entirely devoid of public spirit. Every man
may find in the circle of his acquaintance instances both of the
one kind and the other. Who had ever less humanity, or more public
spirit, than the celebrated legislator of Muscovy? The social and
well-natured James the First of Great Britain seems, on the
contrary, to have had scarce any passion, either for the glory or
the interest of his country. Would you awaken the industry of the
man who seems almost dead to ambition, it will often be to no
purpose to describe to him the happiness of the rich and the
great; to tell him that they are generally sheltered from the sun
and the rain, that they are seldom hungry, that they are seldom
cold, and that they are rarely exposed to weariness, or to want of
any kind. The most eloquent exhortation of this kind will have
little effect upon him. If you would hope to succeed, you must
describe to him the conveniency and arrangement of the different
apartments in their palaces; you must explain to him the propriety
of their equipages, and point out to him the number, the order,
and the different offices of all their attendants. If any thing is
capable of making impression upon him, this will. Yet all these
things tend only to keep off the sun and the rain, to save them
from hunger and cold, from want and weariness. In the same manner,
if you would implant public virtue in the breast of him who seems
heedless of the interest of his country, it will often be to no
purpose to tell him, what superior advantages the subjects of a
well-governed state enjoy; that they are better lodged, that they
are better clothed, that they are better fed. These considerations
will commonly make no great impression. You will be more likely to
persuade, if you describe the great system of public police which
procures these advantages, if you explain the connexions and
dependencies of its several parts, their mutual subordination to
one another, and their general subserviency to the happiness of
the society; if you show how this system might be introduced into
his own country, what it is that hinders it from taking place
there at present, how those obstructions might be removed, and all
the several wheels of the machine of government be made to move
with more harmony and smoothness, without grating upon one
another, or mutually retarding one another's motions. It is scarce
possible that a man should listen to a discourse of this kind, and
not feel himself animated to some degree of public spirit. He
will, at least for the moment, feel some desire to remove those
obstructions, and to put into motion so beautiful and so orderly a
machine. Nothing tends so much to promote public spirit as the
study of politics, of the several systems of civil government,
their advantages and disadvantages, of the constitution of our own
country, its situation, and interest with regard to foreign
nations, its commerce, its defence, the disadvantages it labours
under, the dangers to which it may be exposed, how to remove the
one, and how to guard against the other. Upon this account
political disquisitions, if just, and reasonable, and practicable,
are of all the works of speculation the most useful. Even the
weakest and the worst of them are not altogether without their
utility. They serve at least to animate the public passions of
men, and rouse them to seek out the means of promoting the
happiness of the society. | |
IV.I.11 |
|
Chapter II - Of the beauty which the appearance of Utility
bestows upon the characters and actions of men; and how far the
perception of this beauty may be regarded as one of the original
principles of approbation
| |
|
The characters of men, as well as the contrivances of art, or
the institutions of civil government, may be fitted either to
promote or to disturb the happiness both of the individual and of
the society. The prudent, the equitable, the active, resolute, and
sober character promises prosperity and satisfaction, both to the
person himself and to every one connected with him. The rash, the
insolent, the slothful, effeminate, and voluptuous, on the
contrary, forebodes ruin to the individual, and misfortune to all
who have any thing to do with him. The first turn of mind has at
least all the beauty which can belong to the most perfect machine
that was ever invented for promoting the most agreeable purpose:
and the second, all the deformity of the most awkward and clumsy
contrivance. What institution of government could tend so much to
promote the happiness of mankind as the general prevalence of
wisdom and virtue? All government is but an imperfect remedy for
the deficiency of these. Whatever beauty, therefore, can belong to
civil government upon account of its utility, must in a far
superior degree belong to these. On the contrary, what civil
policy can be so ruinous and destructive as the vices of men? The
fatal effects of bad government arise from nothing, but that it
does not sufficiently guard against the mischiefs which human
wickedness gives occasion to. | |
IV.I.12 |
|
This beauty and deformity which characters appear to derive
from their usefulness or inconveniency, are apt to strike, in a
peculiar manner, those who consider, in an abstract and
philosophical light, the actions and conduct of mankind. When a
philosopher goes to examine why humanity is approved of, or
cruelty condemned, he does not always form to himself, in a very
clear and distinct manner, the conception of any one particular
action either of cruelty or of humanity, but is commonly contented
with the vague and indeterminate idea which the general names of
those qualities suggest to him. But it is in particular instances
only that the propriety or impropriety, the merit or demerit of
actions is very obvious and discernible. It is only when
particular examples are given that we perceive distinctly either
the concord or disagreement between our own affections and those
of the agent, or feel a social gratitude arise towards him in the
one case, or a sympathetic resentment in the other. When we
consider virtue and vice in an abstract and general manner, the
qualities by which they excite these several sentiments seem in a
great measure to disappear, and the sentiments themselves become
less obvious and discernible. On the contrary, the happy effects
of the one and the fatal consequences of the other seem then to
rise up to the view, and as it were to stand out and distinguish
themselves from all the other qualities of either.
| |
IV.I.13 |
|
The same ingenious and agreeable author who first explained why
utility pleases, has been so struck with this view of things, as
to resolve our whole approbation of virtue into a perception of
this species of beauty which results from the appearance of
utility. No qualities of the mind, he observes, are approved of as
virtuous, but such as are useful or agreeable either to the person
himself or to others; and no qualities are disapproved of as
vicious but such as have a contrary tendency. And Nature, indeed,
seems to have so happily adjusted our sentiments of approbation
and disapprobation, to the conveniency both of the individual and
of the society, that after the strictest examination it will be
found, I believe, that this is universally the case. But still I
affirm, that it is not the view of this utility or hurtfulness
which is either the first or principal source of our approbation
and disapprobation. These sentiments are no doubt enhanced and
enlivened by the perception of the beauty or deformity which
results from this utility or hurtfulness. But still, I say, they
are originally and essentially different from this perception.
| |
IV.I.14 |
|
For first of all, it seems impossible that the approbation of
virtue should be a sentiment of the same kind with that by which
we approve of a convenient and well-contrived building; or that we
should have no other reason for praising a man than that for which
we commend a chest of drawers. | |
IV.I.15 |
|
And secondly, it will be found, upon examination, that the
usefulness of any disposition of mind is seldom the first ground
of our approbation; and that the sentiment of approbation always
involves in it a sense of propriety quite distinct from the
perception of utility. We may observe this with regard to all the
qualities which are approved of as virtuous, both those which,
according to this system, are originally valued as useful to
ourselves, as well as those which are esteemed on account of their
usefulness to others. | |
IV.I.16 |
|
The qualities most useful to ourselves are, first of all,
superior reason and understanding, by which we are capable of
discerning the remote consequences of all our actions, and of
foreseeing the advantage or detriment which is likely to result
from them: and secondly, self-command, by which we are enabled to
abstain from present pleasure or to endure present pain, in order
to obtain a greater pleasure or to avoid a greater pain in some
future time. In the union of those two qualities consists the
virtue of prudence, of all the virtues that which is most useful
to the individual. | |
IV.I.17 |
|
With regard to the first of those qualities, it has been
observed on a former occasion, that superior reason and
understanding are originally approved of as just and right and
accurate, and not merely as useful or advantageous. It is in the
abstruser sciences, particularly in the higher parts of
mathematics, that the greatest and most admired exertions of human
reason have been displayed. But the utility of those sciences,
either to the individual or to the public, is not very obvious,
and to prove it, requires a discussion which is not always very
easily comprehended. It was not, therefore, their utility which
first recommended them to the public admiration. This quality was
but little insisted upon, till it became necessary to make some
reply to the reproaches of those, who, having themselves no taste
for such sublime discoveries, endeavoured to depreciate them as
useless. | |
IV.I.18 |
|
That self-command, in the same manner, by which we restrain our
present appetites, in order to gratify them more fully upon
another occasion, is approved of, as much under the aspect of
propriety, as under that of utility. When we act in this manner,
the sentiments which influence our conduct seem exactly to
coincide with those of the spectator. The spectator does not feel
the solicitations of our present appetites. To him the pleasure
which we are to enjoy a week hence, or a year hence, is just as
interesting as that which we are to enjoy this moment. When for
the sake of the present, therefore, we sacrifice the future, our
conduct appears to him absurd and extravagant in the highest
degree, and he cannot enter into the principles which influence
it. On the contrary, when we abstain from present pleasure, in
order to secure greater pleasure to come, when we act as if the
remote object interested us as much as that which immediately
presses upon the senses, as our affections exactly correspond with
his own, he cannot fail to approve of our behaviour: and as he
knows from experience, how few are capable of this self-command,
he looks upon our conduct with a considerable degree of wonder and
admiration. Hence arises that eminent esteem with which all men
naturally regard a steady perseverance in the practice of
frugality, industry, and application, though directed to no other
purpose than the acquisition of fortune. The resolute firmness of
the person who acts in this manner, and in order to obtain a great
though remote advantage, not only gives up all present pleasures,
but endures the greatest labour both of mind and body, necessarily
commands our approbation. That view of his interest and happiness
which appears to regulate his conduct, exactly tallies with the
idea which we naturally form of it. There is the most perfect
correspondence between his sentiments and our own, and at the same
time, from our experience of the common weakness of human nature,
it is a correspondence which we could not reasonably have
expected. We not only approve, therefore, but in some measure
admire his conduct, and think it worthy of a considerable degree
of applause. It is the consciousness of this merited approbation
and esteem which is alone capable of supporting the agent in this
tenour of conduct. The pleasure which we are to enjoy ten years
hence interests us so little in comparison with that which we may
enjoy to-day, the passion which the first excites, is naturally so
weak in comparison with that violent emotion which the second is
apt to give occasion to, that the one could never be any balance
to the other, unless it was supported by the sense of propriety,
by the consciousness that we merited the esteem and approbation of
every body, by acting in the one way, and that we became the
proper objects of their contempt and derision by behaving in the
other. | |
IV.I.19 |
|
Humanity, justice, generosity, and public spirit, are the
qualities most useful to others. Wherein consists the propriety of
humanity and justice has been explained upon a former occasion,
where it was shewn how much our esteem and approbation of those
qualities depended upon the concord between the affections of the
agent and those of the spectators. | |
IV.I.20 |
|
The propriety of generosity and public spirit is founded upon
the same principle with that of justice. Generosity is different
from humanity. Those two qualities, which at first sight seem so
nearly allied, do not always belong to the same person. Humanity
is the virtue of a woman, generosity of a man. The fair-sex, who
have commonly much more tenderness than ours, have seldom so much
generosity. That women rarely make considerable donations, is an
observation of the civil law. Humanity consists merely in the
exquisite fellow-feeling which the spectator entertains with the
sentiments of the persons principally concerned, so as to grieve
for their sufferings, to resent their injuries, and to rejoice at
their good fortune. The most humane actions require no
self-denial, no self-command, no great exertion of the sense of
propriety. They consist only in doing what this exquisite sympathy
would of its own accord prompt us to do. But it is otherwise with
generosity. We never are generous except when in some respect we
prefer some other person to ourselves, and sacrifice some great
and important interest of our own to an equal interest of a friend
or of a superior. The man who gives up his pretensions to an
office that was the great object of his ambition, because he
imagines that the services of another are better entitled to it;
the man who exposes his life to defend that of his friend, which
he judges to be of more importance; neither of them act from
humanity, or because they feel more exquisitely what concerns that
other person than what concerns themselves. They both consider
those opposite interests, not in the light in which they naturally
appear to themselves, but in that in which they appear to others.
To every bystander, the success or preservation of this other
person may justly be more interesting than their own; but it
cannot be so to themselves. When to the interest of this other
person, therefore, they sacrifice their own, they accommodate
themselves to the sentiments of the spectator, and by an effort of
magnanimity act according to those views of things which, they
feel, must naturally occur to any third person. The soldier who
throws away his life in order to defend that of his officer, would
perhaps be but little affected by the death of that officer, if it
should happen without any fault of his own; and a very small
disaster which had befallen himself might excite a much more
lively sorrow. But when he endeavours to act so as to deserve
applause, and to make the impartial spectator enter into the
principles of his conduct, he feels, that to every body but
himself, his own life is a trifle compared with that of his
officer, and that when he sacrifices the one to the other, he acts
quite properly and agreeably to what would be the natural
apprehensions of every impartial bystander.
| |
IV.I.21 |
|
It is the same case with the greater exertions of public
spirit. When a young officer exposes his life to acquire some
inconsiderable addition to the dominions of his sovereign, it is
not because the acquisition of the new territory is, to himself,
an object more desireable than the preservation of his own life.
To him his own life is of infinitely more value than the conquest
of a whole kingdom for the state which he serves. But when he
compares those two objects with one another, he does not view them
in the light in which they naturally appear to himself, but in
that in which they appear to the nation he fights for. To them the
success of the war is of the highest importance; the life of a
private person of scarce any consequence. When he puts himself in
their situation, he immediately feels that he cannot be too
prodigal of his blood, if, by shedding it, he can promote so
valuable a purpose. In thus thwarting, from a sense of duty and
propriety, the strongest of all natural propensities, consists the
heroism of his conduct. There is many an honest Englishman, who,
in his private station, would be more seriously disturbed by the
loss of a guinea, than by the national loss of Minorca, who yet,
had it been in his power to defend that fortress, would have
sacrificed his life a thousand times rather than, through his
fault, have let it fall into the hands of the enemy. When the
first Brutus led forth his own sons to a capital punishment,
because they had conspired against the rising liberty of Rome, he
sacrificed what, if he had consulted his own breast only, would
appear to be the stronger to the weaker affection. Brutus ought
naturally to have felt much more for the death of his own sons,
than for all that probably Rome could have suffered from the want
of so great an example. But he viewed them, not with the eyes of a
father, but with those of a Roman citizen. He entered so
thoroughly into the sentiments of this last character, that he
paid no regard to that tie, by which he himself was connected with
them; and to a Roman citizen, the sons even of Brutus seemed
contemptible, when put into the balance with the smallest interest
of Rome. In these and in all other cases of this kind, our
admiration is not so much founded upon the utility, as upon the
unexpected, and on that account the great, the noble, and exalted
propriety of such actions. This utility, when we come to view it,
bestows upon them, undoubtedly, a new beauty, and upon that
account still further recommends them to our approbation. This
beauty, however, is chiefly perceived by men of reflection and
speculation, and is by no means the quality which first recommends
such actions to the natural sentiments of the bulk of mankind.
| |
IV.I.22 |
|
It is to be observed, that so far as the sentiment of
approbation arises from the perception of this beauty of utility,
it has no reference of any kind to the sentiments of others. If it
was possible, therefore, that a person should grow up to manhood
without any communication with society, his own actions might,
notwithstanding, be agreeable or disagreeable to him on account of
their tendency to his happiness or disadvantage. He might perceive
a beauty of this kind in prudence, temperance, and good conduct,
and a deformity in the opposite behaviour: he might view his own
temper and character with that sort of satisfaction with which we
consider a well-contrived machine, in the one case; or with that
sort of distaste and dissatisfaction with which we regard a very
awkward and clumsy contrivance, in the other. As these
perceptions, however, are merely a matter of taste, and have all
the feebleness and delicacy of that species of perceptions, upon
the justness of which what is properly called taste is founded,
they probably would not be much attended to by one in this
solitary and miserable condition. Even though they should occur to
him, they would by no means have the same effect upon him,
antecedent to his connexion with society, which they would have in
consequence of that connexion. He would not be cast down with
inward shame at the thought of this deformity; nor would he be
elevated with secret triumph of mind from the consciousness of the
contrary beauty. He would not exult from the notion of deserving
reward in the one case, nor tremble from the suspicion of meriting
punishment in the other. All such sentiments suppose the idea of
some other being, who is the natural judge of the person that
feels them; and it is only by sympathy with the decisions of this
arbiter of his conduct, that he can conceive, either the triumph
of self-applause, or the shame of self-condemnation.
| |
IV.I.23 |
|
|
|
5. Of the Influence of Custom and Fashion upon the Sentiments of
Moral Approbation and Disapprobation
|
Chapter I - Of the Influence of Custom and Fashion upon our Notions
of Beauty and Deformity
| |
|
There are
other principles besides those already enumerated, which have a
considerable influence upon the moral sentiments of mankind, and
are the chief causes of the many irregular and discordant opinions
which prevail in different ages and nations concerning what is
blameable or praise-worthy. These principles are custom and
fashion, principles which extend their dominion over our judgments
concerning beauty of every kind. | |
V.I.1 |
|
When two objects have frequently been seen together, the
imagination acquires a habit of passing easily from the one to the
other. If the first appear, we lay our account that the second is
to follow. Of their own accord they put us in mind of one another,
and the attention glides easily along them. Though, independent of
custom, there should be no real beauty in their union, yet when
custom has thus connected them together, we feel an impropriety in
their separation. The one we think is awkward when it appears
without its usual companion. We miss something which we expected
to find, and the habitual arrangement of our ideas is disturbed by
the disappointment. A suit of clothes, for example, seems to want
something if they are without the most insignificant ornament
which usually accompanies them, and we find a meanness or
awkwardness in the absence even of a haunch button. When there is
any natural propriety in the union, custom increases our sense of
it, and makes a different arrangement appear still more
disagreeable than it would otherwise seem to be. Those who have
been accustomed to see things in a good taste, are more disgusted
by whatever is clumsy or awkward. Where the conjunction is
improper, custom either diminishes, or takes away altogether, our
sense of the impropriety. Those who have been accustomed to
slovenly disorder lose all sense of neatness or elegance. The
modes of furniture or dress which seem ridiculous to strangers,
give no offence to the people who are used to them.
| |
V.I.2 |
|
Fashion is different from custom, or rather is a particular
species of it. That is not the fashion which every body wears, but
which those wear who are of a high rank, or character. The
graceful, the easy, and commanding manners of the great, joined to
the usual richness and magnificence of their dress, give a grace
to the very form which they happen to bestow upon it. As long as
they continue to use this form, it is connected in our
imaginations with the idea of something that is genteel and
magnificent, and though in itself it should be indifferent, it
seems, on account of this relation, to have something about it
that is genteel and magnificent too. As soon as they drop it, it
loses all the grace, which it had appeared to possess before, and
being now used only by the inferior ranks of people, seems to have
something of their meanness and awkwardness.
| |
V.I.3 |
|
Dress and furniture are allowed by all the world to be entirely
under the dominion of custom and fashion. The influence of those
principles, however, is by no means confined to so narrow a
sphere, but extends itself to whatever is in any respect the
object of taste, to music, to poetry, to architecture. The modes
of dress and furniture are continually changing, and that fashion
appearing ridiculous to-day which was admired five years ago, we
are experimentally convinced that it owed its vogue chiefly or
entirely to custom and fashion. Clothes and furniture are not made
of very durable materials. A well-fancied coat is done in a
twelve-month, and cannot continue longer to propagate, as the
fashion, that form according to which it was made. The modes of
furniture change less rapidly than those of dress; because
furniture is commonly more durable. In five or six years, however,
it generally undergoes an entire revolution, and every man in his
own time sees the fashion in this respect change many different
ways. The productions of the other arts are much more lasting,
and, when happily imagined, may continue to propagate the fashion
of their make for a much longer time. A well-contrived building
may endure many centuries: a beautiful air may be delivered down
by a sort of tradition, through many successive generations: a
well-written poem may last as long as the world; and all of them
continue for ages together, to give the vogue to that particular
style, to that particular taste or manner, according to which each
of them was composed. Few men have an opportunity of seeing in
their own times the fashion in any of these arts change very
considerably. Few men have so much experience and acquaintance
with the different modes which have obtained in remote ages and
nations, as to be thoroughly reconciled to them, or to judge with
impartiality between them, and what takes place in their own age
and country. Few men therefore are willing to allow, that custom
or fashion have much influence upon their judgments concerning
what is beautiful, or otherwise, in the productions of any of
those arts; but imagine, that all the rules, which they think
ought to be observed in each of them, are founded upon reason and
nature, not upon habit or prejudice. A very little attention,
however, may convince them of the contrary, and satisfy them, that
the influence of custom and fashion over dress and furniture, is
not more absolute than over architecture, poetry, and music.
| |
V.I.4 |
|
Can any reason, for example, be assigned why the Doric capital
should be appropriated to a pillar, whose height is equal to eight
diameters; the Ionic volute to one of nine; and the Corinthian
foliage to one of ten? The propriety of each of those
appropriations can be founded upon nothing but habit and custom.
The eye having been used to see a particular proportion connected
with a particular ornament, would be offended if they were not
joined together. Each of the five orders has its peculiar
ornaments, which cannot be changed for any other, without giving
offence to all those who know any thing of the rules of
architecture. According to some architects, indeed, such is the
exquisite judgment with which the ancients have assigned to each
order its proper ornaments, that no others can be found which are
equally suitable. It seems, however, a little difficult to be
conceived that these forms, though, no doubt, extremely agreeable,
should be the only forms which can suit those proportions, or that
there should not be five hundred others which, antecedent to
established custom, would have fitted them equally well. When
custom, however, has established particular rules of building,
provided they are not absolutely unreasonable, it is absurd to
think of altering them for others which are only equally good, or
even for others which, in point of elegance and beauty, have
naturally some little advantage over them. A man would be
ridiculous who should appear in public with a suit of clothes
quite different from those which are commonly worn, though the new
dress should in itself be ever so graceful or convenient. And
there seems to be an absurdity of the same kind in ornamenting a
house after a quite different manner from that which custom and
fashion have prescribed; though the new ornaments should in
themselves be somewhat superior to the common ones.
| |
V.I.5 |
|
According to the ancient rhetoricians, a certain measure of
verse was by nature appropriated to each particular species of
writing, as being naturally expressive of that character,
sentiment, or passion, which ought to predominate in it. One
verse, they said, was fit for grave and another for gay works,
which could not, they thought, be interchanged without the
greatest impropriety. The experience of modern times, however,
seems to contradict this principle, though in itself it would
appear to be extremely probable. What is the burlesque verse in
English, is the heroic verse in French. The tragedies of Racine
and the Henriad of Voltaire, are nearly in the same verse with,
Let me have your advice in a weighty affair.
| |
V.I.6 |
|
The burlesque verse in French, on the contrary, is pretty much
the same with the heroic verse of ten syllables in English. Custom
has made the one nation associate the ideas of gravity, sublimity,
and seriousness, to that measure which the other has connected
with whatever is gay, flippant, and ludicrous. Nothing would
appear more absurd in English, than a tragedy written in the
Alexandrine verses of the French; or in French, than a work of the
same kind in verses of ten syllables. | |
V.I.7 |
|
An eminent artist will bring about a considerable change in the
established modes of each of those arts, and introduce a new
fashion of writing, music, or architecture. As the dress of an
agreeable man of high rank recommends itself, and how peculiar and
fantastical soever, comes soon to be admired and imitated; so the
excellencies of an eminent master recommend his peculiarities, and
his manner becomes the fashionable style in the art which he
practises. The taste of the Italians in music and architecture
has, within these fifty years, undergone a considerable change,
from imitating the peculiarities of some eminent masters in each
of those arts. Seneca is accused by Quintilian of having corrupted
the taste of the Romans, and of having introduced a frivolous
prettiness in the room of majestic reason and masculine eloquence.
Sallust and Tacitus have by others been charged with the same
accusation, though in a different manner. They gave reputation, it
is pretended, to a style, which though in the highest degree
concise, elegant, expressive, and even poetical, wanted, however,
ease, simplicity, and nature, and was evidently the production of
the most laboured and studied affectation. How many great
qualities must that writer possess, who can thus render his very
faults agreeable? After the praise of refining the taste of a
nation, the highest eulogy, perhaps, which can be bestowed upon
any author, is to say, that he corrupted it. In our own language,
Mr. Pope and Dr. Swift have each of them introduced a manner
different from what was practised before, into all works that are
written in rhyme, the one in long verses, the other in short. The
quaintness of Butler has given place to the plainness of Swift.
The rambling freedom of Dryden, and the correct but often tedious
and prosaic languor of Addison, are no longer the objects of
imitation, but all long verses are now written after the manner of
the nervous precision of Mr. Pope. | |
V.I.8 |
|
Neither is it only over the productions of the arts, that
custom and fashion exert their dominion. They influence our
judgments, in the same manner, with regard to the beauty of
natural objects. What various and opposite forms are deemed
beautiful in different species of things? The proportions which
are admired in one animal, are altogether different from those
which are esteemed in another. Every class of things has its own
peculiar conformation, which is approved of, and has a beauty of
its own, distinct from that of every other species. It is upon
this account that a learned Jesuit, father Buffier, has determined
that the beauty of every object consists in that form and colour,
which is most usual among things of that particular sort to which
it belongs. Thus, in the human form, the beauty of each feature
lies in a certain middle, equally removed from a variety of other
forms that are ugly. A beautiful nose, for example, is one that is
neither very long, nor very short, neither very straight, nor very
crooked, but a sort of middle among all these extremes, and less
different from any one of them, than all of them are from one
another. It is the form which Nature seems to have aimed at in
them all, which, however, she deviates from in a great variety of
ways, and very seldom hits exactly; but to which all those
deviations still bear a very strong resemblance. When a number of
drawings are made after one pattern, though they may all miss it
in some respects, yet they will all resemble it more than they
resemble one another; the general character of the pattern will
run through them all; the most singular and odd will be those
which are most wide of it; and though very few will copy it
exactly, yet the most accurate delineations will bear a greater
resemblance to the most careless, than the careless ones will bear
to one another. In the same manner, in each species of creatures,
what is most beautiful bears the strongest characters of the
general fabric of the species, and has the strongest resemblance
to the greater part of the individuals with which it is classed.
Monsters, on the contrary, or what is perfectly deformed, are
always most singular and odd, and have the least resemblance to
the generality of that species to which they belong. And thus the
beauty of each species, though in one sense the rarest of all
things, because few individuals hit this middle form exactly, yet
in another, is the most common, because all the deviations from it
resemble it more than they resemble one another. The most
customary form, therefore, is in each species of things, according
to him, the most beautiful. And hence it is that a certain
practice and experience in contemplating each species of objects
is requisite, before we can judge of its beauty, or know wherein
the middle and most usual form consists. The nicest judgment
concerning the beauty of the human species, will not help us to
judge of that of flowers, or horses, or any other species of
things. It is for the same reason that in different climates, and
where different customs and ways of living take place, as the
generality of any species receives a different conformation from
those circumstances, so different ideas of its beauty prevail. The
beauty of a Moorish is not exactly the same with that of an
English horse. What different ideas are formed in different
nations concerning the beauty of the human shape and countenance ?
A fair complexion is a shocking deformity upon the coast of
Guinea. Thick lips and a flat nose are a beauty. In some nations
long ears that hang down upon the shoulders are the objects of
universal admiration. In China if a lady's foot is so large as to
be fit to walk upon, she is regarded as a monster of ugliness.
Some of the savage nations in North-America tie four boards round
the heads of their children, and thus squeeze them, while the
bones are tender and gristly, into a form that is almost perfectly
square. Europeans are astonished at the absurd barbarity of this
practice, to which some missionaries have imputed the singular
stupidity of those nations among whom it prevails. But when they
condemn those savages, they do not reflect that the ladies in
Europe had, till within these very few years, been endeavouring,
for near a century past, to squeeze the beautiful roundness of
their natural shape into a square form of the same kind. And that,
notwithstanding the many distortions and diseases which this
practice was known to occasion, custom had rendered it agreeable
among some of the most civilized nations which, perhaps, the world
ever beheld. | |
V.I.9 |
|
Such is the system of this learned and ingenious Father,
concerning the nature of beauty; of which the whole charm,
according to him, would thus seem to arise from its falling in
with the habits which custom had impressed upon the imagination,
with regard to things of each particular kind. I cannot, however,
be induced to believe that our sense even of external beauty is
founded altogether on custom. The utility of any form, its fitness
for the useful purposes for which it was intended, evidently
recommends it, and renders it agreeable to us, independent of
custom. Certain colours are more agreeable than others, and give
more delight to the eye the first time it ever beholds them. A
smooth surface is more agreeable than a rough one. Variety is more
pleasing than a tedious undiversified uniformity. Connected
variety, in which each new appearance seems to be introduced by
what went before it, and in which all the adjoining parts seem to
have some natural relation to one another, is more agreeable than
a disjointed and disorderly assemblage of unconnected objects. But
though I cannot admit that custom is the sole principle of beauty,
yet I can so far allow the truth of this ingenious system as to
grant, that there is scarce any one external form so beautiful as
to please, if quite contrary to custom and unlike whatever we have
been used to in that particular species of things: or so deformed
as not to be agreeable, if custom uniformly supports it, and
habituates us to see it in every single individual of the kind.
| |
V.I.10 |
|
Chapter II - Of the Influence of Custom and Fashion upon
Moral Sentiments
| |
|
Since our sentiments concerning beauty of every kind, are so
much influenced by custom and fashion, it cannot be expected, that
those, concerning the beauty of conduct, should be entirely
exempted from the dominion of those principles. Their influence
here, however, seems to be much less than it is every where else.
There is, perhaps, no form of external objects, how absurd and
fantastical soever, to which custom will not reconcile us, or
which fashion will not render even agreeable. But the characters
and conduct of a Nero, or a Claudius, are what no custom will ever
reconcile us to, what no fashion will ever render agreeable; but
the one will always be the object of dread and hatred; the other
of scorn and derision. The principles of the imagination, upon
which our sense of beauty depends, are of a very nice and delicate
nature, and may easily be altered by habit and education: but the
sentiments of moral approbation and disapprobation, are founded on
the strongest and most vigorous passions of human nature; and
though they may be somewhat warpt, cannot be entirely perverted.
| |
V.I.11 |
|
But though the influence of custom and fashion upon moral
sentiments, is not altogether so great, it is however perfectly
similar to what it is every where else. When custom and fashion
coincide with the natural principles of right and wrong, they
heighten the delicacy of our sentiments, and increase our
abhorrence for every thing which approaches to evil. Those who
have been educated in what is really good company, not in what is
commonly called such, who have been accustomed to see nothing in
the persons whom they esteemed and lived with, but justice,
modesty, humanity, and good order; are more shocked with whatever
seems to be inconsistent with the rules which those virtues
prescribe. Those, on the contrary, who have had the misfortune to
be brought up amidst violence, licentiousness, falsehood, and
injustice; lose, though not all sense of the impropriety of such
conduct, yet all sense of its dreadful enormity, or of the
vengeance and punishment due to it. They have been familiarized
with it from their infancy, custom has rendered it habitual to
them, and they are very apt to regard it as, what is called, the
way of the world, something which either may, or must be
practised, to hinder us from being the dupes of our own integrity.
| |
V.I.12 |
|
Fashion too will sometimes give reputation to a certain degree
of disorder, and, on the contrary, discountenance qualities which
deserve esteem. In the reign of Charles II. a degree of
licentiousness was deemed the characteristic of a liberal
education. It was connected, according to the notions of those
times, with generosity, sincerity, magnanimity, loyalty, and
proved that the person who acted in this manner, was a gentleman,
and not a puritan. Severity of manners, and regularity of conduct,
on the other hand, were altogether unfashionable, and were
connected, in the imagination of that age, with cant, cunning,
hypocrisy, and low manners. To superficial minds, the vices of the
great seem at all times agreeable. They connect them, not only
with the splendour of fortune, but with many superior virtues,
which they ascribe to their superiors; with the spirit of freedom
and independency, with frankness, generosity, humanity, and
politeness. The virtues of the inferior ranks of people, on the
contrary, their parsimonious frugality, their painful industry,
and rigid adherence to rules, seem to them mean and disagreeable.
They connect them, both with the meanness of the station to which
those qualities commonly belong, and with many great vices, which,
they suppose, usually accompany them; such as an abject, cowardly,
ill-natured, lying, pilfering disposition.
| |
V.I.13 |
|
The objects with which men in the different professions and
states of life are conversant, being very different, and
habituating them to very different passions, naturally form in
them very different characters and manners. We expect in each rank
and profession, a degree of those manners, which, experience has
taught us, belong to it. But as in each species of things, we are
particularly pleased with the middle conformation, which, in every
part and feature, agrees most exactly with the general standard
which nature seems to have established for things of that kind; so
in each rank, or, if I may say so, in each species of men, we are
particularly pleased, if they have neither too much, nor too
little of the character which usually accompanies their particular
condition and situation. A man, we say, should look like his trade
and profession; yet the pedantry of every profession is
disagreeable. The different periods of life have, for the same
reason, different manners assigned to them. We expect in old age,
that gravity and sedateness which its infirmities, its long
experience, and its worn-out sensibility seem to render both
natural and respectable; and we lay our account to find in youth
that sensibility, that gaiety and sprightly vivacity which
experience teaches us to expect from the lively impressions that
all interesting objects are apt to make upon the tender and
unpractised senses of that early period of life. Each of those two
ages, however, may easily have too much of the peculiarities which
belong to it. The flirting levity of youth, and the immovable
insensibility of old age, are equally disagreeable. The young,
according to the common saying, are most agreeable when in their
behaviour there is something of the manners of the old, and the
old, when they retain something of the gaiety of the young. Either
of them, however, may easily have too much of the manners of the
other. The extreme coldness, and dull formality, which are
pardoned in old age, make youth ridiculous. The levity, the
carelessness, and the vanity, which are indulged in youth, render
old age contemptible. | |
V.I.14 |
|
The peculiar character and manners which we are led by custom
to appropriate to each rank and profession, have sometimes perhaps
a propriety independent of custom; and are what we should approve
of for their own sakes, if we took into consideration all the
different circumstances which naturally affect those in each
different state of life. The propriety of a person's behaviour,
depends not upon its suitableness to any one circumstance of his
situation, but to all the circumstances, which, when we bring his
case home to ourselves, we feel, should naturally call upon his
attention. If he appears to be so much occupied by any one of
them, as entirely to neglect the rest, we disapprove of his
conduct, as something which we cannot entirely go along with,
because not properly adjusted to all the circumstances of his
situation: yet, perhaps, the emotion he expresses for the object
which principally interests him, does not exceed what we should
entirely sympathize with, and approve of, in one whose attention
was not required by any other thing. A parent in private life
might, upon the loss of an only son, express without blame a
degree of grief and tenderness, which would be unpardonable in a
general at the head of an army, when glory, and the public safety,
demanded so great a part of his attention. As different objects
ought, upon common occasions, to occupy the attention of men of
different professions, so different passions ought naturally to
become habitual to them; and when we bring home to ourselves their
situation in this particular respect, we must be sensible, that
every occurrence should naturally affect them more or less,
according as the emotion which it excites, coincides or disagrees
with the fixt habit and temper of their minds. We cannot expect
the same sensibility to the gay pleasures and amusements of life
in a clergyman, which we lay our account with in an officer. The
man whose peculiar occupation it is to keep the world in mind of
that awful futurity which awaits them, who is to announce what may
be the fatal consequences of every deviation from the rules of
duty, and who is himself to set the example of the most exact
conformity, seems to be the messenger of tidings, which cannot, in
propriety, be delivered either with levity or indifference. His
mind is supposed to be continually occupied with what is too grand
and solemn, to leave any room for the impressions of those
frivolous objects, which fill up the attention of the dissipated
and the gay . We readily feel therefore, that, independent of
custom, there is a propriety in the manners which custom has
allotted to this profession; and that nothing can be more suitable
to the character of a clergyman than that grave, that austere and
abstracted severity, which we are habituated to expect in his
behaviour. These reflections are so very obvious, that there is
scarce any man so inconsiderate, as not, at some time, to have
made them, and to have accounted to himself in this manner for his
approbation of the usual character of this order.
| |
V.I.15 |
|
The foundation of the customary character of some other
professions is not so obvious, and our approbation of it is
founded entirely in habit, without being either confirmed, or
enlivened by any reflections of this kind. We are led by custom,
for example, to annex the character of gaiety, levity, and
sprightly freedom, as well as of some degree of dissipation, to
the military profession. Yet, if we were to consider what mood or
tone of temper would be most suitable to this situation, we should
be apt to determine, perhaps, that the most serious and thoughtful
turn of mind would best become those whose lives are continually
exposed to uncommon danger, and who should therefore be more
constantly occupied with the thoughts of death and its
consequences than other men. It is this very circumstance,
however, which is not improbably the occasion why the contrary
turn of mind prevails so much among men of this profession. It
requires so great an effort to conquer the fear of death, when we
survey it with steadiness and attention, that those who are
constantly exposed to it, find it easier to turn away their
thoughts from it altogether, to wrap themselves up in careless
security and indifference, and to plunge themselves, for this
purpose, into every sort of amusement and dissipation. A camp is
not the element of a thoughtful or a melancholy man: persons of
that cast, indeed, are often abundantly determined, and are
capable, by a great effort, of going on with inflexible resolution
to the most unavoidable death. But to be exposed to continual,
though less imminent danger, to be obliged to exert, for a long
time, a degree of this effort, exhausts and depresses the mind,
and renders it incapable of all happiness and enjoyment. The gay
and careless, who have occasion to make no effort at all, who
fairly resolve never to look before them, but to lose in continual
pleasures and amusements all anxiety about their situation, more
easily support such circumstances. Whenever, by any peculiar
circumstances, an officer has no reason to lay his account with
being exposed to any uncommon danger, he is very apt to lose the
gaiety and dissipated thoughtlessness of his character. The
captain of a city guard is commonly as sober, careful, and
penurious an animal as the rest of his fellow-citizens. A long
peace is, for the same reason, very apt to diminish the difference
between the civil and the military character. The ordinary
situation, however, of men of this profession, renders gaiety, and
a degree of dissipation, so much their usual character; and custom
has, in our imagination, so strongly connected this character with
this state of life, that we are very apt to despise any man, whose
peculiar humour or situation, renders him incapable of acquiring
it. We laugh at the grave and careful faces of a city guard, which
so little resemble those of their profession. They themselves seem
often to be ashamed of the regularity of their own manners, and,
not to be out of the fashion of their trade, are fond of affecting
that levity, which is by no means natural to them. Whatever is the
deportment which we have been accustomed to see in a respectable
order of men, it comes to be so associated in our imagination with
that order, that whenever we see the one, we lay our account that
we are to meet with the other, and when disappointed, miss
something which we expected to find. We are embarrassed, and put
to a stand, and know not how to address ourselves to a character,
which plainly affects to be of a different species from those with
which we should have been disposed to class it.
| |
V.I.16 |
|
The different situations of different ages and countries are
apt, in the same manner, to give different characters to the
generality of those who live in them, and their sentiments
concerning the particular degree of each quality, that is either
blamable or praise-worthy, vary, according to that degree which is
usual in their own country, and in their own times. That degree of
politeness, which would be highly esteemed, perhaps would be
thought effeminate adulation, in Russia, would be regarded as
rudeness and barbarism at the court of France. That degree of
order and frugality, which, in a Polish nobleman, would be
considered as excessive parsimony, would be regarded as
extravagance in a citizen of Amsterdam. Every age and country look
upon that degree of each quality, which is commonly to be met with
in those who are esteemed among themselves, as the golden mean of
that particular talent or virtue. And as this varies, according as
their different circumstances render different qualities more or
less habitual to them, their sentiments concerning the exact
propriety of character and behaviour vary accordingly.
| |
V.I.17 |
|
Among civilized nations, the virtues which are founded upon
humanity, are more cultivated than those which are founded upon
self-denial and the command of the passions. Among rude and
barbarous nations, it is quite otherwise, the virtues of
self-denial are more cultivated than those of humanity. The
general security and happiness which prevail in ages of civility
and politeness, afford little exercise to the contempt of danger,
to patience in enduring labour, hunger, and pain. Poverty may
easily be avoided, and the contempt of it therefore almost ceases
to be a virtue. The abstinence from pleasure becomes less
necessary, and the mind is more at liberty to unbend itself, and
to indulge.its natural inclinations in all those particular
respects. | |
V.I.18 |
|
Among savages and barbarians it is quite otherwise. Every
savage undergoes a sort of Spartan discipline, and by the
necessity of his situation is inured to every sort of hardship. He
is in continual danger: he is often exposed to the greatest
extremities of hunger, and frequently dies of pure want. His
circumstances not only habituate him to every sort of distress,
but teach him to give way to none of the passions which that
distress is apt to excite. He can expect from his countrymen no
sympathy or indulgence for such weakness. Before
we can feel much for others, we must in some measure be at ease
ourselves. If our own misery pinches us very severely, we have no
leisure to attend to that of our neighbour: and all savages are
too much occupied with their own wants and necessities, to give
much attention to those of another person. A savage, therefore,
whatever be the nature of his distress, expects no sympathy from
those about him, and disdains, upon that account, to expose
himself, by allowing the least weakness to escape him. His
passions, how furious and violent soever, are never permitted to
disturb the serenity of his countenance or the composure of his
conduct and behaviour. The savages in North America, we are told,
assume upon all occasions the greatest indifference, and would
think themselves degraded if they should ever appear in any
respect to be overcome, either by love, or grief, or resentment.
Their magnanimity and self-command, in this respect, are almost
beyond the conception of Europeans. In a country in which all men
are upon a level, with regard to rank and fortune, it might be
expected that the mutual inclinations of the two parties should be
the only thing considered in marriages, and should be indulged
without any sort of control. This, however, is the country in
which all marriages, without exception, are made up by the
parents, and in which a young man would think himself disgraced
for ever, if he shewed the least preference of one woman above
another, or did not express the most complete indifference, both
about the time when, and the person to whom, he was to be married.
The weakness of love, which is so much indulged in ages of
humanity and politeness, is regarded among savages as the most
unpardonable effeminacy. Even after the marriage, the two parties
seem to be ashamed of a connexion which is founded upon so sordid
a necessity. They do not live together. They see one another by
stealth only. They both continue to dwell in the houses of their
respective fathers, and the open cohabitation of the two sexes,
which is permitted without blame in all other countries, is here
considered as the most indecent and unmanly sensuality. Nor is it
only over this agreeable passion that they exert this absolute
self-command. They often bear, in the sight of all their
countrymen, with injuries, reproach, and the grossest insults,
with the appearance of the greatest insensibility, and without
expressing the smallest resentment. When a savage is made prisoner
of war, and receives, as is usual, the sentence of death from his
conquerors, he hears it without expressing any emotion, and
afterwards submits to the most dreadful torments, without ever
bemoaning himself, or discovering any other passion but contempt
of his enemies. While he is hung by the shoulders over a slow
fire, he derides his tormentors, and tells them with how much more
ingenuity he himself had tormented such of their countrymen as had
fallen into his hands. After he has been scorched and burnt, and
lacerated in all the most tender and sensible parts of his body
for several hours together, he is often allowed, in order to
prolong his misery, a short respite, and is taken down from the
stake: he employs this interval in talking upon all indifferent
subjects, inquires after the news of the country, and seems
indifferent about nothing but his own situation. The spectators
express the same insensibility; the sight of so horrible an object
seems to make no impression upon them; they scarce look at the
prisoner, except when they lend a hand to torment him. At other
times they smoke tobacco, and amuse themselves with any common
object, as if no such matter was going on. Every savage is said to
prepare himself from his earliest youth for this dreadful end. He
composes, for this purpose, what they call the song of death, a
song which he is to sing when he has fallen into the hands of his
enemies, and is expiring under the tortures which they inflict
upon him. It consists of insults upon his tormentors, and
expresses the highest contempt of death and pain. He sings this
song upon all extraordinary occasions, when he goes out to war,
when he meets his enemies in the field, or whenever he has a mind
to show that he has familiarised his imagination to the most
dreadful misfortunes, and that no human event can daunt his
resolution, or alter his purpose. The same contempt of death and
torture prevails among all other savage nations.
There is not a negro from the coast of Africa who
does not, in this respect, possess a degree of magnanimity which
the soul of his sordid master is too often scarce capable of
conceiving. Fortune never exerted more cruelly her empire over
mankind, than when she subjected those nations of heroes to the
refuse of the jails of Europe, to wretches who possess the virtues
neither of the countries which they come from, nor of those which
they go to, and whose levity, brutality, and baseness, so justly
expose them to the contempt of the vanquished.
| |
V.I.19 |
|
This heroic and unconquerable firmness, which the custom and
education of his country demand of every savage, is not required
of those who are brought up to live in civilized societies. If
these last complain when they are in pain, if they grieve when
they are in distress, if they allow themselves either to be
overcome by love, or to be discomposed by anger, they are easily
pardoned. Such weaknesses are not apprehended to affect the
essential parts of their character. As long as they do not allow
themselves to be transported to do any thing contrary to justice
or humanity, they lose but little reputation, though the serenity
of their countenance, or the composure of their discourse and
behaviour, should be somewhat ruffled and disturbed. A humane and
polished people, who have more sensibility to the passions of
others, can more readily enter into an animated and passionate
behaviour, and can more easily pardon some little excess. The
person principally concerned is sensible of this; and being
assured of the equity of his judges, indulges himself in stronger
expressions of passion, and is less afraid of exposing himself to
their contempt by the violence of his emotions. We can venture to
express more emotion in the presence of a friend than in that of a
stranger, because we expect more indulgence from the one than from
the other. And in the same manner the rules of decorum among
civilized nations, admit of a more animated behaviour, than is
approved of among barbarians. The first converse together with the
openness of friends; the second with the reserve of strangers. The
emotion and vivacity with which the French and the Italians, the
two most polished nations upon the continent, express themselves
on occasions that are at all interesting, surprise at first those
strangers who happen to be travelling among them, and who, having
been educated among a people of duller sensibility, cannot enter
into this passionate behaviour, of which they have never seen any
example in their own country. A young French nobleman will weep in
the presence of the whole court upon being refused a regiment. An
Italian, says the abbot Dû Bos, expresses more emotion on being
condemned in a fine of twenty shillings, than an Englishman on
receiving the sentence of death. Cicero, in the times of the
highest Roman politeness, could, without degrading himself, weep
with all the bitterness of sorrow in the sight of the whole senate
and the whole people; as it is evident he must have done in the
end of almost every oration. The orators of the earlier and ruder
ages of Rome could not probably, consistent with the manners of
the times, have expressed themselves with so much emotion. It
would have been regarded, I suppose, as a violation of nature and
propriety in the Scipios, in the Leliuses, and in the elder Cato,
to have exposed so much tenderness to the view of the public.
Those ancient warriors could express themselves with order,
gravity, and good judgment; but are said to have been strangers to
that sublime and passionate eloquence which was first introduced
into Rome, not many years before the birth of Cicero, by the two
Gracchi, by Crassus, and by Sulpitius. This animated eloquence,
which has been long practised, with or without success, both in
France and Italy, is but just beginning to be introduced into
England. So wide is the difference between the degrees of
self-command which are required in civilized and in barbarous
nations, and by such different standards do they judge of the
propriety of behaviour. | |
V.I.20 |
|
This difference gives occasion to many others that are not less
essential. A polished people being accustomed to give way, in some
measure, to the movements of nature, become frank, open, and
sincere. Barbarians, on the contrary, being obliged to smother and
conceal the appearance of every passion, necessarily acquire the
habits of falsehood and dissimulation. It is observed by all those
who have been conversant with savage nations, whether in Asia,
Africa, or America, that they are all equally impenetrable, and
that, when they have a mind to conceal the truth, no examination
is capable of drawing it from them. They cannot be trepanned by
the most artful questions. The torture itself is incapable of
making them confess any thing which they have no mind to tell. The
passions of a savage too, though they never express themselves by
any outward emotion, but lie concealed in the breast of the
sufferer, are, notwithstanding, all mounted to the highest pitch
of fury. Though he seldom shows any symptoms of anger, yet his
vengeance, when he comes to give way to it, is always sanguinary
and dreadful. The least affront drives him to despair. His
countenance and discourse indeed are still sober and composed, and
express nothing but the most perfect tranquillity of mind: but his
actions are often the most furious and violent. Among the
North-Americans it is not uncommon for persons of the tenderest
age and more fearful sex to drown themselves upon receiving only a
slight reprimand from their mothers, and this too without
expressing any passion, or saying any thing, except, you shall
no longer have a daughter. In civilized nations the passions
of men are not commonly so furious or so desperate. They are often
clamorous and noisy, but are seldom very hurtful; and seem
frequently to aim at no other satisfaction, but that of convincing
the spectator, that they are in the right to be so much moved, and
of procuring his sympathy and approbation.
| |
V.I.21 |
|
All these effects of custom and fashion, however, upon the
moral sentiments of mankind, are inconsiderable, in comparison of
those which they give occasion to in some other cases; and it is
not concerning the general style of character and behaviour, that
those principles produce the greatest perversion of judgment, but
concerning the propriety or impropriety of particular usages.
| |
V.I.22 |
|
The different manners which custom teaches us to approve of in
the different professions and states of life, do not concern
things of the greatest importance. We expect truth and justice
from an old man as well as from a young, from a clergyman as well
as from an officer; and it is in matters of small moment only that
we look for the distinguishing marks of their respective
characters. With regard to these too, there is often some
unobserved circumstance which, if it was attended to, would show
us, that, independent of custom, there was a propriety in the
character which custom had taught us to allot to each profession.
We cannot complain, therefore, in this case, that the perversion
of natural sentiment is very great. Though the manners of
different nations require different degrees of the same quality,
in the character which they think worthy of esteem, yet the worst
that can be said to happen even here, is that the duties of one
virtue are sometimes extended so as to encroach a little upon the
precincts of some other. The rustic hospitality that is in fashion
among the Poles encroaches, perhaps, a little upon oeconomy and
good order; and the frugality that is esteemed in Holland, upon
generosity and good-fellowship. The hardiness demanded of savages
diminishes their humanity; and, perhaps, the delicate sensibility
required in civilized nations sometimes destroys the masculine
firmness of the character. In general, the style of manners which
takes place in any nation, may commonly upon the whole be said to
be that which is most suitable to its situation. Hardiness is the
character most suitable to the circumstances of a savage;
sensibility to those of one who lives in a very civilized society.
Even here, therefore, we cannot complain that the moral sentiments
of men are very grossly perverted. | |
V.I.23 |
|
It is not therefore in the general style of conduct or
behaviour that custom authorises the widest departure from what is
the natural propriety of action. With regard to particular usages,
its influence is often much more destructive of good morals, and
it is capable of establishing, as lawful and blameless, particular
actions, which shock the plainest principles of right and wrong.
| |
V.I.24 |
|
Can there be greater barbarity for example, than to hurt an
infant? Its helplessness, its innocence, its amiableness, call
forth the compassion, even of an enemy, and not to spare that
tender age is regarded as the most furious effort of an enraged
and cruel conqueror. What then should we imagine must be the heart
of a parent who could injure that weakness which even a furious
enemy is afraid to violate? Yet the exposition, that is, the
murder of new-born infants, was a practice allowed of in almost
all the states of Greece, even among the polite and civilized
Athenians; and whenever the circumstances of the parent rendered
it inconvenient to bring up the child, to abandon it to hunger, or
to wild beasts, was regarded without blame or censure. This
practice had probably begun in times of the most savage barbarity.
The imaginations of men had been first made familiar with it in
that earliest period of society, and the uniform continuance of
the custom had hindered them afterwards from perceiving its
enormity. We find, at this day, that this practice prevails among
all savage nations; and in that rudest and lowest state of society
it is undoubtedly more pardonable than in any other. The extreme
indigence of a savage is often such that he himself is frequently
exposed to the greatest extremity of hunger, he often dies of pure
want, and it is frequently impossible for him to support both
himself and his child. We cannot wonder, therefore, that in this
case he should abandon it. One who, in flying from an enemy, whom
it was impossible to resist, should throw down his infant, because
it retarded his flight, would surely be excusable; since, by
attempting to save it, he could only hope for the consolation of
dying with it. That in this state of society, therefore, a parent
should be allowed to judge whether he can bring up his child,
ought not to surprise us so greatly. In the latter ages of Greece,
however, the same thing was permitted from views of remote
interest or conveniency, which could by no means excuse it.
Uninterrupted custom had by this time so thoroughly authorised the
practice, that not only the loose maxims of the world tolerated
this barbarous prerogative, but even the doctrine of philosophers,
which ought to have been more just and accurate, was led away by
the established custom, and upon this, as upon many other
occasions, instead of censuring, supported the horrible abuse, by
far-fetched considerations of public utility. Aristotle talks of
it as of what the magistrate ought upon many occasions to
encourage. The humane Plato is of the same opinion, and, with all
that love of mankind which seems to animate all his writings, no
where marks this practice with disapprobation. When custom can
give sanction to so dreadful a violation of humanity, we may well
imagine that there is scarce any particular practice so gross
which it cannot authorise. Such a thing, we hear men every day
saying, is commonly done, and they seem to think this a sufficient
apology for what, in itself, is the most unjust and unreasonable
conduct. | |
V.I.25 |
|
There is an obvious reason why custom should never pervert our
sentiments with regard to the general style and character of
conduct and behaviour, in the same degree as with regard to the
propriety or unlawfulness of particular usages. There never can be
any such custom. No society could subsist a moment, in which the
usual strain of men's conduct and behaviour was of a piece with
the horrible practice I have just now mentioned.
| |
V.I.26 |
|
|
|
6. Of the Character of Virtue
| |
| |
|
When we
consider the character of any individual, we naturally view it
under two different aspects; first, as it may affect his own
happiness; and secondly, as it may affect that of other people.
| |
VI.I.1 |
|
Section I - Of the Character of the Individual, so far as
it affects his own Happiness; or of Prudence
| |
|
The
preservation and healthful state of the body seem to be the
objects which Nature first recommends to the care of every
individual. The appetites of hunger and thirst, the agreeable or
disagreeable sensations of pleasure and pain, of heat and cold,
etc. may be considered as lessons delivered by the voice of Nature
herself, directing him what he ought to chuse, and what he ought
to avoid, for this purpose. The first lessons which he is taught
by those to whom his childhood is entrusted, tend, the greater
part of them, to the same purpose. Their principal object
is to teach him how to keep out of harm's way.
| |
VI.I.2 |
|
As he grows up, he soon learns that some care and foresight are
necessary for providing the means of gratifying those natural
appetites, of procuring pleasure and avoiding pain, of procuring
the agreeable and avoiding the disagreeable temperature of heat
and cold. In the proper direction of this care and foresight
consists the art of preserving and increasing what is called his
external fortune. | |
VI.I.3 |
|
Though it is in order to supply the necessities and
conveniencies of the body, that the advantages of external fortune
are originally recommended to us, yet we cannot live long in the
world without perceiving that the respect of our equals, our
credit and rank in the society we live in, depend very much upon
the degree in which we possess, or are supposed to possess, those
advantages. The desire of becoming the proper objects of this
respect, of deserving and obtaining this credit and rank among our
equals, is, perhaps, the strongest of all our desires, and our
anxiety to obtain the advantages of fortune is accordingly much
more excited and irritated by this desire, than by that of
supplying all the necessities and conveniencies of the body, which
are always very easily supplied. | |
VI.I.4 |
|
Our rank and credit among our equals, too, depend very much
upon, what, perhaps, a virtuous man would wish them to depend
entirely, our character and conduct, or upon the confidence,
esteem, and good-will, which these naturally excite in the people
we live with. | |
VI.I.5 |
|
The care of the health, of the fortune, of the rank and
reputation of the individual, the objects upon which his comfort
and happiness in this life are supposed principally to depend, is
considered as the proper business of that virtue which is commonly
called Prudence. | |
VI.I.6 |
|
We suffer more, it has already been observed, when we fall from
a better to a worse situation, than we ever enjoy when we rise
from a worse to a better. Security, therefore, is the first and
the principal object of prudence. It is averse to expose our
health, our fortune, our rank, or reputation, to any sort of
hazard. It is rather cautious than enterprising, and more anxious
to preserve the advantages which we already possess, than forward
to prompt us to the acquisition of still greater advantages. The
methods of improving our fortune, which it principally recommends
to us, are those which expose to no loss or hazard; real knowledge
and skill in our trade or profession, assiduity and industry in
the exercise of it, frugality, and even some degree of parsimony,
in all our expences. | |
VI.I.7 |
|
The prudent man always studies seriously and earnestly to
understand whatever he professes to understand, and not merely to
persuade other people that he understands it; and though his
talents may not always be very brilliant, they are always
perfectly genuine. He neither endeavours to impose upon you by the
cunning devices of an artful impostor, nor by the arrogant airs of
an assuming pedant, nor by the confident assertions of a
superficial and imprudent pretender. He is not ostentatious even
of the abilities which he really possesses. His conversation is
simple and modest, and he is averse to all the quackish arts by
which other people so frequently thrust themselves into public
notice and reputation. For reputation in his profession he is
naturally disposed to rely a good deal upon the solidity of his
knowledge and abilities; and he does not always think of
cultivating the favour of those little clubs and cabals, who, in
the superior arts and sciences, so often erect themselves into the
supreme judges of merit; and who make it their business to
celebrate the talents and virtues of one another, and to decry
whatever can come into competition with them. If he ever connects
himself with any society of this kind, it is merely in
self-defence, not with a view to impose upon the public, but to
hinder the public from being imposed upon, to his disadvantage, by
the clamours, the whispers, or the intrigues, either of that
particular society, or of some other of the same kind.
| |
VI.I.8 |
|
The prudent man is always sincere, and feels horror at the very
thought of exposing himself to the disgrace which attends upon the
detection of falsehood. But though always sincere, he is not
always frank and open; and though he never tells any thing but the
truth, he does not always think himself bound, when not properly
called upon, to tell the whole truth. As he is cautious in his
actions, so he is reserved in his speech; and never rashly or
unnecessarily obtrudes his opinion concerning either things or
persons. | |
VI.I.9 |
|
The prudent man, though not always distinguished by the most
exquisite sensibility, is always very capable of friendship. But
his friendship is not that ardent and passionate, but too often
transitory affection, which appears so delicious to the generosity
of youth and inexperience. It is a sedate, but steady and faithful
attachment to a few well-tried and well-chosen companions; in the
choice of whom he is not guided by the giddy admiration of shining
accomplishments, but by the sober esteem of modesty, discretion,
and good conduct. But though capable of friendship, he is not
always much disposed to general sociality. He rarely frequents,
and more rarely figures in those convivial societies which are
distinguished for the jollity and gaiety of their conversation.
Their way of life might too often interfere with the regularity of
his temperance, might interrupt the steadiness of his industry, or
break in upon the strictness of his frugality.
| |
VI.I.10 |
|
But though his conversation may not always be very sprightly or
diverting, it is always perfectly inoffensive. He hates the
thought of being guilty of any petulance or rudeness. He never
assumes impertinently over any body, and, upon all common
occasions, is willing to place himself rather below than above his
equals. Both in his conduct and conversation, he is an exact
observer of decency, and respects with an almost religious
scrupulosity, all the established decorums and ceremonials of
society. And, in this respect, he sets a much better example than
has frequently been done by men of much more splendid talents and
virtues; who, in all ages, from that of Socrates and Aristippus,
down to that of Dr. Swift and Voltaire, and from that of Philip
and Alexander the Great, down to that of the great Czar Peter of
Moscovy, have too often distinguished themselves by the most
improper and even insolent contempt of all the ordinary decorums
of life and conversation, and who have thereby set the most
pernicious example to those who wish to resemble them, and who too
often content themselves with imitating their follies, without
even attempting to attain their perfections.
| |
VI.I.11 |
|
In the steadiness of his industry and frugality, in his
steadily sacrificing the ease and enjoyment of the present moment
for the probable expectation of the still greater ease and
enjoyment of a more distant but more lasting period of time, the
prudent man is always both supported and rewarded by the entire
approbation of the impartial spectator, and of the representative
of the impartial spectator, the man within the breast. The
impartial spectator does not feel himself worn out by the present
labour of those whose conduct he surveys; nor does he feel himself
solicited by the importunate calls of their present appetites. To
him their present, and what is likely to be their future
situation, are very nearly the same: he sees them nearly at the
same distance, and is affected by them very nearly in the same
manner. He knows, however, that to the persons principally
concerned, they are very far from being the same, and that they
naturally affect them in a very different manner. He cannot
therefore but approve, and even applaud, that proper exertion of
self-command, which enables them to act as if their present and
their future situation affected them nearly in the same manner in
which they affect him. | |
VI.I.12 |
|
The man who lives within his income, is naturally contented
with his situation, which, by continual, though small
accumulations, is growing better and better every day. He is
enabled gradually to relax, both in the rigour of his parsimony
and in the severity of his application; and he feels with double
satisfaction this gradual increase of ease and enjoyment, from
having felt before the hardship which attended the want of them.
He has no anxiety to change so comfortable a situation, and does
not go in quest of new enterprises and adventures, which might
endanger, but could not well increase, the secure tranquillity
which he actually enjoys. If he enters into any new projects or
enterprises, they are likely to be well concerted and well
prepared. He can never be hurried or drove into them by any
necessity, but has always time and leisure to deliberate soberly
and coolly concerning what are likely to be their consequences.
| |
VI.I.13 |
|
The prudent man is not willing to subject himself to any
responsibility which his duty does not impose upon him. He is not
a bustler in business where he has no concern; is not a meddler in
other people's affairs; is not a professed counsellor or adviser,
who obtrudes his advice where nobody is asking it. He confines
himself, as much as his duty will permit, to his own affairs, and
has no taste for that foolish importance which many people wish to
derive from appearing to have some influence in the management of
those of other people. He is averse to enter into any party
disputes, hates faction, and is not always very forward to listen
to the voice even of noble and great ambition. When distinctly
called upon, he will not decline the service of his country, but
he will not cabal in order to force himself into it; and would be
much better pleased that the public business were well managed by
some other person, than that he himself should have the trouble,
and incur the responsibility, of managing it. In the bottom of his
heart he would prefer the undisturbed enjoyment of secure
tranquillity, not only to all the vain splendour of successful
ambition, but to the real and solid glory of performing the
greatest and most magnanimous actions. | |
VI.I.14 |
|
Prudence, in short, when directed merely to the care of the
health, of the fortune, and of the rank and reputation of the
individual, though it is regarded as a most respectable and even,
in some degree, as an amiable and agreeable quality, yet it never
is considered as one, either of the most endearing, or of the most
ennobling of the virtues. It commands a certain cold esteem, but
seems not entitled to any very ardent love or admiration.
| |
VI.I.15 |
|
Wise and judicious conduct, when directed to greater and nobler
purposes than the care of the health, the fortune, the rank and
reputation of the individual, is frequently and very properly
called prudence. We talk of the prudence of the great general, of
the great statesman, of the great legislator. Prudence is, in all
these cases, combined with many greater and more splendid virtues,
with valour, with extensive and strong benevolence, with a sacred
regard to the rules of justice, and all these supported by a
proper degree of self-command. This superior prudence, when
carried to the highest degree of perfection, necessarily supposes
the art, the talent, and the habit or disposition of acting with
the most perfect propriety in every possible circumstance and
situation. It necessarily supposes the utmost perfection of all
the intellectual and of all the moral virtues. It is the best head
joined to the best heart. It is the most perfect wisdom combined
with the most perfect virtue. It constitutes very nearly the
character of the Academical or Peripatetic sage, as the inferior
prudence does that of the Epicurean. | |
VI.I.16 |
|
Mere imprudence, or the mere want of the capacity to take care
of one's-self, is, with the generous and humane, the object of
compassion; with those of less delicate sentiments, of neglect,
or, at worst, of contempt, but never of hatred or indignation.
When combined with other vices, however, it aggravates in the
highest degree the infamy and disgrace which would otherwise
attend them. The artful knave, whose dexterity and address exempt
him, though not from strong suspicions, yet from punishment or
distinct detection, is too often received in the world with an
indulgence which he by no means deserves. The awkward and foolish
one, who, for want of this dexterity and address, is convicted and
brought to punishment, is the object of universal hatred,
contempt, and derision. In countries where great crimes frequently
pass unpunished, the most atrocious actions become almost
familiar, and cease to impress the people with that horror which
is universally felt in countries where an exact administration of
justice takes place. The injustice is the same in both countries;
but the imprudence is often very different. In the latter, great
crimes are evidently great follies. In the former, they are not
always considered as such. In Italy, during the greater part of
the sixteenth century, assassinations, murders, and even murders
under trust, seem to have been almost familiar among the superior
ranks of people. Caesar Borgia invited four of the little princes
in his neighbourhood, who all possessed little sovereignties, and
commanded little armies of their own, to a friendly conference at
Senigaglia, where, as soon as they arrived, he put them all to
death. This infamous action, though certainly not approved of even
in that age of crimes, seems to have contributed very little to
the discredit, and not in the least to the ruin of the
perpetrator. That ruin happened a few years after from causes
altogether disconnected with this crime. Machiavel, not indeed a
man of the nicest morality even for his own times, was resident,
as minister from the republic of Florence, at the court of Caesar
Borgia when this crime was committed. He gives a very particular
account of it, and in that pure, elegant, and simple language
which distinguishes all his writings. He talks of it very coolly;
is pleased with the address with which Caesar Borgia conducted it;
has much contempt for the dupery and weakness of the sufferers;
but no compassion for their miserable and untimely death, and no
sort of indignation at the cruelty and falsehood of their
murderer. The violence and injustice of great conquerors are often
regarded with foolish wonder and admiration; those of petty
thieves, robbers, and murderers, with contempt, hatred, and even
horror upon all occasions. The former, though they are a hundred
times more mischievous and destructive, yet when successful, they
often pass for deeds of the most heroic magnanimity. The latter
are always viewed with hatred and aversion, as the follies, as
well as the crimes, of the lowest and most worthless of mankind.
The injustice of the former is certainly, at least, as great as
that of the latter; but the folly and imprudence are not near so
great. A wicked and worthless man of parts often goes through the
world with much more credit than he deserves. A wicked and
worthless fool appears always, of all mortals, the most hateful,
as well as the most contemptible. As prudence combined with other
virtues, constitutes the noblest; so imprudence combined with
other vices, constitutes the vilest of all characters.
| |
VI.I.17 |
|
Section II - Of the Character of the Individual, so far as
it can affect the Happiness of other People
| |
|
The
character of every individual, so far as it can affect the
happiness of other people, must do so by its disposition either to
hurt or to benefit them. | |
VI.II.1 |
|
Proper resentment for injustice attempted, or actually
committed, is the only motive which, in the eyes of the impartial
spectator, can justify our hurting or disturbing in any respect
the happiness of our neighbour. To do so from any other motive is
itself a violation of the laws of justice, which force ought to be
employed either to restrain or to punish. The wisdom of every
state or commonwealth endeavours, as well as it can, to employ the
force of the society to restrain those who are subject to its
authority, from hurting or disturbing the happiness of one
another. The rules which it establishes for this purpose,
constitute the civil and criminal law of each particular state or
country. The principles upon which those rules either are, or
ought to be founded, are the subject of a particular science, of
all sciences by far the most important, but hitherto, perhaps, the
least cultivated, that of natural jurisprudence,. concerning which
it belongs not to our present subject to enter into any detail. A
sacred and religious regard not to hurt or disturb in any respect
the happiness of our neighbour, even in those cases where no law
can properly protect him, constitutes the character of the
perfectly innocent and just man; a character which, when carried
to a certain delicacy of attention, is always highly respectable
and even venerable for its own sake, and can scarce ever fail to
be accompanied with many other virtues, with great feeling for
other people, with great humanity and great benevolence. It is a
character sufficiently understood, and requires no further
explanation. In the present section I shall only endeavour to
explain the foundation of that order which nature seems to have
traced out for the distribution of our good offices, or for the
direction and employment of our very limited powers of
beneficence: first, towards individuals; and secondly, towards
societies. | |
VI.II.2 |
|
The same unerring wisdom, it will be found, which regulates
every other part of her conduct, directs, in this respect too, the
order of her recommendations; which are always stronger or weaker
in proportion as our beneficence is more or less necessary, or can
be more or less useful. | |
VI.II.3 |
|
Chapter I - Of the Order in which Individuals are recommended by
Nature to our care and attention
| |
|
Every man, as the Stoics used to say, is first and principally
recommended to his own care; and every man is certainly, in every
respect, fitter and abler to take care of himself than of any
other person. Every man feels his own pleasures and his own pains
more sensibly than those of other people. The former are the
original sensations; the latter the reflected or sympathetic
images of those sensations. The former may be said to be the
substance; the latter the shadow. | |
VI.II.4 |
|
After himself, the members of his own family, those who usually
live in the same house with him, his parents, his children, his
brothers and sisters, are naturally the objects of his warmest
affections. They are naturally and usually the persons upon whose
happiness or misery his conduct must have the greatest influence.
He is more habituated to sympathize with them. He knows better how
every thing is likely to affect them, and his sympathy with them
is more precise and determinate, than it can be with the greater
part of other people. It approaches nearer, in short, to what he
feels for himself. | |
VI.II.5 |
|
This sympathy too, and the affections which are founded on it,
are by nature more strongly directed towards his children than
towards his parents, and his tenderness for the former seems
generally a more active principle, than his reverence and
gratitude towards the latter. In the natural state of things, it
has already been observed, the existence of the child, for some
time after it comes into the world, depends altogether upon the
care of the parent; that of the parent does not naturally depend
upon the care of the child. In the eye of nature, it would seem, a
child is a more important object than an old man; and excites a
much more lively, as well as a much more universal sympathy. It
ought to do so. Every thing may be expected, or at least hoped,
from the child. In ordinary cases, very little can be either
expected or hoped from the old man. The weakness of childhood
interests the affections of the most brutal and hard-hearted. It
is only to the virtuous and humane, that the infirmities of old
age are not the objects of contempt and aversion. In ordinary
cases, an old man dies without being much regretted by any body.
Scarce a child can die without rending asunder the heart of
somebody. | |
VI.II.6 |
|
The earliest friendships, the friendships which are naturally
contracted when the heart is most susceptible of that feeling, are
those among brothers and sisters. Their good agreement, while they
remain in the same family, is necessary for its tranquillity and
happiness. They are capable of giving more pleasure or pain to one
another than to the greater part of other people. Their situation
renders their mutual sympathy of the utmost importance to their
common happiness; and, by the wisdom of nature, the same
situation, by obliging them to accommodate to one another, renders
that sympathy more habitual, and thereby more lively, more
distinct, and more determinate. | |
VI.II.7 |
|
The children of brothers and sisters are naturally connected by
the friendship which, after separating into different families,
continues to take place between their parents. Their good
agreement improves the enjoyment of that friendship; their discord
would disturb it. As they seldom live in the same family, however,
though of more importance to one another, than to the greater part
of other people, they are of much less than brothers and sisters.
As their mutual sympathy is less necessary, so it is less
habitual, and therefore proportionably weaker.
| |
VI.II.8 |
|
The children of cousins, being still less connected, are of
still less importance to one another; and the affection gradually
diminishes as the relation grows more and more remote.
| |
VI.II.9 |
|
What is called affection, is in reality nothing but habitual
sympathy. Our concern in the happiness or misery of those who are
the objects of what we call our affections; our desire to promote
the one, and to prevent the other; are either the actual feeling
of that habitual sympathy, or the necessary consequences of that
feeling. Relations being usually placed in situations which
naturally create this habitual sympathy, it is expected that a
suitable degree of affection should take place among them. We
generally find that it actually does take place; we therefore
naturally expect that it should; and we are, upon that account,
more shocked when, upon any occasion, we find that it does not.
The general rule is established, that persons related to one
another in a certain degree, ought always to be affected towards
one another in a certain manner, and that there is always the
highest impropriety, and sometimes even a sort of impiety, in
their being affected in a different manner. A parent without
parental tenderness, a child devoid of all filial reverence,
appear monsters, the objects, not of hatred only, but of horror.
| |
VI.II.10 |
|
Though in a particular instance, the circumstances which
usually produce those natural affections, as they are called, may,
by some accident, not have taken place, yet respect for the
general rule will frequently, in some measure, supply their place,
and produce something which, though not altogether the same, may
bear, however, a very considerable resemblance to those
affections. A father is apt to be less attached to a child, who,
by some accident, has been separated from him in its infancy, and
who does not return to him till it is grown up to manhood. The
father is apt to feel less paternal tenderness for the child; the
child, less filial reverence for the father. Brothers and sisters,
when they have been educated in distant countries, are apt to feel
a similar diminution of affection. With the dutiful and the
virtuous, however, respect for the general rule will frequently
produce something which, though by no means the same, yet may very
much resemble those natural affections. Even during the
separation, the father and the child, the brothers or the sisters,
are by no means indifferent to one another. They all consider one
another as persons to and from whom certain affections are due,
and they live in the hopes of being some time or another in a
situation to enjoy that friendship which ought naturally to have
taken place among persons so nearly connected. Till they meet, the
absent son, the absent brother, are frequently the favourite son,
the favourite brother. They have never offended, or, if they have,
it is so long ago, that the offence is forgotten, as some childish
trick not worth the remembering. Every account they have heard of
one another, if conveyed by people of any tolerable good nature,
has been, in the highest degree, flattering and favourable. The
absent son, the absent brother, is not like other ordinary sons
and brothers; but an all-perfect son, an all-perfect brother; and
the most romantic hopes are entertained of the happiness to be
enjoyed in the friendship and conversation of such persons. When
they meet, it is often with so strong a disposition to conceive
that habitual sympathy which constitutes the family affection,
that they are very apt to fancy they have actually conceived it,
and to behave to one another as if they had. Time and experience,
however, I am afraid, too frequently undeceive them. Upon a more
familiar acquaintance, they frequently discover in one another
habits, humours, and inclinations, different from what they
expected, to which, from want of habitual sympathy, from want of
the real principle and foundation of what is properly called
family-affection, they cannot now easily accommodate themselves.
They have never lived in the situation which almost necessarily
forces that easy accommodation, and though they may now be
sincerely desirous to assume it, they have really become incapable
of doing so. Their familiar conversation and intercourse soon
become less pleasing to them, and, upon that account, less
frequent. They may continue to live with one another in the mutual
exchange of all essential good offices, and with every other
external appearance of decent regard. But that cordial
satisfaction, that delicious sympathy, that confidential openness
and ease, which naturally take place in the conversation of those
who have lived long and familiarly with one another, it seldom
happens that they can completely enjoy.
| |
VI.II.11 |
|
It is only, however, with the dutiful and the virtuous, that
the general rule has even this slender authority. With the
dissipated, the profligate, and the vain, it is entirely
disregarded. They are so far from respecting it, that they seldom
talk of it but with the most indecent derision. and an early and
long separation of this kind never fails to estrange them most
completely from one another. With such persons, respect for the
general rule can at best produce only a cold and affected civility
(a very slender semblance of real regard); and even this, the
slightest offence, the smallest opposition of interest, commonly
puts an end to altogether. | |
VI.II.12 |
|
The education of boys at distant great schools, of young men at
distant colleges, of young ladies in distant nunneries and
boarding-schools, seems, in the higher ranks of life, to have hurt
most essentially the domestic morals, and consequently the
domestic happiness, both of France and England. Do you wish to
educate your children to be dutiful to their parents, to be kind
and affectionate to their brothers and sisters? put them under the
necessity of being dutiful children, of being kind and
affectionate brothers and sisters: educate them in your own house.
From their parent's house they may, with propriety and advantage,
go out every day to attend public schools: but let their dwelling
be always at home. Respect for you must always impose a very
useful restraint upon their conduct; and respect for them may
frequently impose no useless restraint upon your own. Surely no
acquirement, which can possibly be derived from what is called a
public education, can make any sort of compensation for what is
almost certainly and necessarily lost by it. Domestic education is
the institution of nature; public education, the contrivance of
man. It is surely unnecessary to say, which is likely to be the
wisest. | |
VI.II.13 |
|
In some tragedies and romances, we meet with many beautiful and
interesting scenes, founded upon, what is called, the force of
blood, or upon the wonderful affection which near relations are
supposed to conceive for one another, even before they know that
they have any such connection. This force of blood, however, I am
afraid, exists no-where but in tragedies and romances. Even in
tragedies and romances, it is never supposed to take place between
any relations, but those who are naturally bred up in the same
house; between parents and children, between brothers and sisters.
To imagine any such mysterious affection between cousins, or even
between aunts or uncles, and nephews or nieces, would be too
ridiculous. | |
VI.II.14 |
|
In pastoral countries, and in all countries where the authority
of law is not alone sufficient to give perfect security to every
member of the state, all the different branches of the same family
commonly chuse to live in the neighbourhood of one another. Their
association is frequently necessary for their common defence. They
are all, from the highest to the lowest, of more or less
importance to one another. Their concord strengthens their
necessary association; their discord always weakens, and might
destroy it. They have more intercourse with one another, than with
the members of any other tribe. The remotest members of the same
tribe claim some connection with one another; and, where all other
circumstances are equal, expect to be treated with more
distinguished attention than is due to those who have no such
pretensions. It is not many years ago that, in the Highlands of
Scotland, the Chieftain used to consider the poorest man of his
clan, as his cousin and relation. The same extensive regard to
kindred is said to take place among the Tartars, the Arabs, the
Turkomans, and, I believe, among all other nations who are nearly
in the same state of society in which the Scots Highlanders were
about the beginning of the present century.
| |
VI.II.15 |
|
In commercial countries, where the authority of law is always
perfectly sufficient to protect the meanest man in the state, the
descendants of the same family, having no such motive for keeping
together, naturally separate and disperse, as interest or
inclination may direct. They soon cease to be of importance to one
another; and, in a few generations, not only lose all care about
one another, but all remembrance of their common origin, and of
the connection which took place among their ancestors. Regard for
remote relations becomes, in every country, less and less,
according as this state of civilization has been longer and more
completely established. It has been longer and more completely
established in England than in Scotland; and remote relations are,
accordingly, more considered in the latter country than in the
former, though, in this respect, the difference between the two
countries is growing less and less every day. Great lords, indeed,
are, in every country, proud of remembering and acknowledging
their connection with one another, however remote. The remembrance
of such illustrious relations flatters not a little the family
pride of them all; and it is neither from affection, nor from any
thing which resembles affection, but from the most frivolous and
childish of all vanities, that this remembrance is so carefully
kept up. Should some more humble, though, perhaps, much nearer
kinsman, presume to put such great men in mind of his relation to
their family, they seldom fail to tell him that they are bad
genealogists, and miserably ill-informed concerning their own
family history. It is not in that order, I am afraid, that we are
to expect any extraordinary extension of, what is called, natural
affection. | |
VI.II.16 |
|
I consider what is called natural affection as more the effect
of the moral than of the supposed physical connection between the
parent and the child. A jealous husband, indeed, notwithstanding
the moral connection, notwithstanding the child's having been
educated in his own house, often regards, with hatred and
aversion, that unhappy child which he supposes to be the offspring
of his wife's infidelity. It is the lasting monument of a most
disagreeable adventure; of his own dishonour, and of the disgrace
of his family. | |
VI.II.17 |
|
Among well-disposed people, the necessity or conveniency of
mutual accommodation, very frequently produces a friendship not
unlike that which takes place among those who are born to live in
the same family. Colleagues in office, partners in trade, call one
another brothers; and frequently feel towards one another as if
they really were so. Their good agreement is an advantage to all;
and, if they are tolerably reasonable people, they are naturally
disposed to agree. We expect that they should do so; and their
disagreement is a sort of a small scandal. The Romans expressed
this sort of attachment by the word necessitudo, which,
from the etymology, seems to denote that it was imposed by the
necessity of the situation. | |
VI.II.18 |
|
Even the trifling circumstance of living in the same
neighbourhood, has some effect of the same kind. We respect the
face of a man whom we see every day, provided he has never
offended us. Neighbours can be very convenient, and they can be
very troublesome, to one another. If they are good sort of people,
they are naturally disposed to agree. We expect their good
agreement; and to be a bad neighbour is a very bad character.
There are certain small good offices, accordingly, which are
universally allowed to be due to a neighbour in preference to any
other person who has no such connection.
| |
VI.II.19 |
|
This natural disposition to accommodate and to assimilate, as
much as we can, our own sentiments, principles, and feelings, to
those which we see fixed and rooted in the persons whom we are
obliged to live and converse a great deal with, is the cause of
the contagious effects of both good and bad company. The man who
associates chiefly with the wise and the virtuous, though he may
not himself become either wise or virtuous, cannot help conceiving
a certain respect at least for wisdom and virtue; and the man who
associates chiefly with the profligate and the dissolute, though
he may not himself become profligate and dissolute, must soon
lose, at least, all his original abhorrence of profligacy and
dissolution of manners. The similarity of family characters, which
we so frequently see transmitted through several successive
generations, may, perhaps, be partly owing to this disposition, to
assimilate ourselves to those whom we are obliged to live and
converse a great deal with. The family character, however, like
the family countenance, seems to be owing, not altogether to the
moral, but partly too to the physical connection. The family
countenance is certainly altogether owing to the latter.
| |
VI.II.20 |
|
But of all attachments to an individual, that which is founded
altogether upon the esteem and approbation of his good conduct and
behaviour, confirmed by much experience and long acquaintance, is,
by far, the most respectable. Such friendships, arising not from a
constrained sympathy, not from a sympathy which has been assumed
and rendered habitual for the sake of conveniency and
accommodation; but from a natural sympathy, from an involuntary
feeling that the persons to whom we attach ourselves are the
natural and proper objects of esteem and approbation; can exist
only among men of virtue. Men of virtue only can feel that entire
confidence in the conduct and behaviour of one another, which can,
at all times, assure them that they can never either offend or be
offended by one another. Vice is always capricious: virtue only is
regular and orderly. The attachment which is founded upon the love
of virtue, as it is certainly, of all attachments, the most
virtuous; so it is likewise the happiest, as well as the most
permanent and secure. Such friendships need not be confined to a
single person, but may safely embrace all the wise and virtuous,
with whom we have been long and intimately acquainted, and upon
whose wisdom and virtue we can, upon that account, entirely
depend. They who would confine friendship to two persons, seem to
confound the wise security of friendship with the jealousy and
folly of love. The hasty, fond, and foolish intimacies of young
people, founded, commonly, upon some slight similarity of
character, altogether unconnected with good conduct, upon a taste,
perhaps, for the same studies, the same amusements, the same
diversions, or upon their agreement in some singular principle or
opinion, not commonly adopted; those intimacies which a freak
begins, and which a freak puts an end to, how agreeable soever
they may appear while they last, can by no means deserve the
sacred and venerable name of friendship.
| |
VI.II.21 |
|
Of all the persons, however,
whom nature points out for our peculiar beneficence, there are
none to whom it seems more properly directed than to those whose
beneficence we have ourselves already experienced. Nature, which
formed men for that mutual kindness, so necessary for their
happiness, renders every man the peculiar object of kindness, to
the persons to whom he himself has been kind. Though their
gratitude should not always correspond to his beneficence, yet the
sense of his merit, the sympathetic gratitude of the impartial
spectator, will always correspond to it. The general indignation
of other people, against the baseness of their ingratitude, will
even, sometimes, increase the general sense of his merit. No
benevolent man ever lost altogether the fruits of his benevolence.
If he does not always gather them from the persons from whom he
ought to have gathered them, he seldom fails to gather them, and
with a tenfold increase, from other people. Kindness is the parent
of kindness; and if to be beloved by our brethren be the great
object of our ambition, the surest way of obtaining it is, by our
conduct to show that we really love them.
| |
VI.II.22 |
|
After the persons who are recommended to our beneficence,
either by their connection with ourselves, by their personal
qualities, or by their past services, come those who are pointed
out, not indeed to, what is called, our friendship, but to our
benevolent attention and good offices; those who are distinguished
by their extraordinary situation; the greatly fortunate and the
greatly unfortunate, the rich and the powerful, the poor and the
wretched. The distinction of ranks, the peace and order of
society, are, in a great measure, founded upon the respect which
we naturally conceive for the former. The relief and consolation
of human misery depend altogether upon our compassion for the
latter. The peace and order of society, is of more importance than
even the relief of the miserable. Our respect for the great,
accordingly, is most apt to offend by its excess; our
fellow-feeling for the miserable, by its defect. Moralists exhort
us to charity and compassion. They warn us against the fascination
of greatness. This fascination, indeed, is so powerful, that the
rich and the great are too often preferred to the wise and the
virtuous. Nature has wisely judged that the distinction of ranks,
the peace and order of society, would rest more securely upon the
plain and palpable difference of birth and fortune, than upon the
invisible and often uncertain difference of wisdom and virtue. The
undistinguishing eyes of the great mob of mankind can well enough
perceive the former: it is with difficulty that the nice
discernment of the wise and the virtuous can sometimes distinguish
the latter. In the order of all those recommendations, the
benevolent wisdom of nature is equally evident.
| |
VI.II.23 |
|
It may, perhaps, be unnecessary to observe, that the
combination of two, or more, of those exciting causes of kindness,
increases the kindness. The favour and partiality which, when
there is no envy in the case, we naturally bear to greatness, are
much increased when it is joined with wisdom and virtue. If,
notwithstanding that wisdom and virtue, the great man should fall
into those misfortunes, those dangers and distresses, to which the
most exalted stations are often the most exposed, we are much more
deeply interested in his fortune than we should be in that of a
person equally virtuous, but in a more humble situation. The most
interesting subjects of tragedies and romances are the misfortunes
of virtuous and magnanimous kings and princes. If, by the wisdom
and manhood of their exertions, they should extricate themselves
from those misfortunes, and recover completely their former
superiority and security, we cannot help viewing them with the
most enthusiastic and even extravagant admiration. The grief which
we felt for their distress, the joy which we feel for their
prosperity, seem to combine together in enhancing that partial
admiration which we naturally conceive both for the station and
the character. | |
VI.II.24 |
|
When those different beneficent affections happen to draw
different ways, to determine by any precise rules in what cases we
ought to comply with the one, and in what with the other, is,
perhaps, altogether impossible. In what cases friendship ought to
yield to gratitude, or gratitude to friend, ship. in what cases
the strongest of all natural affections ought to yield to a regard
for the safety of those superiors upon whose safety often depends
that of the whole society; and in what cases natural affection
may, without impropriety, prevail over that regard; must be left
altogether to the decision of the man within the breast, the
supposed impartial spectator, the great judge and arbiter of our
conduct. If we place ourselves completely in his situation, if we
really view ourselves with his eyes, and as he views us, and
listen with diligent and reverential attention to what he suggests
to us, his voice will never deceive us. We shall stand in need of
no casuistic rules to direct our conduct. These it is often
impossible to accommodate to all the different shades and
gradations of circumstance, character, and situation, to
differences and distinctions which, though not imperceptible, are,
by their nicety and delicacy, often altogether undefinable. In
that beautiful tragedy of Voltaire, the Orphan of China, while we
admire the magnanimity of Zamti, who is willing to sacrifice the
life of his own child, in order to preserve that of the only
feeble remnant of his ancient sovereigns and masters; we not only
pardon, but love the maternal tenderness of Idame, who, at the
risque of discovering the important secret of her husband,
reclaims her infant from the cruel hands of the Tartars, into
which it had been delivered. | |
VI.II.25 |
|
Chapter II - Of the order in which Societies are by nature
recommended to our Beneficence
| |
|
The same principles that direct the order in which individuals
are recommended to our beneficence, direct that likewise in which
societies are recommended to it. Those to which it is, or may be
of most importance, are first and principally recommended to it.
| |
VI.II.26 |
|
The state or sovereignty in which we have been born and
educated, and under the protection of which we continue to live,
is, in ordinary cases, the greatest society upon whose happiness
or misery, our good or bad conduct can have much influence. It is
accordingly, by nature, most strongly recommended to us. Not only
we ourselves, but all the objects of our kindest affections, our
children, our parents, our relations, our friends, our
benefactors, all those whom we naturally love and revere the most,
are commonly comprehended within it; and their prosperity and
safety depend in some measure upon its prosperity and safety. It
is by nature, therefore, endeared to us, not only by all our
selfish, but by all our private benevolent affections. Upon
account of our own connexion with it, its prosperity and glory
seem to reflect some sort of honour upon ourselves. When we
compare it with other societies of the same kind, we are proud of
its superiority, and mortified in some degree, if it appears in
any respect below them. All the illustrious characters which it
has produced in former times (for against those of our own times
envy may sometimes prejudice us a little), its warriors, its
statesmen, its poets, its philosophers, and men of letters of all
kinds; we are disposed to view with the most partial admiration,
and to rank them (sometimes most unjustly) above those of all
other nations. The patriot who lays down his life for the safety,
or even for the vain-glory of this society, appears to act with
the most exact propriety. He appears to view himself in the light
in which the impartial spectator naturally and necessarily views
him, as but one of the multitude, in the eye of that equitable
judge, of no more consequence than any other in it, but bound at
all times to sacrifice and devote himself to the safety, to the
service, and even to the glory of the greater number. But though
this sacrifice appears to be perfectly just and proper, we know
how difficult it is to make it, and how few people are capable of
making it. His conduct, therefore, excites not only our entire
approbation, but our highest wonder and admiration, and seems to
merit all the applause which can be due to the most heroic virtue.
The traitor, on the contrary, who, in some peculiar situation,
fancies he can promote his own little interest by betraying to the
public enemy that of his native country. who, regardless of the
judgment of the man within the breast, prefers himself, in this
respect so shamefully and so basely, to all those with whom he has
any connexion; appears to be of all villains the most detestable.
| |
VI.II.27 |
|
The love of our own nation often disposes us to view, with the
most malignant jealousy and envy, the prosperity and
aggrandisement of any other neighbouring nation. Independent and
neighbouring nations, having no common superior to decide their
disputes, all live in continual dread and suspicion of one
another. Each sovereign, expecting little justice from his
neighbours, is disposed to treat them with as little as he expects
from them. The regard for the laws of nations, or for those rules
which independent states profess or pretend to think themselves
bound to observe in their dealings with one another, is often very
little more than mere pretence and profession. From the smallest
interest, upon the slightest provocation, we see those rules every
day, either evaded or directly violated without shame or remorse.
Each nation foresees, or imagines it foresees, its own subjugation
in the increasing power and aggrandisement of any of its
neighbours; and the mean principle of national prejudice is often
founded upon the noble one of the love of our own country. The
sentence with which the elder Cato is said to have concluded every
speech which he made in the senate, whatever might be the subject,
'It is my opinion likewise that Carthage ought to be
destroyed,' was the natural expression of the savage
patriotism of a strong but coarse mind, enraged almost to madness
against a foreign nation from which his own had suffered so much.
The more humane sentence with which Scipio Nasica is said to have
concluded all his speeches, 'It is my opinion likewise that
Carthage ought not to be destroyed,' was the liberal
expression of a more enlarged and enlightened mind, who felt no
aversion to the prosperity even of an old enemy, when reduced to a
state which could no longer be formidable to Rome. France and
England may each of them have some reason to dread the increase of
the naval and military power of the other; but for either of them
to envy the internal happiness and prosperity of the other, the
cultivation of its lands, the advancement of its manufactures, the
increase of its commerce, the security and number of its ports and
harbours, its proficiency in all the liberal arts and sciences, is
surely beneath the dignity of two such great nations. These are
all real improvements of the world we live in. Mankind are
benefited, human nature is ennobled by them. In such improvements
each nation ought, not only to endeavour itself to excel, but from
the love of mankind, to promote, instead of obstructing the
excellence of its neighbours. These are all proper objects of
national emulation, not of national prejudice or envy.
| |
VI.II.28 |
|
The love of our own country seems not to be derived from the
love of mankind. The former sentiment is altogether independent of
the latter, and seems sometimes even to dispose us to act
inconsistently with it. France may contain, perhaps, near three
times the number of inhabitants which Great Britain contains. In
the great society of mankind, therefore, the prosperity of France
should appear to be an object of much greater importance than that
of Great Britain. The British subject, however, who, upon that
account, should prefer upon all occasions the prosperity of the
former to that of the latter country, would not be thought a good
citizen of Great Britain. We do not love our country merely as a
part of the great society of mankind: we love it for its own sake,
and independently of any such consideration. That wisdom which
contrived the system of human affections, as well as that of every
other part of nature, seems to have judged that the interest of
the great society of mankind would be best promoted by directing
the principal attention of each individual to that particular
portion of it, which was most within the sphere both of his
abilities and of his understanding. | |
VI.II.29 |
|
National prejudices and hatreds seldom extend beyond
neighbouring nations. We very weakly and foolishly, perhaps, call
the French our natural enemies; and they perhaps, as weakly and
foolishly, consider us in the same manner. Neither they nor we
bear any sort of envy to the prosperity of China or Japan. It very
rarely happens, however, that our good-will towards such distant
countries can be exerted with much effect.
| |
VI.II.30 |
|
The most extensive public benevolence which can commonly be
exerted with any considerable effect, is that of the statesmen,
who project and form alliances among neighbouring or not very
distant nations, for the preservation either of, what is called,
the balance of power, or of the general peace and tranquillity of
the states within the circle of their negotiations. The statesmen,
however, who plan and execute such treaties, have seldom any thing
in view, but the interest of their respective countries.
Sometimes, indeed, their views are more extensive. The Count
d'Avaux, the plenipotentiary of France, at the treaty of Munster,
would have been willing to sacrifice his life (according to the
Cardinal de Retz, a man not over-credulous in the virtue of other
people) in order to have restored, by that treaty, the general
tranquillity of Europe. King William seems to have had a real zeal
for the liberty and independency of the greater part of the
sovereign states of Europe; which, perhaps, might be a good deal
stimulated by his particular aversion to France, the state from
which, during his time, that liberty and independency were
principally in danger. Some share of the same spirit seems to have
descended to the first ministry of Queen Anne.
| |
VI.II.31 |
|
Every independent state is divided into many different orders
and societies, each of which has its own particular powers,
privileges, and immunities. Every individual is naturally more
attached to his own particular order or society, than to any
other. His own interest, his own vanity the interest and vanity of
many of his friends and companions, are commonly a good deal
connected with it. He is ambitious to extend its privileges and
immunities. He is zealous to defend them against the encroachments
of every other order or society. | |
VI.II.32 |
|
Upon the manner in which any state is divided into the
different orders and societies which compose it, and upon the
particular distribution which has been made of their respective
powers, privileges, and immunities, depends, what is called, the
constitution of that particular state. | |
VI.II.33 |
|
Upon the ability of each particular order or society to
maintain its own powers, privileges, and immunities, against the
encroachments of every other, depends the stability of that
particular constitution. That particular constitution is
necessarily more or less altered, whenever any of its subordinate
parts is either raised above or depressed below whatever had been
its former rank and condition. | |
VI.II.34 |
|
All those different orders and societies are dependent upon the
state to which they owe their security and protection. That they
are all subordinate to that state, and established only in
subserviency to its prosperity and preservation, is a truth
acknowledged by the most partial member of every one of them. It
may often, however, be hard to convince him that the prosperity
and preservation of the state require any diminution of the
powers, privileges, and immunities of his own particular order or
society. This partiality, though it may sometimes be unjust, may
not, upon that account, be useless. It checks the spirit of
innovation. It tends to preserve whatever is the established
balance among the different orders and societies into which the
state is divided; and while it sometimes appears to obstruct some
alterations of government which may be fashionable and popular at
the time, it contributes in reality to the stability and
permanency of the whole system. | |
VI.II.35 |
|
The love of our country seems, in ordinary cases, to involve in
it two different principles; first, a certain respect and
reverence for that constitution or form of government which is
actually established; and secondly, an earnest desire to render
the condition of our fellow-citizens as safe, respectable, and
happy as we can. He is not a citizen who is not disposed to
respect the laws and to obey the civil magistrate; and he is
certainly not a good citizen who does not wish to promote, by
every means in his power, the welfare of the whole society of his
fellow-citizens. | |
VI.II.36 |
|
In peaceable and quiet times, those two principles generally
coincide and lead to the same conduct. The support of the
established government seems evidently the best expedient for
maintaining the safe, respectable, and happy situation of our
fellow-citizens; when we see that this government actually
maintains them in that situation. But in times of public
discontent, faction, and disorder, those two different principles
may draw different ways, and even a wise man may be disposed to
think some alteration necessary in that constitution or form of
government, which, in its actual condition, appears plainly unable
to maintain the public tranquillity. In such cases, however, it
often requires, perhaps, the highest effort of political wisdom to
determine when a real patriot ought to support and endeavour to
re-establish the authority of the old system, and when he ought to
give way to the more daring, but often dangerous spirit of
innovation. | |
VI.II.37 |
|
Foreign war and civil faction are the two situations which
afford the most splendid opportunities for the display of public
spirit. The hero who serves his country successfully in foreign
war gratifies the wishes of the whole nation, and is, upon that
account, the object of universal gratitude and admiration. In
times of civil discord, the leaders of the contending parties,
though they may be admired by one half of their fellow-citizens,
are commonly execrated by the other. Their characters and the
merit of their respective services appear commonly more doubtful.
The glory which is acquired by foreign war is, upon this account,
almost always more pure and more splendid than that which can be
acquired in civil faction. | |
VI.II.38 |
|
The leader of the successful party, however, if he has
authority enough to prevail upon his own friends to act with
proper temper and moderation (which he frequently has not), may
sometimes render to his country a service much more essential and
important than the greatest victories and the most extensive
conquests. He may re-establish and improve the constitution, and
from the very doubtful and ambiguous character of the leader of a
party, he may assume the greatest and noblest of all characters,
that of the reformer and legislator of a great state; and, by the
wisdom of his institutions, secure the internal tranquillity and
happiness of his fellow-citizens for many succeeding generations.
| |
VI.II.39 |
|
Amidst the turbulence and disorder of faction, a certain spirit
of system is apt to mix itself with that public spirit which is
founded upon the love of humanity, upon a real fellow-feeling with
the inconveniencies and distresses to which some of our
fellow-citizens may be exposed. This spirit of system commonly
takes the direction of that more gentle public spirit; always
animates it, and often inflames it even to the madness of
fanaticism. The leaders of the discontented party seldom fail to
hold out some plausible plan of reformation which, they pretend,
will not only remove the inconveniencies and relieve the
distresses immediately complained of, but will prevent, in all
time coming, any return of the like inconveniencies and
distresses. They often propose, upon this account, to new-model
the constitution, and to alter, in some of its most essential
parts, that system of government under which the subjects of a
great empire have enjoyed, perhaps, peace, security, and even
glory, during the course of several centuries together. The great
body of the party are commonly intoxicated with the imaginary
beauty of this ideal system, of which they have no experience, but
which has been represented to them in all the most dazzling
colours in which the eloquence of their leaders could paint it.
Those leaders themselves, though they originally may have meant
nothing but their own aggrandisement, become many of them in time
the dupes of their own sophistry, and are as eager for this great
reformation as the weakest and foolishest of their followers. Even
though the leaders should have preserved their own heads, as
indeed they commonly do, free from this fanaticism, yet they dare
not always disappoint the expectation of their followers; but are
often obliged, though contrary to their principle and their
conscience, to act as if they were under the common delusion. The
violence of the party, refusing all palliatives, all temperaments,
all reasonable accommodations, by requiring too much frequently
obtains nothing; and those inconveniencies and distresses which,
with a little moderation, might in a great measure have been
removed and relieved, are left altogether without the hope of a
remedy. | |
VI.II.40 |
|
The man whose public spirit is prompted altogether by humanity
and benevolence, will respect the established powers and
privileges even of individuals, and still more those of the great
orders and societies, into which the state is divided. Though he
should consider some of them as in some measure abusive, he will
content himself with moderating, what he often cannot annihilate
without great violence. When he cannot conquer the rooted
prejudices of the people by reason and persuasion, he will not
attempt to subdue them by force; but will religiously observe
what, by Cicero, is justly called the divine maxim of Plato, never
to use violence to his country no more than to his parents. He
will accommodate, as well as he can, his public arrangements to
the confirmed habits and prejudices of the people; and will remedy
as well as he can, the inconveniencies which may flow from the
want of those regulations which the people are averse to submit
to. When he cannot establish the right, he will not disdain to
ameliorate the wrong; but like Solon, when he cannot establish the
best system of laws, he will endeavour to establish the best that
the people can bear. | |
VI.II.41 |
|
The man of system, on the contrary, is apt to
be very wise in his own conceit; and is often so enamoured with
the supposed beauty of his own ideal plan of government, that he
cannot suffer the smallest deviation from any part of it. He goes
on to establish it completely and in all its parts, without any
regard either to the great interests, or to the strong prejudices
which may oppose it. He seems to imagine that he can arrange the
different members of a great society with as much ease as the hand
arranges the different pieces upon a chess-board. He does not
consider that the pieces upon the chess-board have no other
principle of motion besides that which the hand impresses upon
them; but that, in the great chess-board of human society, every
single piece has a principle of motion of its own, altogether
different from that which the legislature might chuse to impress
upon it. If those two principles coincide and act in the same
direction, the game of human society will go on easily and
harmoniously, and is very likely to be happy and successful. If
they are opposite or different, the game will go on miserably, and
the society must be at all times in the highest degree of
disorder. | |
VI.II.42 |
|
Some general, and even systematical, idea of the perfection of
policy and law, may no doubt be necessary for directing the views
of the statesman. But to insist upon establishing, and upon
establishing all at once, and in spite of all opposition, every
thing which that idea may seem to require, must often be the
highest degree of arrogance. It is to erect his own judgment into
the supreme standard of right and wrong. It is to fancy himself
the only wise and worthy man in the commonwealth, and that his
fellow-citizens should accommodate themselves to him and not he to
them. It is upon this account, that of all political speculators,
sovereign princes are by far the most dangerous. This arrogance is
perfectly familiar to them. They entertain no doubt of the immense
superiority of their own judgment. When such imperial and royal
reformers, therefore, condescend to contemplate the constitution
of the country which is committed to their government, they seldom
see any thing so wrong in it as the obstructions which it may
sometimes oppose to the execution of their own will. They hold in
contempt the divine maxim of Plato, and consider the state as made
for themselves, not themselves for the state. The great object of
their reformation, therefore, is to remove those obstructions; to
reduce the authority of the nobility; to take away the privileges
of cities and provinces, and to render both the greatest
individuals and the greatest orders of the state, as incapable of
opposing their commands, as the weakest and most insignificant.
| |
VI.II.43 |
|
Chapter III - Of universal Benevolence
| |
|
Though our effectual good offices can very seldom be extended
to any wider society than that of our own country; our good-will
is circumscribed by no boundary, but may embrace the immensity of
the universe. We cannot form the idea of any innocent and sensible
being, whose happiness we should not desire, or to whose misery,
when distinctly brought home to the imagination, we should not
have some degree of aversion. The idea of a mischievous, though
sensible, being, indeed, naturally provokes our hatred: but the
ill-will which, in this case, we bear to it, is really the effect
of our universal benevolence. It is the effect of the sympathy
which we feel with the misery and resentment of those other
innocent and sensible beings, whose happiness is disturbed by its
malice. | |
VI.II.44 |
|
This universal benevolence, how noble and generous soever, can
be the source of no solid happiness to any man who is not
thoroughly convinced that all the inhabitants of the universe, the
meanest as well as the greatest, are under the immediate care and
protection of that great, benevolent, and all-wise Being, who
directs all the movements of nature; and who is determined, by his
own unalterable perfections, to maintain in it, at all times, the
greatest possible quantity of happiness. To this universal
benevolence, on the contrary, the very suspicion of a fatherless
world, must be the most melancholy of all reflections; from the
thought that all the unknown regions of infinite and
incomprehensible space may be filled with nothing but endless
misery and wretchedness. All the splendour of the highest
prosperity can never enlighten the gloom with which so dreadful an
idea must necessarily over-shadow the imagination; nor, in a wise
and virtuous man, can all the sorrow of the most afflicting
adversity ever dry up the joy which necessarily springs from the
habitual and thorough conviction of the truth of the contrary
system. | |
VI.II.45 |
|
The wise and virtuous man is at all times willing that his own
private interest should be sacrificed to the public interest of
his own particular order or society. He is at all times willing,
too, that the interest of this order or society should be
sacrificed to the greater interest of the state or sovereignty, of
which it is only a subordinate part. He should, therefore, be
equally willing that all those inferior interests should be
sacrificed to the greater interest of the universe, to the
interest of that great society of all sensible and intelligent
beings, of which God himself is the immediate administrator and
director. If he is deeply impressed with the habitual and thorough
conviction that this benevolent and all-wise Being can admit into
the system of his government, no partial evil which is not
necessary for the universal good, he must consider all the
misfortunes which may befal himself, his friends, his society, or
his country, as necessary for the prosperity of the universe, and
therefore as what he ought, not only to submit to with
resignation, but as what he himself, if he had known all the
connexions and dependencies of things, ought sincerely and
devoutly to have wished for. | |
VI.II.46 |
|
Nor does this magnanimous resignation to the will of the great
Director of the universe, seem in any respect beyond the reach of
human nature. Good soldiers, who both love and trust their
general, frequently march with more gaiety and alacrity to the
forlorn station, from which they never expect to return, than they
would to one where there was neither difficulty nor danger. In
marching to the latter, they could feel no other sentiment than
that of the dulness of ordinary duty: in marching to the former,
they feel that they are making the noblest exertion which it is
possible for man to make. They know that their general would not
have ordered them upon this station, had it not been necessary for
the safety of the army, for the success of the war. They
cheerfully sacrifice their own little systems to the prosperity of
a greater system. They take an affectionate leave of their
comrades, to whom they wish all happiness and success; and march
out, not only with submissive obedience, but often with shouts of
the most joyful exultation, to that fatal, but splendid and
honourable station to which they are appointed. No conductor of an
army can deserve more unlimited trust, more ardent and zealous
affection, than the great Conductor of the universe. In the
greatest public as well as private disasters, a wise man ought to
consider that he himself, his friends and countrymen, have only
been ordered upon the forlorn station of the universe; that had it
not been necessary for the good of the whole, they would not have
been so ordered; and that it is their duty, not only with humble
resignation to submit to this allotment, but to endeavour to
embrace it with alacrity and joy. A wise man should surely be
capable of doing what a good soldier holds himself at all times in
readiness to do. | |
VI.II.47 |
|
The idea of that divine Being, whose benevolence and wisdom
have, from all eternity, contrived and conducted the immense
machine of the universe, so as at all times to produce the
greatest possible quantity of happiness, is certainly of all the
objects of human contemplation by far the most sublime. Every
other thought necessarily appears mean in the comparison. The man
whom we believe to be principally occupied in this sublime
contemplation, seldom fails to be the object of our highest
veneration; and though his life should be altogether
contemplative, we often regard him with a sort of religious
respect much superior to that with which we look upon the most
active and useful servant of the commonwealth. The Meditations of
Marcus Antoninus, which turn principally upon this subject, have
contributed more, perhaps, to the general admiration of his
character, than all the different transactions of his just,
merciful, and beneficent reign. | |
VI.II.48 |
|
The administration of the great system of the universe,
however, the care of the universal happiness of all rational and
sensible beings, is the business of God and not of man. To man is
allotted a much humbler department, but one much more suitable to
the weakness of his powers, and to the narrowness of his
comprehension; the care of his own happiness, of that of his
family, his friends, his country: that he is occupied in
contemplating the more sublime, can never be an excuse for his
neglecting the more humble department; and he must not expose
himself to the charge which Avidius Cassius is said to have
brought, perhaps unjustly, against Marcus Antoninus; that while he
employed himself in philosophical speculations, and contemplated
the prosperity of the universe, he neglected that of the Roman
empire. The most sublime speculation of the contemplative
philosopher can scarce compensate the neglect of the smallest
active duty. | |
VI.II.49 |
|
Section III - Of Self-command
| |
|
The man
who acts according to the rules of perfect prudence, of strict
justice, and of proper benevolence, may be said to be perfectly
virtuous. But the most perfect knowledge of those rules will not
alone enable him to act in this manner: his own passions are very
apt to mislead him; sometimes to drive him and sometimes to seduce
him to violate all the rules which he himself, in all his sober
and cool hours, approves of. The most perfect knowledge, if it is
not supported by the most perfect self-command, will not always
enable him to do his duty. | |
VI.III.1 |
|
Some of the best of the ancient moralists seem to have
considered those passions as divided into two different classes:
first, into those which it requires a considerable exertion of
self-command to restrain even for a single moment; and secondly,
into those which it is easy to restrain for a single moment, or
even for a short period of time; but which, by their continual and
almost incessant solicitations, are, in the course of a life, very
apt to mislead into great deviations. | |
VI.III.2 |
|
Fear and anger, together with some other passions which are
mixed or connected with them, constitute the first class. The love
of ease, of pleasure, of applause, and of many other selfish
gratifications, constitute the second. Extravagant fear and
furious anger, it is often difficult to restrain even for a single
moment. The love of ease, of pleasure, of applause, and other
selfish gratifications, it is always easy to restrain for a single
moment, or even for a short period of time; but, by their
continual solicitations, they often mislead us into many
weaknesses which we have afterwards much reason to be ashamed of.
The former set of passions may often be said to drive, the latter,
to seduce us from our duty. The command of the former was, by the
ancient moralists above alluded to, denominated fortitude,
manhood, and strength of mind; that of the latter, temperance,
decency, modesty, and moderation. | |
VI.III.3 |
|
The command of each of those two sets of passions, independent
of the beauty which it derives from its utility; from its enabling
us upon all occasions to act according to the dictates of
prudence, of justice, and of proper benevolence; has a beauty of
its own, and seems to deserve for its own sake a certain degree of
esteem and admiration. In the one case, the strength and greatness
of the exertion excites some degree of that esteem and admiration.
In the other, the uniformity, the equality and unremitting
steadiness of that exertion. | |
VI.III.4 |
|
The man who, in danger, in torture, upon the approach of death,
preserves his tranquillity unaltered, and suffers no word, no
gesture to escape him which does not perfectly accord with the
feelings of the most indifferent spectator, necessarily commands a
very high degree of admiration. If he suffers in the cause of
liberty and justice, for the sake of humanity and the love of his
country, the most tender compassion for his sufferings, the
strongest indignation against the injustice of his persecutors,
the warmest sympathetic gratitude for his beneficent intentions,
the highest sense of his merit, all join and mix themselves with
the admiration of his magnanimity, and often inflame that
sentiment into the most enthusiastic and rapturous veneration. The
heroes of ancient and modern history, who are remembered with the
most peculiar favour and affection, are, many of them, those who,
in the cause of truth, liberty, and justice, have perished upon
the scaffold, and who behaved there with that ease and dignity
which became them. Had the enemies of Socrates suffered him to die
quietly in his bed, the glory even of that great philosopher might
possibly never have acquired that dazzling splendour in which it
has been beheld in all succeeding ages. In the english history,
when we look over the illustrious heads which have been engraven
by Vertue and Howbraken, there is scarce any body, I imagine, who
does not feel that the axe, the emblem of having been beheaded,
which is engraved under some of the most illustrious of them.
under those of the Sir Thomas Mores, of the Rhaleighs, the
Russels, the Sydneys, etc. sheds a real dignity and
interestingness over the characters to which it is affixed, much
superior to what they can derive from all the futile ornaments of
heraldry, with which they are sometimes accompanied.
| |
VI.III.5 |
|
Nor does this magnanimity give lustre only to the characters of
innocent and virtuous men. It draws some degree of favourable
regard even upon those of the greatest criminals; and when a
robber or highwayman is brought to the scaffold, and behaves there
with decency and firmness, though we perfectly approve of his
punishment, we often cannot help regretting that a man who
possessed such great and noble powers should have been capable of
such mean enormities. | |
VI.III.6 |
|
War is the great school both for acquiring and exercising this
species of magnanimity. Death, as we say, is the king of terrors;
and the man who has conquered the fear of death, is not likely to
lose his presence of mind at the approach of any other natural
evil. In war, men become Familiar with death, and are thereby
necessarily cured of that superstitious horror with which it is
viewed by the weak and unexperienced. They consider it merely as
the loss of life, and as no further the object of aversion than as
life may happen to be that of desire. They learn from experience,
too, that many seemingly great dangers are not so great as they
appear; and that, with courage, activity, and presence of mind,
there is often a good probability of extricating themselves with
honour from situations where at first they could see no hope. The
dread of death is thus greatly diminished; and the confidence or
hope of escaping it, augmented. They learn to expose themselves to
danger with less reluctance. They are less anxious to get out of
it, and less apt to lose their presence of mind while they are in
it. It is this habitual contempt of danger and death which
ennobles the profession of a soldier, and bestows upon it, in the
natural apprehensions of mankind, a rank and dignity superior to
that of any other profession. The skilful and successful exercise
of this profession, in the service of their country, seems to have
constituted the most distinguishing feature in the character of
the favourite heroes of all ages. | |
VI.III.7 |
|
Great warlike exploit, though undertaken contrary to every
principle of justice, and carried on without any regard to
humanity, sometimes interests us, and commands even some degree of
a certain sort of esteem for the very worthless characters which
conduct it. We are interested even in the exploits of the
Buccaneers; and read with some sort of esteem and admiration, the
history of the most worthless men, who, in pursuit of the most
criminal purposes, endured greater hardships, surmounted greater
difficulties, and encountered greater dangers, than, perhaps, any
which the ordinary course of history gives an account of.
| |
VI.III.8 |
|
The command of anger appears upon many occasions not less
generous and noble than that of fear. The proper expression of
just indignation composes many of the most splendid and admired
passages both of ancient and modern eloquence. The Philippics of
Demosthenes, the Catalinarians of Cicero, derive their whole
beauty from the noble propriety with which this passion is
expressed. But this just indignation is nothing but anger
restrained and properly attempered to what the impartial spectator
can enter into. The blustering and noisy passion which goes beyond
this, is always odious and offensive, and interests us, not for
the angry man, but for the man with whom he is angry. The
nobleness of pardoning appears, upon many occasions, superior even
to the most perfect propriety of resenting. When either proper
acknowledgments have been made by the offending party; or, even
without any such acknowledgments, when the public interest
requires that the most mortal enemies should unite for the
discharge of some important duty, the man who can cast away all
animosity, and act with confidence and cordiality towards the
person who had most grievously offended him, seems justly to merit
our highest admiration. | |
VI.III.9 |
|
The command of anger, however, does not always appear in such
splendid colours. Fear is contrary to anger, and is often the
motive which restrains it; and in such cases the meanness of the
motive takes away all the nobleness of the restraint. Anger
prompts to attack, and the indulgence of it seems sometimes to
shew a sort of courage and superiority to fear. The indulgence of
anger is sometimes an object of vanity. That of fear never is.
Vain and weak men, among their inferiors, or those who dare not
resist them, often affect to be ostentatiously passionate, and
fancy that they show, what is called, spirit in being so. A bully
tells many stories of his own insolence, which are not true, and
imagines that he thereby renders himself, if not more amiable and
respectable, at least more formidable to his audience. Modern
manners, which, by favouring the practice of duelling, may be
said, in some cases, to encourage private revenge, contribute,
perhaps, a good deal to render, in modern times, the restraint of
anger by fear still more contemptible than it might otherwise
appear to be. There is always something dignified in the command
of fear, whatever may be the motive upon which it is founded. It
is not so with the command of anger. Unless it is founded
altogether in the sense of decency, of dignity, and propriety, it
never is perfectly agreeable. | |
VI.III.10 |
|
To act according to the dictates of prudence, of justice, and
proper beneficence, seems to have no great merit where there is no
temptation to do otherwise. But to act with cool deliberation in
the midst of the greatest dangers and difficulties; to observe
religiously the sacred rules of justice in spite both of the
greatest interests which might tempt, and the greatest injuries
which might provoke us to violate them; never to suffer the
benevolence of our temper to be damped or discouraged by the
malignity and ingratitude of the individuals towards whom it may
have been exercised; is the character of the most exalted wisdom
and virtue. Self-command is not only itself a great virtue, but
from it all the other virtues seem to derive their principal
lustre. | |
VI.III.11 |
|
The command of fear, the command of anger, are always great and
noble powers. When they are directed by justice and benevolence,
they are not only great virtues, but increase the splendour of
those other virtues. They may, however, sometimes be directed by
very different motives; and in this case, though still great and
respectable, they may be excessively dangerous. The most intrepid
valour may be employed in the cause of the greatest injustice.
Amidst great provocations, apparent tranquillity and good humour
may sometimes conceal the most determined and cruel resolution to
revenge. The strength of mind requisite for such dissimulation,
though always and necessarily contaminated by the baseness of
falsehood, has, however, been often much admired by many people of
no contemptible judgment. The dissimulation of Catharine of
Medicis is often celebrated by the profound historian Davila; that
of Lord Digby, afterwards Earl of Bristol, by the grave and
conscientious Lord Clarendon; that of the first Ashley Earl of
Shaftesbury, by the judicious Mr . Locke. Even Cicero seems to
consider this deceitful character, not indeed as of the highest
dignity, but as not unsuitable to a certain flexibility of
manners, which, he thinks, may, notwithstanding, be, upon the
whole, both agreeable and respectable. He exemplifies it by the
characters of Homer's Ulysses, of the Athenian Themistocles, of
the Spartan Lysander, and of the Roman Marcus Crassus. This
character of dark and deep dissimulation occurs most commonly in
times of great public disorder; amidst the violence of faction and
civil war. When law has become in a great measure impotent, when
the most perfect innocence cannot alone insure safety, regard to
self-defence obliges the greater part of men to have recourse to
dexterity, to address, and to apparent accommodation to whatever
happens to be, at the moment, the prevailing party. This false
character, too, is frequently accompanied with the coolest and
most determined courage. The proper exercise of it supposes that
courage, as death is commonly the certain consequence of
detection. It may be employed indifferently, either to exasperate
or to allay those furious animosities of adverse factions which
impose the necessity of assuming it; and though it may sometimes
be useful, it is at least equally liable to be excessively
pernicious. | |
VI.III.12 |
|
The command of the less violent and turbulent passions seems
much less liable to be abused to any pernicious purpose.
Temperance, decency, modesty, and moderation, are always amiable,
and can seldom be directed to any bad end. It is from the
unremitting steadiness of those gentler exertions of self-command,
that the amiable virtue of chastity, that the respectable virtues
of industry and frugality, derive all that sober lustre which
attends them. The conduct of all those who are contented to walk
in the humble paths of private and peaceable life, derives from
the same principle the greater part of the beauty and grace which
belong to it; a beauty and grace, which, though much less
dazzling, is not always less pleasing than those which accompany
the more splendid actions of the hero, the statesman, or the
legislator. | |
VI.III.13 |
|
After what has already been said, in several different parts of
this discourse, concerning the nature of self-command, I judge it
unnecessary to enter into any further detail concerning those
virtues. I shall only observe at present, that the point of
propriety, the degree of any passion which the impartial spectator
approves of, is differently situated in different passions. In
some passions the excess is less disagreeable than the defect; and
in such passions the point of propriety seems to stand high, or
nearer to the excess than to the defect. In other passions, the
defect is less disagreeable than the excess; and in such passions
the point of propriety seems to stand low, or nearer to the defect
than to the excess. The former are the passions which the
spectator is most, the latter, those which he is least disposed to
sympathize with. The former, too, are the passions of which the
immediate feeling or sensation is agreeable to the person
principally concerned; the latter, those of which it is
disagreeable. It may be laid down as a general rule, that the
passions which the spectator is most disposed to sympathize with,
and in which, upon that account, the point of propriety may be
said to stand high, are those of which the immediate feeling or
sensation is more or less agreeable to the person principally
concerned: and that, on the contrary, the passions which the
spectator is least disposed to sympathize with, and in which, upon
that account, the point of propriety may be said to stand low, are
those of which the immediate feeling or sensation is more or less
disagreeable, or even painful, to the person principally
concerned. This general rule, so far as I have been able to
observe, admits not of a single exception. A few examples will at
once, both sufficiently explain it and demonstrate the truth of
it. | |
VI.III.14 |
|
The disposition to the affections which tend to unite men in
society, to humanity, kindness, natural affection, friendship,
esteem, may sometimes be excessive. Even the excess of this
disposition, however, renders a man interesting to every body.
Though we blame it, we still regard it with compassion, and even
with kindness, and never with dislike. We are more sorry for it
than angry at it. To the person himself, the indulgence even of
such excessive affections is, upon many occasions, not only
agreeable, but delicious. Upon some occasions, indeed, especially
when directed, as is too often the case, towards unworthy objects,
it exposes him to much real and heartfelt distress. Even upon such
occasions, however, a well-disposed mind regards him with the most
exquisite pity, and feels the highest indignation against those
who affect to despise him for his weakness and imprudence. The
defect of this disposition, on the contrary, what is called
hardness of heart, while it renders a man insensible to the
feelings and distresses of other people, renders other people
equally insensible to his; and, by excluding him from the
friendship of all the world, excludes him from the best and most
comfortable of all social enjoyments. | |
VI.III.15 |
|
The disposition to the affections which drive men from one
another, and which tend, as it were, to break the bands of human
society; the disposition to anger, hatred, envy, malice, revenge;
is, on the contrary, much more apt to offend by its excess than by
its defect. The excess renders a man wretched and miserable in his
own mind, and the object of hatred, and sometimes even of horror,
to other people. The defect is very seldom complained of. It may,
however, be defective. The want of proper indignation is a most
essential defect in the manly character, and, upon many occasions,
renders a man incapable of protecting either himself or his
friends from insult and injustice. Even that principle, in the
excess and improper direction of which consists the odious and
detestable passion of envy, may be defective. Envy is that passion
which views with malignant dislike the superiority of those who
are really entitled to all the superiority they possess. The man,
however, who, in matters of consequence, tamely suffers other
people, who are entitled to no such superiority, to rise above him
or get before him, is justly condemned as mean-spirited. This
weakness is commonly founded in indolence, sometimes in good
nature, in an aversion to opposition, to bustle and solicitation,
and sometimes, too, in a sort of ill-judged magnanimity, which
fancies that it can always continue to despise the advantage which
it then despises, and, therefore, so easily gives up. Such
weakness, however, is commonly followed by much regret and
repentance; and what had some appearance of magnanimity in the
beginning frequently gives place to a most malignant envy in the
end, and to a hatred of that superiority, which those who have
once attained it, may often become really entitled to, by the very
circumstance of having attained it. In order to live comfortably
in the world, it is, upon all occasions, as necessary to defend
our dignity and rank, as it is to defend our life or our fortune.
| |
VI.III.16 |
|
Our sensibility to personal danger and distress, like that to
personal provocation, is much more apt to offend by its excess
than by its defect. No character is more contemptible than that of
a coward; no character is more admired than that of the man who
faces death with intrepidity, and maintains his tranquillity and
presence of mind amidst the most dreadful dangers. We esteem the
man who supports pain and even torture with manhood and firmness;
and we can have little regard for him who sinks under them, and
abandons himself to useless outcries and womanish lamentations. A
fretful temper, which feels, with too much sensibility, every
little cross accident, renders a man miserable in himself and
offensive to other people. A calm one, which does not allow its
tranquillity to be disturbed, either by the small injuries, or by
the little disasters incident to the usual course of human
affairs; but which, amidst the natural and moral evils infesting
the world, lays its account and is contented to suffer a little
from both, is a blessing to the man himself, and gives ease and
security to all his companions. | |
VI.III.17 |
|
Our sensibility, however, both to our own injuries and to our
own misfortunes, though generally too strong, may likewise be too
weak. The man who feels little for his own misfortunes must always
feel less for those of other people, and be less disposed to
relieve them. The man who has little resentment for the injuries
which are done to himself, must always have less for those which
are done to other people, and be less disposed either to protect
or to avenge them. A stupid insensibility to the events of human
life necessarily extinguishes all that keen and earnest attention
to the propriety of our own conduct, which constitutes the real
essence of virtue. We can feel little anxiety about the propriety
of our own actions, when we are indifferent about the events which
may result from them. The man who feels the full distress of the
calamity which has befallen him, who feels the whole baseness of
the injustice which has been done to him, but who feels still more
strongly what the dignity of his own character requires; who does
not abandon himself to the guidance of the undisciplined passions
which his situation might naturally inspire; but who governs his
whole behaviour and conduct according to those restrained and
corrected emotions which the great inmate, the great demi-god
within the breast prescribes and approves of; is alone the real
man of virtue, the only real and proper object of love, respect,
and admiration. Insensibility and that noble firmness, that
exalted self-command, which is founded in the sense of dignity and
propriety, are so far from being altogether the same, that in
proportion as the former takes place, the merit of the latter is,
in many cases, entirely taken away. | |
VI.III.18 |
|
But though the total want of sensibility to personal injury, to
personal danger and distress, would, in such situations, take away
the whole merit of self-command, that sensibility, however, may
very easily be too exquisite, and it frequently is so. When the
sense of propriety, when the authority of the judge within the
breast, can control this extreme sensibility, that authority must
no doubt appear very noble and very great. But the exertion of it
may be too fatiguing; it may have too much to do. The individual,
by a great effort, may behave perfectly well. But the contest
between the two principles, the warfare within the breast, may be
too violent to be at all consistent with internal tranquillity and
happiness. The wise man whom Nature has endowed with this too
exquisite sensibility, and whose too lively feelings have not been
sufficiently blunted and hardened by early education and proper
exercise, will avoid, as much as duty and propriety will permit,
the situations for which he is not perfectly fitted. The man whose
feeble and delicate constitution renders him too sensible to pain,
to hardship, and to every sort of bodily distress, should not
wantonly embrace the profession of a soldier. The man of too much
sensibility to injury, should not rashly engage in the contests of
faction. Though the sense of propriety should be strong enough to
command all those sensibilities, the composure of the mind must
always be disturbed in the struggle. In this disorder the judgment
cannot always maintain its ordinary acuteness and precision; and
though he may always mean to act properly, he may often act rashly
and imprudently, and in a manner which he himself will, in the
succeeding part of his life, be for ever ashamed of. A certain
intrepidity, a certain firmness of nerves and hardiness of
constitution, whether natural or acquired, are undoubtedly the
best preparatives for all the great exertions of self-command.
| |
VI.III.19 |
|
Though war and faction are certainly the best schools for
forming every man to this hardiness and firmness of temper, though
they are the best remedies for curing him of the opposite
weaknesses, yet, if the day of trial should happen to come before
he has completely learned his lesson, before the remedy has had
time to produce its proper effect, the consequences might not be
agreeable. | |
VI.III.20 |
|
Our sensibility to the pleasures, to the amusements and
enjoyments of human life, may offend, in the same manner, either
by its excess or by its defect. Of the two, however, the excess
seems less disagreeable than the defect. Both to the spectator and
to the person principally concerned, a strong propensity to joy is
certainly more pleasing than a dull insensibility to the objects
of amusement and diversion. We are charmed with the gaiety of
youth, and even with the playfulness of childhood: but we soon
grow weary of the flat and tasteless gravity which too frequently
accompanies old age. When this propensity, indeed, is not
restrained by the sense of propriety, when it is unsuitable to the
time or to the place, to the age or to the situation of the
person, when, to indulge it, he neglects either his interest or
his duty; it is justly blamed as excessive, and as hurtful both to
the individual and to the society. In the greater part of such
cases, however, what is chiefly to be found fault with is, not so
much the strength of the propensity to joy, as the weakness of the
sense of propriety and duty. A young man who has no relish for the
diversions and amusements that are natural and suitable to his
age, who talks of nothing but his book or his business, is
disliked as formal and pedantic; and we give him no credit for his
abstinence even from improper indulgences, to which he seems to
have so little inclination. | |
VI.III.21 |
|
The principle of self-estimation may be too high, and it may
likewise be too low. It is so very agreeable to think highly, and
so very disagreeable to think meanly of ourselves, that, to the
person himself, it cannot well be doubted, but that some degree of
excess must be much less disagreeable than any degree of defect.
But to the impartial spectator, it may perhaps be thought, things
must appear quite differently, and that to him, the defect must
always be less disagreeable than the excess. And in our
companions, no doubt, we much more frequently complain of the
latter than of the former. When they assume upon us, or set
themselves before us, their self-estimation mortifies our own. Our
own pride and vanity prompt us to accuse them of pride and vanity,
and we cease to be the impartial spectators of their conduct. When
the same companions, however, suffer any other man to assume over
them a superiority which does not belong to him, we not only blame
them, but often despise them as mean-spirited. When, on the
contrary, among other people, they push themselves a little more
forward, and scramble to an elevation disproportioned, as we
think, to their merit, though we may not perfectly approve of
their conduct, we are often, upon the whole, diverted with it;
and, where there is no envy in the case, we are almost always much
less displeased with them, than we should have been, had they
suffered themselves to sink below their proper station.
| |
VI.III.22 |
|
In estimating our own merit, in judging of our own character
and conduct, there are two different standards to which we
naturally compare them. The one is the idea of exact propriety and
perfection, so far as we are each of us capable of comprehending
that idea. The other is that degree of approximation to this idea
which is commonly attained in the world, and which the greater
part of our friends and companions, of our rivals and competitors,
may have actually arrived at. We very seldom (I am disposed to
think, we never) attempt to judge of ourselves without giving more
or less attention to both these different standards. But the
attention of different men, and even of the same man at different
times, is often very unequally divided between them; and is
sometimes principally directed towards the one, and sometimes
towards the other. | |
VI.III.23 |
|
So far as our attention is directed towards the first standard,
the wisest and best of us all, can, in his own character and
conduct, see nothing but weakness and imperfection; can discover
no ground for arrogance and presumption, but a great deal for
humility, regret and repentance. So far as our attention is
directed towards the second, we may be affected either in the one
way or in the other, and feel ourselves, either really above, or
really below, the standard to which we compare ourselves.
| |
VI.III.24 |
|
The wise and virtuous man directs his principal attention to
the first standard; the idea of exact propriety and perfection.
There exists in the mind of every man, an idea of this kind,
gradually formed from his observations upon the character and
conduct both of himself and of other people. It is the slow,
gradual, and progressive work of the great demigod within the
breast, the great judge and arbiter of conduct. This idea is in
every man more or less accurately drawn, its colouring is more or
less just, its outlines are more or less exactly designed,
according to the delicacy and acuteness of that sensibility, with
which those observations were made, and according to the care and
attention employed in making them. In the wise and virtuous man
they have been made with the most acute and delicate sensibility,
and the utmost care and attention have been employed in making
them. Every day some feature is improved; every day some blemish
is corrected. He has studied this idea more than other people, he
comprehends it more distinctly, he has formed a much more correct
image of it, and is much more deeply enamoured of its exquisite
and divine beauty. He endeavours as well as he can, to assimilate
his own character to this archetype of perfection. But he imitates
the work of a divine artist, which can never be equalled. He feels
the imperfect success of all his best endeavours, and sees, with
grief and affliction, in how many different features the mortal
copy falls short of the immortal original. He remembers, with
concern and humilation, how often, from want of attention, from
want of judgment, from want of temper, he has, both in words and
actions, both in conduct and conversation, violated the exact
rules of perfect propriety; and has so far departed from that
model, according to which he wished to fashion his own character
and conduct. When he directs his attention towards the second
standard, indeed, that degree of excellence which his friends and
acquaintances have commonly arrived at, he may be sensible of his
own superiority. But, as his principal attention is always
directed towards the first standard, he is necessarily much more
humbled by the one comparison, than he ever can be elevated by the
other. He is never so elated as to look down with insolence even
upon those who are really below him. He feels so well his own
imperfection, he knows so well the difficulty with which he
attained his own distant approximation to rectitude, that he
cannot regard with contempt the still greater imperfection of
other people. Far from insulting over their inferiority, he views
it with the most indulgent commiseration, and, by his advice as
well as example, is at all times willing to promote their further
advancement. If, in any particular qualification, they happen to
be superior to him (for who is so perfect as not to have many
superiors in many different qualifications?), far from envying
their superiority, he, who knows how difficult it is to excel,
esteems and honours their excellence, and never fails to bestow
upon it the full measure of applause which it deserves. His whole
mind, in short, is deeply impressed, his whole behaviour and
deportment are distinctly stamped with the character of real
modesty; with that of a very moderate estimation of his own merit,
and, at the same time, of a full sense of the merit of other
people. | |
VI.III.25 |
|
In all the liberal and ingenious arts, in painting, in poetry,
in music, in eloquence, in philosophy, the great artist feels
always the real imperfection of his own best works, and is more
sensible than any man how much they fall short of that ideal
perfection of which he has formed some conception, which he
imitates as well as he can, but which he despairs of ever
equalling. It is the inferior artist only, who is ever perfectly
satisfied with his own performances. He has little conception of
this ideal perfection, about which he has little employed his
thoughts; and it is chiefly to the works of other artists, of,
perhaps, a still lower order, that he deigns to compare his own
works. Boileau, the great French poet (in some of his works,
perhaps not inferior to the greatest poet of the same kind, either
ancient or modern), used to say, that no great man was ever
completely satisfied with his own works. His acquaintance Santeuil
(a writer of Latin verses, and who, on account of that schoolboy
accomplishment, had the weakness to fancy himself a poet), assured
him, that he himself was always completely satisfied with
his own. Boileau replied, with, perhaps, an arch ambiguity,
that he certainly was the only great man that ever was so.
Boileau, in judging of his own works, compared them with the
standard of ideal perfection, which, in his own particular branch
of the poetic art, he had, I presume, meditated as deeply, and
conceived as distinctly, as it is possible for man to conceive it.
Santeuil, in judging of his own works, compared them, I
suppose, chiefly to those of the other Latin poets of his own
time, to the greater part of whom he was certainly very far from
being inferior. But to support and finish off, if I may say so,
the conduct and conversation of a whole life to some resemblance
of this ideal perfection, is surely much more difficult than to
work up to an equal resemblance any of the productions of any of
the ingenious arts. The artist sits down to his work undisturbed,
at leisure, in the full possession and recollection of all his
skill, experience, and knowledge. The wise man must support the
propriety of his own conduct in health and in sickness, in success
and in disappointment, in the hour of fatigue and drowsy
indolence, as well as in that of the most awakened attention. The
most sudden and unexpected assaults of difficulty and distress
must never surprise him. The injustice of other people must never
provoke him to injustice. The violence of faction must never
confound him. All the hardships and hazards of war must never
either dishearten or appal him. | |
VI.III.26 |
|
Of the persons who, in estimating their own merit, in judging
of their own character and conduct, direct by far the greater part
of their attention to the second standard, to that ordinary degree
of excellence which is commonly attained by other people, there
are some who really and justly feel themselves very much above it,
and who, by every intelligent and impartial spectator, are
acknowledged to be so. The attention of such persons, however,
being always principally directed, not to the standard of ideal,
but to that of ordinary perfection, they have little sense of
their own weaknesses and imperfections; they have little modesty;
are often assuming, arrogant, and presumptuous; great admirers of
themselves, and great contemners of other people. Though their
characters are in general much less correct, and their merit much
inferior to that of the man of real and modest virtue; yet their
excessive presumption, founded upon their own excessive
self-admiration, dazzles the multitude, and often imposes even
upon those who are much superior to the multitude. The frequent,
and often wonderful, success of the most ignorant quacks and
imposters, both civil and religious, sufficiently demonstrate how
easily the multitude are imposed upon by the most extravagant and
groundless pretensions. But when those pretensions are supported
by a very high degree of real and solid merit, when they are
displayed with all the splendour which ostentation can bestow upon
them, when they are supported by high rank and great power, when
they have often been successfully exerted, and are, upon that
account, attended by the loud acclamations of the multitude; even
the man of sober judgment often abandons himself to the general
admiration. The very noise of those foolish acclamations often
contributes to confound his understanding, and while he sees those
great men only at a certain distance, he is often disposed to
worship them with a sincere admiration, superior even to that with
which they appear to worship themselves. When there is no envy in
the case, we all take pleasure in admiring, and are, upon that
account, naturally disposed, in our own fancies, to render
complete and perfect in every respect the characters which, in
many respects, are so very worthy of admiration. The excessive
self-admiration of those great men is well understood, perhaps,
and even seen through, with some degree of derision, by those wise
men who are much in their familiarity, and who secretly smile at
those lofty pretensions, which, by people at a distance, are often
regarded with reverence, and almost with adoration. Such, however,
have been, in all ages, the greater part of those men who have
procured to themselves the most noisy fame, the most extensive
reputation; a fame and reputation, too, which have often descended
to the remotest posterity. | |
VI.III.27 |
|
Great success in the world, great authority over the sentiments
and opinions of mankind, have very seldom been acquired without
some degree of this excessive self-admiration. The most splendid
characters, the men who have performed the most illustrious
actions, who have brought about the greatest revolutions, both in
the situations and opinions of mankind; the most successful
warriors, the greatest statesmen and legislators, the eloquent
founders and leaders of the most numerous and most successful
sects and parties; have many of them been, not more distinguished
for their very great merit, than for a degree of presumption and
self-admiration altogether disproportioned even to that very great
merit. This presumption was, perhaps, necessary, not only to
prompt them to undertakings which a more sober mind would never
have thought of, but to command the submission and obedience of
their followers to support them in such undertakings. When crowned
with success, accordingly, this presumption has often betrayed
them into a vanity that approached almost to insanity and folly.
Alexander the Great appears, not only to have wished that other
people should think him a God, but to have been at least very well
disposed to fancy himself such. Upon his death-bed, the most
ungodlike of all situations, he requested of his friends that, to
the respectable list of Deities, into which himself had long
before been inserted, his old mother Olympia might likewise have
the honour of being added. Amidst the respectful admiration of his
followers and disciples, amidst the universal applause of the
public, after the oracle, which probably had followed the voice of
that applause, had pronounced him the wisest of men, the great
wisdom of Socrates, though it did not suffer him to fancy himself
a God, yet was not great enough to hinder him from fancying that
he had secret and frequent intimations from some invisible and
divine Being. The sound head of Caesar was not so perfectly sound
as to hinder him from being much pleased with his divine genealogy
from the goddess Venus; and, before the temple of this pretended
great-grandmother, to receive, without rising from his seat, the
Roman Senate, when that illustrious body came to present him with
some decrees conferring upon him the most extravagant honours.
This insolence, joined to some other acts of an almost childish
vanity, little to be expected from an understanding at once so
very acute and comprehensive, seems, by exasperating the public
jealousy, to have emboldened his assassins, and to have hastened
the execution of their conspiracy. The religion and manners of
modern times give our great men little encouragement to fancy
themselves either Gods or even Prophets. Success, however, joined
to great popular favour, has often so far turned the heads of the
greatest of them, as to make them ascribe to themselves both an
importance and an ability much beyond what they really possessed;
and, by this presumption, to precipitate themselves into many rash
and sometimes ruinous adventures. It is a characteristic almost
peculiar to the great Duke of Marlborough, that ten years of such
uninterrupted and such splendid success as scarce any other
general could boast of, never betrayed him into a single rash
action, scarce into a single rash word or expression. The same
temperate coolness and self-command cannot, I think, be ascribed
to any other great warrior of later times; not to Prince Eugene,
not to the late King of Prussia, not to the great Prince of Conde,
not even to Gustavus Adolphus. Turrenne seems to have approached
the nearest to it; but several different transactions of his life
sufficiently demonstrate that it was in him by no means so perfect
as in the great Duke of Marlborough. | |
VI.III.28 |
|
In the humble project of private life, as well as in the
ambitious and proud pursuit of high stations, great abilities and
successful enterprise, in the beginning, have frequently
encouraged to undertakings which necessarily led to bankruptcy and
ruin in the end. | |
VI.III.29 |
|
The esteem and admiration which every impartial spectator
conceives for the real merit of those spirited, magnanimous, and
high-minded persons, as it is a just and well-founded sentiment,
so it is a steady and permanent one, and altogether independent of
their good or bad fortune. It is otherwise with that admiration
which he is apt to conceive for their excessive self-estimation
and presumption. While they are successful, indeed, he is often
perfectly conquered and overborne by them. Success covers from his
eyes, not only the great imprudence, but frequently the great
injustice of their enterprises; and, far from blaming this
defective part of their character, he often views it with the most
enthusiastic admiration. When they are unfortunate, however,
things change their colours and their names. What was before
heroic magnanimity, resumes its proper appellation of extravagant
rashness and folly; and the blackness of that avidity and
injustice, which was before hid under the splendour of prosperity,
comes full into view, and blots the whole lustre of their
enterprise. Had Caesar, instead of gaining, lost the battle of
Pharsalia, his character would, at this hour, have ranked a little
above that of Catiline, and the weakest man would have viewed his
enterprise against the laws of his country in blacker colours,
than, perhaps, even Cato, with all the animosity of a party-man,
ever viewed it at the time. His real merit, the justness of his
taste, the simplicity and elegance of his writings, the propriety
of his eloquence, his skill in war, his resources in distress, his
cool and sedate judgment in danger, his faithful attachment to his
friends, his unexampled generosity to his enemies, would all have
been acknowledged; as the real merit of Catiline, who had many
great qualities, is acknowledged at this day. But the insolence
and injustice of his all-grasping ambition would have darkened and
extinguished the glory of all that real merit. Fortune has in
this, as well as in some other respects already mentioned, great
influence over the moral sentiments of mankind, and, according as
she is either favourable or adverse, can render the same character
the object, either of general love and admiration, or of universal
hatred and contempt. This great disorder in our moral sentiments
is by no means, however, without its utility; and we may on this,
as well as on many other occasions, admire the wisdom of God even
in the weakness and folly of man. Our admiration of success is
founded upon the same principle with our respect for wealth and
greatness, and is equally necessary for establishing the
distinction of ranks and the order of society. By this admiration
of success we are taught to submit more easily to those superiors,
whom the course of human affairs may assign to us; to regard with
reverence, and sometimes even with a sort of respectful affection,
that fortunate violence which we are no longer capable of
resisting; not only the violence of such splendid characters as
those of a Caesar or an Alexander, but often that of the most
brutal and savage barbarians, of an Attila, a Gengis, or a
Tamerlane. To all such mighty conquerors the great mob of mankind
are naturally disposed to look up with a wondering, though, no
doubt, with a very weak and foolish admiration. By this
admiration, however, they are taught to acquiesce with less
reluctance under that government which an irresistible force
imposes upon them, and from which no reluctance could deliver
them. | |
VI.III.30 |
|
Though in prosperity, however, the man of excessive
self-estimation may sometimes appear to have some advantage over
the man of correct and modest virtue; though the applause of the
multitude, and of those who see them both only at a distance, is
often much louder in favour of the one than it ever is in favour
of the other; yet, all things fairly computed, the real balance of
advantage is, perhaps in all cases, greatly in favour of the
latter and against the former. The man who neither ascribes to
himself, nor wishes that other people should ascribe to him, any
other merit besides that which really belongs to him, fears no
humiliation, dreads no detection; but rests contented and secure
upon the genuine truth and solidity of his own character. His
admirers may neither be very numerous nor very loud in their
applauses; but the wisest man who sees him the nearest and who
knows him the best, admires him the most. To a real wise man the
judicious and well-weighed approbation of a single wise man, gives
more heartfelt satisfaction than all the noisy applauses of ten
thousand ignorant though enthusiastic admirers. He may say with
Parmenides, who, upon reading a philosophical discourse before a
public assembly at Athens, and observing, that, except Plato, the
whole company had left him, continued, notwithstanding, to read
on, and said that Plato alone was audience sufficient for him.
| |
VI.III.31 |
|
It is otherwise with the man of excessive self-estimation. The
wise men who see him the nearest, admire him the least. Amidst the
intoxication of prosperity, their sober and just esteem falls so
far short of the extravagance of his own self-admiration, that he
regards it as mere malignity and envy. He suspects his best
friends. Their company becomes offensive to him. He drives them
from his presence, and often rewards their services, not only with
ingratitude, but with cruelty and injustice. He abandons his
confidence to flatterers and traitors, who pretend to idolize his
vanity and presumption; and that character which in the beginning,
though in some respects defective, was, upon the whole, both
amiable and respectable, becomes contemptible and odious in the
end. Amidst the intoxication of prosperity, Alexander killed
Clytus, for having preferred the exploits of his father Philip to
his own; put Calisthenes to death in torture, for having refused
to adore him in the Persian manner; and murdered the great friend
of his father, the venerable Parmenio, after having, upon the most
groundless suspicions, sent first to the torture and afterwards to
the scaffold the only remaining son of that old man, the rest
having all before died in his own service. This was that Parmenio
of whom Philip used to say, that the Athenians were very fortunate
who could find ten generals every year, while he himself, in the
whole course of his life, could never find one but Parmenio. It
was upon the vigilance and attention of this Parmenio that he
reposed at all times with confidence and security, and, in his
hours of mirth and jollity, used to say, Let us drink, my friends,
we may do it with safety, for Parmenio never drinks. It was this
same Parmenio, with whose presence and counsel, it had been said,
Alexander had gained all his victories; and without whose presence
and counsel, he had never gained a single victory. The humble,
admiring, and flattering friends, whom Alexander left in power and
authority behind him, divided his empire among themselves, and
after having thus robbed his family and kindred of their
inheritance, put, one after another, every single surviving
individual of them, whether male or female, to death.
| |
VI.III.32 |
|
We frequently, not only pardon, but thoroughly enter into and
sympathize with the excessive self-estimation of those splendid
characters in which we observe a great and distinguished
superiority above the common level of mankind. We call them
spirited, magnanimous, and high-minded; words which all involve in
their meaning a considerable degree of praise and admiration. But
we cannot enter into and sympathize with the excessive
self-estimation of those characters in which we can discern no
such distinguished superiority. We are disgusted and revolted by
it; and it is with some difficulty that we can either pardon or
suffer it: We call it pride or vanity; two words, of which the
latter always, and the former for the most part, involve in their
meaning a considerable degree of blame.
| |
VI.III.33 |
|
Those two vices, however, though resembling, in some respects,
as being both modifications of excessive self-estimation, are yet,
in many respects, very different from one another.
| |
VI.III.34 |
|
The proud man is sincere, and, in the bottom of his heart, is
convinced of his own superiority; though it may sometimes be
difficult to guess upon what that conviction is founded. He wishes
you to view him in no other light than that in which, when he
places himself in your situation, he really views himself. He
demands no more of you than, what he thinks, justice. If you
appear not to respect him as he respects himself, he is more
offended than mortified, and feels the same indignant resentment
as if he had suffered a real injury. He does not even then,
however, deign to explain the grounds of his own pretensions. He
disdains to court your esteem. He affects even to despise it, and
endeavours to maintain his assumed station, not so much by making
you sensible of his superiority, as of your own meanness. He seems
to wish, not so much to excite your esteem for himself as
to mortify that for yourself. | |
VI.III.35 |
|
The vain man is not sincere, and, in the bottom of his heart,
is very seldom convinced of that superiority which he wishes you
to ascribe to him. He wishes you to view him in much more splendid
colours than those in which, when he places himself in your
situation, and supposes you to know all that he knows, he can
really view himself. When you appear to view him, therefore, in
different colours, perhaps in his proper colours, he is much more
mortified than offended. The grounds of his claim to that
character which he wishes you to ascribe to him, he takes every
opportunity of displaying, both by the most ostentatious and
unnecessary exhibition of the good qualities and accomplishments
which he possesses in some tolerable degree, and sometimes even by
false pretensions to those which he either possesses in no degree,
or in so very slender a degree that he may well enough be said to
possess them in no degree. Far from despising your esteem, he
courts it with the most anxious assiduity. Far from wishing to
mortify your self-estimation, he is happy to cherish it, in hopes
that in return you will cherish his own. He flatters in order to
be flattered. He studies to please, and endeavours to bribe you
into a good opinion of him by politeness and complaisance, and
sometimes even by real and essential good offices, though often
displayed, perhaps, with unnecessary ostentation.
| |
VI.III.36 |
|
The vain man sees the respect which is paid to rank and
fortune, and wishes to usurp this respect, as well as that for
talents and virtues. His dress, his equipage, his way of living,
accordingly, all announce both a higher rank and a greater fortune
than really belong to him; and in order to support this foolish
imposition for a few years in the beginning of his life, he often
reduces himself to poverty and distress long before the end of it.
As long as he can continue his expence, however, his vanity is
delighted with viewing himself, not in the light in which you
would view him if you knew all that he knows; but in that in
which, he imagines, he has, by his own address, induced you
actually to view him. Of all the illusions of vanity this is,
perhaps, the most common. Obscure strangers who visit foreign
countries, or who, from a remote province, come to visit, for a
short time, the capital of their own country, most frequently
attempt to practise it. The folly of the attempt, though always
very great and most unworthy of a man of sense, may not be
altogether so great upon such as upon most other occasions. If
their stay is short, they may escape any disgraceful detection;
and, after indulging their vanity for a few months or a few years,
they may return to their own homes, and repair, by future
parsimony, the waste of their past profusion.
| |
VI.III.37 |
|
The proud man can very seldom be accused of this folly. His
sense of his own dignity renders him careful to preserve his
independency, and, when his fortune happens not to be large,
though he wishes to be decent, he studies to be frugal and
attentive in all his expences. The ostentatious expence of the
vain man is highly offensive to him. It outshines, perhaps, his
own. It provokes his indignation as an insolent assumption of a
rank which is by no means due; and he never talks of it without
loading it with the harshest and severest reproaches.
| |
VI.III.38 |
|
The proud man does not always feel himself at his ease in the
company of his equals, and still less in that of his superiors. He
cannot lay down his lofty pretensions, and the countenance and
conversation of such company overawe him so much that he dare not
display them. He has recourse to humbler company, for which he has
little respect, which he would not willingly chuse; and which is
by no means agreeable to him; that of his inferiors, his
flatterers, and dependants. He seldom visits his superiors, or, if
he does, it is rather to show that he is entitled to live in such
company, than for any real satisfaction that he enjoys in it. It
is as Lord Clarendon says of the Earl of Arundel, that he
sometimes went to court, because he could there only find a
greater man than himself; but that he went very seldom, because he
found there a greater man than himself.
| |
VI.III.39 |
|
It is quite otherwise with the vain man. He courts the company
of his superiors as much as the proud man shuns it. Their
splendour, he seems to think, reflects a splendour upon those who
are much about them. He haunts the courts of kings and the levees
of ministers, and gives himself the air of being a candidate for
fortune and preferment, when in reality he possesses the much more
precious happiness, if he knew how to enjoy it, of not being one.
He is fond of being admitted to the tables of the great, and still
more fond of magnifying to other people the familiarity with which
he is honoured there. He associates himself, as much as he can,
with fashionable people, with those who are supposed to direct the
public opinion, with the witty, with the learned, with the
popular; and he shuns the company of his best friends whenever the
very uncertain current of public favour happens to run in any
respect against them. With the people to whom he wishes to
recommend himself, he is not always very delicate about the means
which he employs for that purpose; unnecessary ostentation,
groundless pretensions, constant assentation, frequently flattery,
though for the most part a pleasant and a sprightly flattery, and
very seldom the gross and fulsome flattery of a parasite. The
proud man, on the contrary, never flatters, and is frequently
scarce civil to any body. | |
VI.III.40 |
|
Notwithstanding all its groundless pretensions, however, vanity
is almost always a sprightly and a gay, and very often a
good-natured passion. Pride is always a grave, a sullen, and a
severe one. Even the falsehoods of the vain man are all innocent
falsehoods, meant to raise himself, not to lower other people. To
do the proud man justice, he very seldom stoops to the baseness of
falsehood. When he does, however, his falsehoods are by no means
so innocent. They are all mischievous, and meant to lower other
people. He is full of indignation at the unjust superiority, as he
thinks it, which is given to them. He views them with malignity
and envy, and, in talking of them, often endeavours, as much as he
can, to extenuate and lessen whatever are the grounds upon which
their superiority is supposed to be founded. Whatever tales are
circulated to their disadvantage, though he seldom forges them
himself, yet he often takes pleasure in believing them, is by no
means unwilling to repeat them, and even sometimes with some
degree of exaggeration. The worst falsehoods of vanity are all
what we call white lies: those of pride, whenever it condescends
to falsehood, are all of the opposite complexion.
| |
VI.III.41 |
|
Our dislike to pride and vanity generally disposes us to rank
the persons whom we accuse of those vices rather below than above
the common level. In this judgment, however, I think, we are most
frequently in the wrong, and that both the proud and the vain man
are often (perhaps for the most part) a good deal above it; though
not near so much as either the one really thinks himself, or as
the other wishes you to think him. If we compare them with their
own pretensions, they may appear the just objects of contempt. But
when we compare them with what the greater part of their rivals
and competitors really are, they may appear quite otherwise, and
very much above the common level. Where there is this real
superiority, pride is frequently attended with many respectable
virtues; with truth, with integrity, with a high sense of honour,
with cordial and steady friendship, with the most inflexible
firmness and resolution. Vanity, with many amiable ones; with
humanity, with politeness, with a desire to oblige in all little
matters, and sometimes with a real generosity in great ones; a
generosity, however, which it often wishes to display in the most
splendid colours that it can. By their rivals and enemies, the
French, in the last century, were accused of vanity; the
Spaniards, of pride; and foreign nations were disposed to consider
the one as the more amiable; the other, as the more respectable
people. | |
VI.III.42 |
|
The words vain and vanity are never taken in a
good sense. We sometimes say of a man, when we are talking of him
in good humour, that he is the better for his vanity, or that his
vanity is more diverting than offensive; but we still consider it
as a foible and a ridicule in his character.
| |
VI.III.43 |
|
The words proud and pride, on the contrary, are
sometimes taken in a good sense. We frequently say of a man, that
he is too proud, or that he has too much noble pride, ever to
suffer himself to do a mean thing. Pride is, in this case,
confounded with magnanimity. Aristotle, a Philosopher who
certainly knew the world, in drawing the character of the
magnanimous man, paints him with many features which, in the two
last centuries, were commonly ascribed to the Spanish character:
that he was deliberate in all his resolutions; slow, and even
tardy, in all his actions; that his voice was grave, his speech
deliberate, his step and motion slow; that he appeared indolent
and even slothful, not at all disposed to bustle about little
matters, but to act with the most determined and vigorous
resolution upon all great and illustrious occasions; that he was
not a lover of danger, or forward to expose himself to little
dangers, but to great dangers; and that, when he exposed himself
to danger, he was altogether regardless of his life.
| |
VI.III.44 |
|
The proud man is commonly too well contented with himself to
think that his character requires any amendment. The man who feels
himself all-perfect, naturally enough despises all further
improvement. His self-sufficiency and absurd conceit of his own
superiority, commonly attend him from his youth to his most
advanced age; and he dies, as Hamlet says, with all his sins upon
his head, unanointed, unanealed. | |
VI.III.45 |
|
It is frequently otherwise with the vain man. The desire of the
esteem and admiration of other people, when for qualities and
talents which are the natural and proper objects of esteem and
admiration, is the real love of true glory; a passion which, if
not the very best passion of human nature, is certainly one of the
best. Vanity is very frequently no more than an attempt
prematurely to usurp that glory before it is due. Though your son,
under five-and-twenty years of age, should be but a coxcomb; do
not, upon that account, despair of his becoming, before he is
forty, a very wise and worthy man, and a real proficient in all
those talents and virtues to which, at present, he may only be an
ostentatious and empty pretender. The great secret of education is
to direct vanity to proper objects. Never suffer him to value
himself upon trivial accomplishments. But do not always discourage
his pretensions to those that are of real importance. He would not
pretend to them if he did not earnestly desire to possess them.
encourage this desire; afford him every means to facilitate the
acquisition; and do not take too much offence, although he should
sometimes assume the air of having attained it a little before the
time. | |
VI.III.46 |
|
Such, I say, are the distinguishing characteristics of pride
and vanity, when each of them acts according to its proper
character. But the proud man is often vain; and the vain man is
often proud. Nothing can be more natural than that the man, who
thinks much more highly of himself than he deserves, should wish
that other people should think still more highly of him: or that
the man, who wishes that other people should think more highly of
him than he thinks of himself, should, at the same time, think
much more highly of himself than he deserves. Those two vices
being frequently in the same character, the characteristics of
both are necessarily confounded; and we sometimes find the
superficial and impertinent ostentation of vanity joined to the
most malignant and derisive insolence of pride. We are sometimes,
upon that account, at a loss how to rank a particular character,
or whether to place it among the proud or among the vain.
| |
VI.III.47 |
|
Men of merit considerably
above the common level, sometimes under-rate as well as over-rate
themselves. Such characters, though not very dignified, are often,
in private society, far from being disagreeable. His companions
all feel themselves much at their ease in the society of a man so
perfectly modest and unassuming. If those companions, however,
have not both more discernment and more generosity than ordinary,
though they may have some kindness for him, they have seldom much
respect; and the warmth of their kindness is very seldom
sufficient to compensate the coldness of their respect. Men of no
more than ordinary discernment never rate any person higher than
he appears to rate himself. He seems doubtful himself, they say,
whether he is perfectly fit for such a situation or such an
office; and immediately give the preference to some impudent
blockhead who entertains no doubt about his own qualifications.
Though they should have discernment, yet, if they want generosity,
they never fail to take advantage of his simplicity, and to assume
over him an impertinent superiority which they are by no means
entitled to. His good-nature may enable him to bear this for some
time; but he grows weary at last, and frequently when it is too
late, and when that rank, which he ought to have assumed, is lost
irrecoverably, and usurped, in consequence of his own
backwardness, by some of his more forward, though much less
meritorious companions. A man of this character must have been
very fortunate in the early choice of his companions, if, in going
through the world, he meets always with fair justice, even from
those whom, from his own past kindness, he might have some reason
to consider as his best friends; and a youth, too unassuming and
too unambitious, is frequently followed by an insignificant,
complaining, and discontented old age. | |
VI.III.48 |
|
Those unfortunate persons whom nature has formed a good deal
below the common level, seem sometimes to rate themselves still
more below it than they really are. This humility appears
sometimes to sink them into idiotism. Whoever has taken the
trouble to examine idiots with attention, will find that, in many
of them, the faculties of the understanding are by no means weaker
than in several other people, who, though acknowledged to be dull
and stupid, are not, by any body, accounted idiots. Many idiots,
with no more than ordinary education, have been taught to read,
write, and account tolerably well. Many persons, never accounted
idiots, notwithstanding the most careful education, and
notwithstanding that, in their advanced age, they have had spirit
enough to attempt to learn what their early education had not
taught them, have never been able to acquire, in any tolerable
degree, any one of those three accomplishments. By an instinct of
pride, however, they set themselves upon a level with their equals
in age and situation; and, with courage and firmness, maintain
their proper station among their companions. By an opposite
instinct, the idiot feels himself below every company into which
you can introduce him. Ill-usage, to which he is extremely liable,
is capable of throwing him into the most violent fits of rage and
fury. But no good usage, no kindness or indulgence, can ever raise
him to converse with you as your equal. If you can bring him to
converse with you at all, however, you will frequently find his
answers sufficiently pertinent, and even sensible. But they are
always stamped with a distinct consciousness of his own great
inferiority. He seems to shrink and, as it were, to retire from
your look and conversation; and to feel, when he places himself in
your situation, that, notwithstanding your apparent condescension,
you cannot help considering him as immensely below you. Some
idiots, perhaps the greater part, seem to be so, chiefly or
altogether, from a certain numbness or torpidity in the faculties
of the understanding. But there are others, in whom those
faculties do not appear more torpid or benumbed than in many other
people who are not accounted idiots. But that instinct of pride,
necessary to support them upon an equality with their brethren,
seems totally wanting in the former and not in the latter.
| |
VI.III.49 |
|
That degree of self-estimation, therefore, which contributes
most to the happiness and contentment of the person himself, seems
likewise most agreeable to the impartial spectator. The man who
esteems himself as he ought, and no more than he ought, seldom
fails to obtain from other people all the esteem that he himself
thinks due. He desires no more than is due to him, and he rests
upon it with complete satisfaction. | |
VI.III.50 |
|
The proud and the vain man, on the contrary, are constantly
dissatisfied. The one is tormented with indignation at the unjust
superiority, as he thinks it, of other people. The other is in
continual dread of the shame which, he foresees, would attend upon
the detection of his groundless pretensions. Even the extravagant
pretensions of the man of real magnanimity, though, when supported
by splendid abilities and virtues, and, above all, by good
fortune, they impose upon the multitude, whose applauses he little
regards, do not impose upon those wise men whose approbation he
can only value, and whose esteem he is most anxious to acquire. He
feels that they see through, and suspects that they despise his
excessive presumption; and he often suffers the cruel misfortune
of becoming, first the jealous and secret, and at last the open,
furious, and vindictive enemy of those very persons, whose
friendship it would have given him the greatest happiness to enjoy
with unsuspicious security. | |
VI.III.51 |
|
Though our dislike to the proud and the vain often disposes us
to rank them rather below than above their proper station, yet,
unless we are provoked by some particular and personal
impertinence, we very seldom venture to use them ill. In common
cases, we endeavour, for our own ease, rather to acquiesce, and,
as well as we can, to accommodate ourselves to their folly. But,
to the man who under-rates himself, unless we have both more
discernment and more generosity than belong to the greater part of
men, we seldom fail to do, at least, all the injustice which he
does to himself, and frequently a great deal more. He is not only
more unhappy in his own feelings than either the proud or the
vain, but he is much more liable to every sort of ill-usage from
other people. In almost all cases, it is better to be a little too
proud, than, in any respect, too humble; and, in the sentiment of
self-estimation, some degree of excess seems, both to the person
and to the impartial spectator, to be less disagreeable than any
degree of defect. | |
VI.III.52 |
|
In this, therefore, as well as in every other emotion, passion,
and habit, the degree that is most agreeable to the impartial
spectator is likewise most agreeable to the person himself; and
according as either the excess or the defect is least offensive to
the former, so, either the one or the other is in proportion least
disagreeable to the latter. | |
VI.III.53 |
|
- Conclusion of the Sixth Part
| |
|
Concern
for our own happiness recommends to us the virtue of prudence:
concern for that of other people, the virtues of justice and
beneficence; of which, the one restrains us from hurting, the
other prompts us to promote that happiness. Independent of any
regard either to what are, or to what ought to be, or to what upon
a certain condition would be, the sentiments of other people, the
first of those three virtues is originally recommended to us by
our selfish, the other two by our benevolent affections. Regard to
the sentiments of other people, however, comes afterwards both to
enforce and to direct the practice of all those virtues; and no
man during, either the whole of his life, or that of any
considerable part of it, ever trod steadily and uniformly in the
paths of prudence, of justice, or of proper beneficence, whose
conduct was not principally directed by a regard to the sentiments
of the supposed impartial spectator, of the great inmate of the
breast, the great judge and arbiter of conduct. If in the course
of the day we have swerved in any respect from the rules which he
prescribes to us; if we have either exceeded or relaxed in our
frugality; if we have either exceeded or relaxed in our industry;
if, through passion or inadvertency, we have hurt in any respect
the interest or happiness of our neighbour; if we have neglected a
plain and proper opportunity of promoting that interest and
happiness; it is this inmate who, in the evening, calls us to an
account for all those omissions and violations, and his reproaches
often make us blush inwardly both for our folly and inattention to
our own happiness, and for our still greater indifference and
inattention, perhaps, to that of other people.
| |
VI.III.54 |
|
But though the virtues of prudence, justice, and beneficence,
may, upon different occasions, be recommended to us almost equally
by two different principles; those of self-command are, upon most
occasions, principally and almost entirely recommended to us by
one; by the sense of propriety, by regard to the sentiments of the
supposed impartial spectator. Without the restraint which this
principle imposes, every passion would, upon most occasions, rush
headlong, if I may say so, to its own gratification. Anger would
follow the suggestions of its own fury; fear those of its own
violent agitations. Regard to no time or place would induce vanity
to refrain from the loudest and most impertinent ostentation; or
voluptuousness from the most open, indecent, and scandalous
indulgence. Respect for what are, or for what ought to be, or for
what upon a certain condition would be, the sentiments of other
people, is the sole principle which, upon most occasions, overawes
all those mutinous and turbulent passions into that tone and
temper which the impartial spectator can enter into and sympathize
with. | |
VI.III.55 |
|
Upon some occasions, indeed, those passions are restrained, not
so much by a sense of their impropriety, as by prudential
considerations of the bad consequences which might follow from
their indulgence. In such cases, the passions, though restrained,
are not always subdued, but often remain lurking in the breast
with all their original fury. The man whose anger is restrained by
fear, does not always lay aside his anger, but only reserves its
gratification for a more safe opportunity. But the man who, in
relating to some other person the injury which has been done to
him, feels at once the fury of his passion cooled and becalmed by
sympathy with the more moderate sentiments of his companion, who
at once adopts those more moderate sentiments, and comes to view
that injury, not in the black and atrocious colours in which he
had originally beheld it, but in the much milder and fairer light
in which his companion naturally views it; not only restrains, but
in some measure subdues, his anger. The passion becomes really
less than it was before, and less capable of exciting him to the
violent and bloody revenge which at first, perhaps, he might have
thought of inflicting. | |
VI.III.56 |
|
Those passions which are restrained by the sense of propriety,
are all in some degree moderated and subdued by it. But those
which are restrained only by prudential considerations of any
kind, are, on the contrary, frequently inflamed by the restraint,
and sometimes (long after the provocation given, and when nobody
is thinking about it) burst out absurdly and unexpectedly, and
with tenfold fury and violence. | |
VI.III.57 |
|
Anger, however, as well as every other passion, may, upon many
occasions, be very properly restrained by prudential
considerations. Some exertion of manhood and self-command is even
necessary for this sort of restraint; and the impartial spectator
may sometimes view it with that sort of cold esteem due to that
species of conduct which he considers as a mere matter of vulgar
prudence; but never with that affectionate admiration with which
he surveys the same passions, when, by the sense of propriety,
they are moderated and subdued to what he himself can readily
enter into. In the former species of restraint, he may frequently
discern some degree of propriety, and, if you will, even of
virtue; but it is a propriety and virtue of a much inferior order
to those which he always feels with transport and admiration in
the latter. | |
VI.III.58 |
|
The virtues of prudence, justice, and beneficence, have no
tendency to produce any but the most agreeable effects. Regard to
those effects, as it originally recommends them to the actor, so
does it afterwards to the impartial spectator. In our approbation
of the character of the prudent man, we feel, with peculiar
complacency, the security which he must enjoy while he walks under
the safeguard of that sedate and deliberate virtue. In our
approbation of the character of the just man, we feel, with equal
complacency, the security which all those connected with him,
whether in neighbourhood, society, or business, must derive from
his scrupulous anxiety never either to hurt or offend. In our
approbation of the character of the beneficent man, we enter into
the gratitude of all those who are within the sphere of his good
offices, and conceive with them the highest sense of his merit. In
our approbation of all those virtues, our sense of their agreeable
effects, of their utility, either to the person who exercises
them, or to some other persons, joins with our sense of their
propriety, and constitutes always a considerable, frequently the
greater part of that approbation. | |
VI.III.59 |
|
But in our approbation of the virtues of self-command,
complacency with their effects sometimes constitutes no part, and
frequently but a small part, of that approbation. Those effects
may sometimes be agreeable, and sometimes disagreeable; and though
our approbation is no doubt stronger in the former case, it is by
no means altogether destroyed in the latter. The most heroic
valour may be employed indifferently in the cause either of
justice or of injustice; and though it is no doubt much more loved
and admired in the former case, it still appears a great and
respectable quality even in the latter. In that, and in all the
other virtues of self-command, the splendid and dazzling quality
seems always to be the greatness and steadiness of the exertion,
and the strong sense of propriety which is necessary in order to
make and to maintain that exertion. The effects are too often but
too little regarded. | |
VI.III.60 |
|
|
|
7. Of Systems of Moral Philosophy
|
Section I - Of the Questions which ought to be examined in
a Theory of Moral Sentiments
| |
|
If we
examine the most celebrated and remarkable of the different
theories which have been given concerning the nature and origin of
our moral sentiments, we shall find that almost all of them
coincide with some part or other of that which I have been
endeavouring to give an account of; and that if every thing which
has already been said be fully considered, we shall be at no loss
to explain what was the view or aspect of nature which led each
particular author to form his particular system. From some one or
other of those principles which I have been endeavouring to
unfold, every system of morality that ever had any reputation in
the world has, perhaps, ultimately been derived. As they are all
of them, in this respect, founded upon natural principles, they
are all of them in some measure in the right. But as many of them
are derived from a partial and imperfect view of nature, there are
many of them too in some respects in the wrong.
| |
VII.I.1 |
|
In treating of the principles of morals there are two questions
to be considered. First, wherein does virtue consist? Or what is
the tone of temper, and tenour of conduct, which constitutes the
excellent and praise-worthy character, the character which is the
natural object of esteem, honour, and approbation? And, secondly,
by what power or faculty in the mind is it, that this character,
whatever it be, is recommended. to us? Or in other words, how and
by what means does it come to pass, that the mind prefers one
tenour of conduct to another, denominates the one right and the
other wrong; considers the one as the object of approbation,
honour, and reward, and the other of blame, censure, and
punishment? | |
VII.I.2 |
|
We examine the first question when we consider whether virtue
consists in benevolence, as Dr. Hutcheson imagines; or in acting
suitably to the different relations we stand in, as Dr. Clarke
supposes; or in the wise and prudent pursuit of our own real and
solid happiness, as has been the opinion of others.
| |
VII.I.3 |
|
We examine the second question, when we consider, whether the
virtuous character, whatever it consists in, be recommended to us
by self-love, which makes us perceive that this character, both in
ourselves and others, tends most to promote our own private
interest; or by reason, which points out to us the difference
between one character and another, in the same manner as it does
that between truth and falsehood; or by a peculiar power of
perception, called a moral sense, which this virtuous character
gratifies and pleases, as the contrary disgusts and displeases it;
or last of all, by some other principle in human nature, such as a
modification of sympathy, or the like. | |
VII.I.4 |
|
I shall begin with considering the systems which have been
formed concerning the first of these questions, and shall proceed
afterwards to examine those concerning the second.
| |
VII.I.5 |
|
Section II - Of the different Accounts which have been
given of the Nature of Virtue
| |
|
The
different accounts which have been given of the nature of virtue,
or of the temper of mind which constitutes the excellent and
praise-worthy character, may be reduced to three different
classes. According to some, the virtuous temper of mind does not
consist in any one species of affections, but in the proper
government and direction of all our affections, which may be
either virtuous or vicious according to the objects which they
pursue, and the degree of vehemence with which they pursue them.
According to these authors, therefore, virtue consists in
propriety. | |
VII.II.1 |
|
According to others, virtue consists in the judicious pursuit
of our own private interest and happiness, or in the proper
government and direction of those selfish affections which aim
solely at this end. In the opinion of these authors, therefore,
virtue consists in prudence. | |
VII.II.2 |
|
Another set of authors make virtue consist in those affections
only which aim at the happiness of others, not in those which aim
at our own. According to them, therefore, disinterested
benevolence is the only motive which can stamp upon any action the
character of virtue. | |
VII.II.3 |
|
The character of virtue, it is evident, must either be ascribed
indifferently to all our affections, when under proper government
and direction; or it must be confined to some one class or
division of them. The great division of our affections is into the
selfish and the benevolent. If the character of virtue, therefore,
cannot be ascribed indifferently to all our affections, when under
proper government and direction, it must be confined either to
those which aim directly at our own private happiness, or to those
which aim directly at that of others. If virtue, therefore, does
not consist in propriety, it must consist either in prudence or in
benevolence. Besides these three, it is scarce possible to imagine
that any other account can be given of the nature of virtue. I
shall endeavour to show hereafter how all the other accounts,
which are seemingly different from any of these, coincide at
bottom with some one or other of them. | |
VII.II.4 |
|
Chapter I - Of those Systems which make Virtue consist in Propriety
| |
|
According to Plato, to Aristotle, and to Zeno, virtue consists
in the propriety of conduct, or in the suitableness of the
affection from which we act to the object which excites it.
| |
VII.II.5 |
|
I. In the system of Plato the soul is considered as something
like a little state or republic, composed of three different
faculties or orders. | |
VII.II.6 |
|
The first is the judging faculty, the faculty which determines
not only what are the proper means for attaining any end, but also
what ends are fit to be pursued, and what degree of relative value
we ought to put upon each. This faculty Plato called, as it is
very properly called, reason, and considered it as what had a
right to be the governing principle of the whole. Under this
appellation, it is evident, he comprehended not only that faculty
by which we judge of truth and falsehood, but that by which we
judge of the propriety or impropriety of desires and affections.
| |
VII.II.7 |
|
The different passions and appetites, the natural subjects of
this ruling principle, but which are so apt to rebel against their
master, he reduced to two different classes or orders. The first
consisted of those passions, which are founded in pride and
resentment, or in what the schoolmen called the irascible part of
the soul; ambition, animosity, the love of honour, and the dread
of shame, the desire of victory, superiority, and revenge; all
those passions, in short, which are supposed either to rise from,
or to denote what, by a metaphor in our language, we commonly call
spirit or natural fire. The second consisted of those passions
which are founded in the love of pleasure, or in what the
schoolmen called the concupiscible part of the soul. It
comprehended all the appetites of the body, the love of ease and
security, and of all sensual gratifications.
| |
VII.II.8 |
|
It rarely happens that we break in upon that plan of conduct,
which the governing principle prescribes, and which in all our
cool hours we had laid down to ourselves as what was most proper
for us to pursue, but when prompted by one or other of those two
different sets of passions; either by ungovernable ambition and
resentment, or by the importunate solicitations of present ease
and pleasure. But though these two orders of passions are so apt
to mislead us, they are still considered as necessary parts of
human nature: the first having been given to defend us against
injuries, to assert our rank and dignity in the world, to make us
aim at what is noble and honourable, and to make us distinguish
those who act in the same manner; the second, to provide for the
support and necessities of the body. | |
VII.II.9 |
|
In the strength, acuteness, and perfection of the governing
principle was placed the essential virtue of prudence, which,
according to Plato, consisted in a just and clear discernment,
founded upon general and scientific ideas, of the ends which were
proper to be pursued, and of the means which were proper for
attaining them. | |
VII.II.10 |
|
When the first set of passions, those of the irascible part of
the soul, had that degree of strength and firmness, which enabled
them, under the direction of reason, to despise all dangers in the
pursuit of what was honourable and noble; it constituted the
virtue of fortitude and magnanimity. This order of passions,
according to this system, was of a more generous and noble nature
than the other. They were considered upon many occasions as the
auxiliaries of reason, to check and restrain the inferior and
brutal appetites. We are often angry at ourselves, it was
observed, we often become the objects of our own resentment and
indignation, when the love of pleasure prompts to do what we
disapprove of; and the irascible part of our nature is in this
manner called in to assist the rational against the concupiscible.
| |
VII.II.11 |
|
When all those three different parts of our nature were in
perfect concord with one another, when neither the irascible nor
concupiscible passions ever aimed at any gratification which
reason did not approve of, and when reason never commanded any
thing, but what these of their own accord were willing to perform:
this happy composure, this perfect and complete harmony of soul,
constituted that virtue which in their language is expressed by a
word which we commonly translate temperance, but which might more
properly be translated good temper, or sobriety and moderation of
mind. | |
VII.II.12 |
|
Justice, the last and greatest of the four cardinal virtues,
took place, according to this system, when each of those three
faculties of the mind confined itself to its proper office,
without attempting to encroach upon that of any other; when reason
directed and passion obeyed, and when each passion performed its
proper duty, and exerted itself towards its proper object easily
and without reluctance, and with that degree of force and energy,
which was suitable to the value of what it pursued. In this
consisted that complete virtue, that perfect propriety of conduct,
which Plato, after some of the ancient Pythagoreans, denominated
Justice. | |
VII.II.13 |
|
The word, it is to be observed, which expresses justice in the
Greek language, has several different meanings; and as the
correspondent word in all other languages, so far as I know, has
the same, there must be some natural affinity among those various
significations. In one sense we are said to do justice to our
neighbour when we abstain from doing him any positive harm, and do
not directly hurt him, either in his person, or in his estate, or
in his reputation. This is that justice which I have treated of
above, the observance of which may be extorted by force, and the
violation of which exposes to punishment. In another sense we are
said not to do justice to our neighbour unless we conceive for him
all that love, respect, and esteem, which his character, his
situation, and his connexion with ourselves, render suitable and
proper for us to feel, and unless we act accordingly. It is in
this sense that we are said to do injustice to a man of merit who
is connected with us, though we abstain from hurting him in every
respect, if we do not exert ourselves to serve him and to place
him in that situation in which the impartial spectator would be
pleased to see him. The first sense of the word coincides with
what Aristotle and the Schoolmen call commutative justice, and
with what Grotius calls the justitia expletrix, which
consists in abstaining from what is another's, and in doing
voluntarily whatever we can with propriety be forced to do. The
second sense of the word coincides with what some have called
distributive justice, and with the justitia
attributrix of Grotius, which consists in proper beneficence,
in the becoming use of what is our own, and in the applying it to
those purposes either of charity or generosity, to which it is
most suitable, in our situation, that it should be applied. In
this sense justice comprehends all the social virtues: There is
yet another sense in which the word justice is sometimes taken,
still more extensive than either of the former, though very much
a-kin to the last; and which runs too, so far as I know, through
all languages. It is in this last sense that we are said to be
unjust, when we do not seem to value any particular object with
that degree of esteem, or to pursue it with that degree of ardour
which to the impartial spectator it may appear to deserve or to be
naturally fitted for exciting. Thus we are said to do injustice to
a poem or a picture, when we do not admire them enough, and we are
said to do them more than justice when we admire them too much. In
the same manner we are said to do injustice to ourselves when we
appear not to give sufficient attention to any particular object
of self-interest. In this last sense, what is called justice means
the same thing with exact and perfect propriety of conduct and
behaviour, and comprehends in it, not only the offices of both
commutative and distributive justice, but of every other virtue,
of prudence, of fortitude, of temperance. It is in this last sense
that Plato evidently understands what he calls justice, and which,
therefore, according to him, comprehends in it the perfection of
every sort of virtue. | |
VII.II.14 |
|
Such is the account given by Plato of the nature of virtue, or
of that temper of mind which is the proper object of praise and
approbation. It consists, according to him, in that state of mind
in which every faculty confines itself within its proper sphere
without encroaching upon that of any other, and performs its
proper office with that precise degree of strength and vigour
which belongs to it. His account, it is evident, coincides in
every respect with what we have said above concerning the
propriety of conduct. | |
VII.II.15 |
|
II. Virtue, according to Aristotle, consists in the habit of mediocrity
according to right reason. Every particular virtue, according to
him, lies in a kind of middle between two opposite vices, of which
the one offends from being too much, the other from being too
little affected by a particular species of objects. Thus the
virtue of fortitude or courage lies in the middle between the
opposite vices of cowardice and of presumptuous rashness, of which
the one offends from being too much, and the other from being too
little affected by the objects of fear. Thus too the virtue of
frugality lies in a middle between avarice and profusion, of which
the one consists in an excess, the other in a defect of the proper
attention to the objects of self-interest. Magnanimity, in the
same manner, lies in a middle between the excess of arrogance and
the defect of pusillanimity, of which the one consists in too
extravagant, the other in too weak a sentiment of our own worth
and dignity. It is unnecessary to observe that this account of
virtue corresponds too pretty exactly with what has been said
above concerning the propriety and impropriety of conduct.
| |
VII.II.16 |
|
According to Aristotle, indeed, virtue did not so much
consist in those moderate and right affections, as in the habit of
this moderation. In order to understand this, it is to be
observed, that virtue may be considered either as the quality of
an action, or as the quality of a person. Considered as the
quality of an action, it consists, even according to Aristotle, in
the reasonable moderation of the affection from which the action
proceeds, whether this disposition be habitual to the person or
not. Considered as the quality of a person, it consists in the
habit of this reasonable moderation, in its having become the
customary and usual disposition of the mind. Thus the action which
proceeds from an occasional fit of generosity is undoubtedly a
generous action, but the man who performs it, is not necessarily a
generous person, because it may be the single action of the kind
which he ever performed. The motive and disposition of heart, from
which this action was performed, may have been quite just and
proper: but as this happy mood seems to have been the effect
rather of accidental humour than of any thing steady or permanent
in the character, it can reflect no great honour on the performer.
When we denominate a character generous or charitable, or virtuous
in any respect, we mean to signify that the disposition expressed
by each of those appellations is the usual and customary
disposition of the person. But single actions of any kind, how
proper and suitable soever, are of little consequence to show that
this is the case. If a single action was sufficient to stamp the
character of any virtue upon the person who performed it, the most
worthless of mankind. might lay claim to all the virtues; since
there is no man who has not, upon some occasions, acted with
prudence, justice, temperance, and fortitude. But though single
actions, how laudable soever, reflect very little praise upon the
person who performs them, a single vicious action performed by one
whose conduct is usually very regular, greatly diminishes and
sometimes destroys altogether our opinion of his virtue. A single
action of this kind sufficiently shows that his habits are not
perfect, and that he is less to be depended upon, than, from the
usual train of his behaviour, we might have been apt to imagine.
| |
VII.II.17 |
|
Aristotle too, when he made virtue to consist in
practical habits, had it probably in his view to oppose the
doctrine of Plato, who seems to have been of opinion that just
sentiments and reasonable judgments concerning what was fit to be
done or to be avoided, were alone sufficient to constitute the
most perfect virtue. Virtue, according to Plato, might be
considered as a species of science, and no man, he thought, could
see clearly and demonstratively what was right and what was wrong,
and not act accordingly. Passion might make us act contrary to
doubtful and uncertain opinions, not to plain and evident
judgments. Aristotle, on the contrary, was of opinion, that no
conviction of the understanding was capable of getting the better
of inveterate habits, and that good morals arose not from
knowledge but from action. | |
VII.II.18 |
|
III. According to Zeno, the founder of the Stoical doctrine,
every animal was by nature recommended to its own care, and was
endowed with the principle of self-love, that it might endeavour
to preserve, not only its existence, but all the different parts
of its nature, in the best and most perfect state of which they
were capable. | |
VII.II.19 |
|
The self-love of man embraced, if I may say so, his body and
all its different members, his mind and all its different
faculties and powers, and desired the preservation and maintenance
of them all in their best and most perfect condition. Whatever
tended to support this state of existence was, therefore, by
nature pointed out to him as fit to be chosen; and whatever tended
to destroy it, as fit to be rejected. Thus health, strength,
agility and ease of body as well as the eternal conveniencies
which could promote these; wealth, power, honours, the respect and
esteem of those we live with; were naturally pointed out to us as
things eligible, and of which the possession was preferable to the
want. On the other hand, sickness, infirmity, unwieldiness, pain
of body, as well as all the eternal inconveniencies which tend to
occasion or bring on any of them; poverty, the want of authority,
the contempt or hatred of those we live with; were, in the same
manner, pointed out to us as things to be shunned and avoided. In
each of those two opposite classes of objects, there were some
which appeared to be more the objects either of choice or
rejection, than others in the same class. Thus, in the first
class, health appeared evidently preferable to strength, and
strength to agility; reputation to power, and power to riches. And
thus too, in the second class, sickness was more to be avoided
than unwieldiness of body, ignominy than poverty, and poverty than
the loss of power. Virtue and the propriety of conduct consisted
in choosing and rejecting all different objects and circumstances
according as they were by nature rendered more or less the objects
of choice or rejection; in selecting always from among the several
objects of choice presented to us, that which was most to be
chosen, when we could not obtain them all; and in selecting too,
out of the several objects of rejection offered to us, that which
was least to be avoided, when it was not in our power to avoid
them all. By choosing and rejecting with this just and accurate
discernment, by thus bestowing upon every object the precise
degree of attention it deserved, according to the place which it
held in this natural scale of things, we maintained, according to
the Stoics, that perfect rectitude of conduct which constituted
the essence of virtue. This was what they called to live
consistently, to live according to nature, and to obey those laws
and directions which nature, or the Author of nature, had
prescribed for our conduct. | |
VII.II.20 |
|
So far the Stoical idea of propriety and virtue is not very
different from that of Aristotle and the ancient Peripatetics.
| |
VII.II.21 |
|
Among those primary objects which nature had recommended to us
as eligible, was the prosperity of our family, of our relations,
of our friends, of our country, of mankind, and of the universe in
general. Nature, too, had taught us, that as the prosperity of two
was preferable to that of one, that of many, or of all, must be
infinitely more so. That we ourselves were but one, and that
consequently wherever our prosperity was inconsistent with that,
either of the whole, or of any considerable part of the whole, it
ought, even in our own choice, to yield to what was so vastly
preferable. As all the events in this world were conducted by the
providence of a wise, powerful, and good God, we might be assured
that whatever happened tended to the prosperity and perfection of
the whole. If we ourselves, therefore, were in poverty, in
sickness, or in any other calamity, we ought, first of all, to use
our utmost endeavours, so far as justice and our duty to others
would allow, to rescue ourselves from this disagreeable
circumstance. But if, after all we could do, we found this
impossible, we ought to rest satisfied that the order and
perfection of the universe required that we should in the mean
time continue in this situation. And as the prosperity of the
whole should, even to us, appear preferable to so insignificant a
part as ourselves, our situation, whatever it was, ought from that
moment to become the object of our liking, if we would maintain
that complete propriety and rectitude of sentiment and conduct in
which consisted the perfection of our nature. If, indeed, any
opportunity of extricating ourselves should offer, it became our
duty to embrace it. The order of the universe, it was evident, no
longer required our continuance in this situation, and the great
Director of the world plainly called upon us to leave it, by so
clearly pointing out the road which we were to follow. It was the
same case with the adversity of our relations, our friends, our
country. If, without violating any more sacred obligation, it was
in our power to prevent or put an end to their calamity, it
undoubtedly was our duty to do so. The propriety of action, the
rule which Jupiter had given us for the direction of our conduct,
evidently required this of us. But if it was altogether out of our
power to do either, we ought then to consider this event as the
most fortunate which could possibly have happened; because we
might be assured that it tended most to the prosperity and order
of the whole, which was what we ourselves, if we were wise and
equitable, ought most of all to desire. It was our own final
interest considered as a part of that whole, of which the
prosperity ought to be, not only the principal, but the sole
object of our desire. | |
VII.II.22 |
|
'In what sense,' says Epictetus, 'are some things said to be
according to our nature, and others contrary to it? It is in that
sense in which we consider ourselves as separated and detached
from all other things. For thus it may be said to be according to
the nature of the foot to be always clean. But if you consider it
as a foot, and not as something detached from the rest of the
body, it must behove it sometimes to trample in the dirt, and
sometimes to tread upon thorns, and sometimes, too, to be cut off
for the sake of the whole body; and if it refuses this, it is no
longer a foot. Thus, too, ought we to conceive with regard to
ourselves. What are you? A man. If you consider yourself as
something separated and detached, it is agreeable to your nature
to live to old age, to be rich, to be in health. But if you
consider yourself as a man, and as a part of a whole, upon account
of that whole, it will behove you sometimes to be in sickness,
sometimes to be exposed to the inconveniency of a sea voyage,
sometimes to be in want; and at last, perhaps, to die before your
time. Why then do you complain? Do not you know that by doing so,
as the foot ceases to be a foot, so you cease to be a man?'
| |
VII.II.23 |
|
A wise man never complains of the destiny of Providence, nor
thinks the universe in confusion when he is out of order. He does
not look upon himself as a whole, separated and detached from
every other part of nature, to be taken care of by itself and for
itself. He regards himself in the light in which he imagines the
great genius of human nature, and of the world, regards him. He
enters, if I may say so, into the sentiments of that divine Being,
and considers himself as an atom, a particle, of an immense and
infinite system, which must and ought to be disposed of, according
to the conveniency of the whole. Assured of the wisdom which
directs all the events of human life, whatever lot befalls him, he
accepts it with joy, satisfied that, if he had known all the
connections and dependencies of the different parts of the
universe, it is the very lot which he himself would have wished
for. If it is life, he is contented to live; and if it is death,
as nature must have no further occasion for his presence here, he
willingly goes where he is appointed. I accept, said a cynical
philosopher, whose doctrines were in this respect the same as
those of the Stoics, I accept, with equal joy and satisfaction,
whatever fortune can befall me. Riches or poverty, pleasure or
pain, health or sickness, all is alike: nor would I desire that
the Gods should in any respect change my destination. If I was to
ask of them any thing beyond what their bounty has already
bestowed, it should be that they would inform me before-hand what
it was their pleasure should be done with me, that I might of my
own accord place myself in this situation, and demonstrate the
cheerfulness with which I embraced their allotment. If I am going
to sail, says Epictetus, I chuse the best ship and the best pilot,
and I wait for the fairest weather that my circumstances and duty
will allow. Prudence and propriety, the principles which the Gods
have given me for the direction of my conduct, require this of me;
but they require no more: and if, notwithstanding, a storm arises,
which neither the strength of the vessel nor the skill of the
pilot are likely to withstand, I give myself no trouble about the
consequence. All that I had to do is done already. The directors
of my conduct never command me to be miserable, to be anxious,
desponding, or afraid. Whether we are to be drowned, or to come to
a harbour, is the business of Jupiter, not mine. I leave it
entirely to his determination, nor ever break my rest with
considering which way he is likely to decide it, but receive
whatever comes with equal indifference and security.
| |
VII.II.24 |
|
From this perfect confidence in that benevolent wisdom which
governs the universe, and from this entire resignation to whatever
order that wisdom might think proper to establish, it necessarily
followed, that, to the Stoical wise man, all the events of human
life must be in a great measure indifferent. His happiness
consisted altogether, first, in the contemplation of the happiness
and perfection of the great system of the universe, of the good
government of the great republic of Gods and men, of all rational
and sensible beings; and, secondly, in discharging his duty, in
acting properly in the affairs of this great republic whatever
little part that wisdom had assigned to him. The propriety or
impropriety of his endeavours might be of great consequence to
him. Their success or disappointment could be of none at all;
could excite no passionate joy or sorrow, no passionate desire or
aversion. If he preferred some events to others, if some
situations were the objects of his choice and others of his
rejection, it was not because he regarded the one as in themselves
in any respect better than the other, or thought that his own
happiness would be more complete in what is called the fortunate
than in what is regarded as the distressful situation; but because
the propriety of action, the rule which the Gods had given him for
the direction of his conduct, required him to chuse and reject in
this manner. All his affections were absorbed and swallowed up in
two great affections; in that for the discharge of his own duty,
and in that for the greatest possible happiness of all rational
and sensible beings. For the gratification of this latter
affection, he rested with the most perfect security upon the
wisdom and power of the great Superintendant of the universe. His
sole anxiety was about the gratification of the former; not about
the event, but about the propriety of his own endeavours. Whatever
the event might be, he trusted to a superior power and wisdom for
turning it to promote that great end which he himself was most
desirous of promoting. | |
VII.II.25 |
|
This propriety of chusing and rejecting, though originally
pointed out to us, and as it were recommended and introduced to
our acquaintance by the things, and for the sake of the things,
chosen and rejected; yet when we had once become thoroughly
acquainted with it, the order, the grace, the beauty which we
discerned in this conduct, the happiness which we felt resulted
from it, necessarily appeared to us of much greater value than the
actual obtaining of all the different objects of choice, or the
actual avoiding of all those of rejection. From the observation of
this propriety arose the happiness and the glory; from the neglect
of it, the misery and the disgrace of human nature.
| |
VII.II.26 |
|
But to a wise man, to one whose
passions were brought under perfect subjection to the ruling
principles of his nature, the exact observation of this propriety
was equally easy upon all occasions. Was he in prosperity, he
returned thanks to Jupiter for having joined him with
circumstances which were easily mastered, and in which there was
little temptation to do wrong. Was he in adversity, he equally
returned thanks to the director of this spectacle of human life,
for having opposed to him a vigorous athlete, over whom, though
the contest was likely to be more violent, the victory was more
glorious, and equally certain. Can there be any shame in that
distress which is brought upon us without any fault of our own,
and in which we behave with perfect propriety? There can,
therefore, be no evil, but, on the contrary, the greatest good and
advantage. A brave man exults in those dangers in which, from no
rashness of his own, his fortune has involved him. They afford an
opportunity of exercising that heroic intrepidity, whose exertion
gives the exalted delight which flows from the consciousness of
superior propriety and deserved admiration. One who is master of
all his exercises has no aversion to measure his strength and
activity with the strongest. And, in the same manner, one who is
master of all his passions, does not dread any circumstance in
which the Superintendant of the universe may think proper to place
him. The bounty of that divine Being has provided him with virtues
which render him superior to every situation. If it is pleasure,
he has temperance to refrain from it; if it is pain, he has
constancy to bear it; if it is danger or death, he has magnanimity
and fortitude to despise it. The events of human life can never
find him unprepared, or at a loss how to maintain that propriety
of sentiment and conduct which, in his own apprehension,
constitutes at once his glory and his happiness.
| |
VII.II.27 |
|
Human life the Stoics appear to have considered as a game of
great skill; in which, however, there was a mixture of chance, or
of what is vulgarly understood to be chance. In such games the
stake is commonly a trifle, and the whole pleasure of the game
arises from playing well, from playing fairly, and playing
skilfully. If notwithstanding all his skill, however, the good
player should, by the influence of chance, happen to lose, the
loss ought to be a matter, rather of merriment, than of serious
sorrow. He has made no false stroke; he has done nothing which he
ought to be ashamed of; he has enjoyed completely the whole
pleasure of the game. If, on the contrary, the bad player,
notwithstanding all his blunders, should, in the same manner,
happen to win, his success can give him but little satisfaction.
He is mortified by the remembrance of all the faults which he
committed. Even during the play he can enjoy no part of the
pleasure which it is capable of affording. From ignorance of the
rules of the game, fear and doubt and hesitation are the
disagreeable sentiments that precede almost every stroke which he
plays; and when he has played it, the mortification of finding it
a gross blunder, commonly completes the unpleasing circle of his
sensations. Human life, with all the advantages which can possibly
attend it, ought, according to the Stoics, to be regarded but as a
mere two-penny stake; a matter by far too insignificant to merit
any anxious concern. Our only anxious concern ought to be, not
about the stake, but about the proper method of playing. If we
placed our happiness in winning the stake, we placed it in what
depended upon causes beyond our power, and out of our direction.
We necessarily exposed ourselves to perpetual fear and uneasiness,
and frequently to grievous and mortifying disappointments. If we
placed it in playing well, in playing fairly, in playing wisely
and skilfully; in the propriety of our own conduct in short; we
placed it in what, by proper discipline, education, and attention,
might be altogether in our own power, and under our own direction.
Our happiness was perfectly secure, and beyond the reach of
fortune. The event of our actions, if it was out of our power, was
equally out of our concern, and we could never feel either fear or
anxiety about it; nor ever suffer any grievous, or even any
serious disappointment. | |
VII.II.28 |
|
Human life itself, as well as every different advantage or
disadvantage which can attend it, might, they said, according to
Different circumstances, be the proper object either of our choice
or of our rejection. If, in our actual situation, there were more
circumstances agreeable to nature than contrary to it; more
circumstances which were the objects of choice than of rejection;
life, in this case, was, upon the whole, the proper object of
choice, and the propriety of conduct required that we should
remain in it. If, on the other hand, there were, in our actual
situation, without any probable hope of amendment, more
circumstances contrary to nature than agreeable to it; more
circumstances which were the objects of rejection than of choice;
life itself, in this case, became, to a wise man, the object of
rejection, and he was not only at liberty to remove out of it, but
the propriety of conduct, the rule which the Gods had given him
for the direction of his conduct, required him to do so. I am
ordered, says Epictetus, not to dwell at Nicopolis. I do not dwell
there. I am ordered not to dwell at Athens. I do not dwell at
Athens. I am ordered not to dwell in Rome. I do not dwell in Rome.
I am ordered to dwell in the little and rocky island of Gyarae. I
go and dwell there. But the house smokes in Gyarae. If the smoke
is moderate, I will bear it, and stay there. If it is excessive, I
will go to a house from whence no tyrant can remove me. I keep in
mind always that the door is open, that I can walk out when I
please, and retire to that hospitable house which is at all times
open to all the world; for beyond my undermost garment, beyond my
body, no man living has any power over me. If your situation is
upon the whole disagreeable; if your house smokes too much for
you, said the Stoics, walk forth by all means. But walk forth
without, repining, without murmuring or complaining. Walk forth
calm, contented, rejoicing, returning thanks to the Gods, who,
from their infinite bounty, have opened the safe and quiet harbour
of death, at all times ready to receive us from the stormy ocean
of human life; who have prepared this sacred, this inviolable,
this great asylum, always open, always accessible; altogether
beyond the reach of human rage and injustice; and large enough to
contain both all those who wish, and all those who do not wish to
retire to it: an asylum which takes away from every man every
pretence of complaining, or even of fancying that there can be any
evil in human life, except such as he may suffer from his own
folly and weakness. | |
VII.II.29 |
|
The Stoics, in the few fragments of their philosophy which have
come down to us, sometimes talk of leaving life with a gaiety, and
even with a levity, which, were we to consider those passages by
themselves, might induce us to believe that they imagined we could
with propriety leave it whenever we had a mind, wantonly and
capriciously, upon the slightest disgust or uneasiness. 'When you
sup with such a person,' says Epictetus, 'you complain of the long
stories which he tells you about his Mysian wars. "Now my friend,
says he, having told you how I took possession of an eminence at
such a place, I will tell you how I was besieged in such another
place." But if you have a mind not to be troubled with his long
stories, do not accept of his supper. If you accept of his supper,
you have not the least pretence to complain of his long stories.
It is the same case with what you call the evils of human life.
Never complain of that of which it is at all times in your power
to rid yourself.' Notwithstanding this gaiety and even levity of
expression, however, the alternative of leaving life, or of
remaining in it, was, according to the Stoics, a matter of the
most serious and important deliberation. We ought never to leave
it till we were distinctly called upon to do so by that
superintending power which had originally placed us in it. But we
were to consider ourselves as called upon to do so, not merely at
the appointed and unavoidable term of human life. Whenever the
providence of that superintending Power had rendered our condition
in life upon the whole the proper object rather of rejection than
of choice; the great rule which he had given us for the direction
of our conduct, then required us to leave it. We might then be
said to hear the awful and benevolent voice of that divine Being
distinctly calling upon us to do so. | |
VII.II.30 |
|
It was upon this account that, according to the Stoics, it
might be the duty of a wise man to remove out of life though he
was perfectly happy; while, on the contrary, it might be the duty
of a weak man to remain in it, though he was necessarily
miserable. If, in the situation of the wise man, there were more
circumstances which were the natural objects of rejection than of
choice, the whole situation became the object of rejection, and
the rule which the Gods had given him for the direction of his
conduct, required that he should remove out of it as speedily as
particular circumstances might render convenient. He was, however,
perfectly happy even during the time that he might think proper to
remain in it. He had placed his happiness, not in obtaining the
objects of his choice, or in avoiding those of his rejection; but
in always choosing and rejecting with exact propriety; not in the
success, but in the fitness of his endeavours and exertions. If,
in the situation of the weak man, on the contrary, there were more
circumstances which were the natural objects of choice than of
rejection; his whole situation became the proper object of choice,
and it was his duty to remain in it. He was unhappy, however, from
not knowing how to use those circumstances. Let his cards be ever
so good, he did not know how to play them, and could enjoy no sort
of real satisfaction, either in the progress, or in the event of
the game, in whatever manner it might happen to turn out.
| |
VII.II.31 |
|
The propriety, upon some occasions, of voluntary death, though
it was, perhaps, more insisted upon by the Stoics, than by any
other sect of ancient philosophers, was, however, a doctrine
common to them all, even to the peaceable and indolent Epicureans.
During the age in which flourished the founders of all the
principal sects of ancient philosophy; during the Peloponnesian
war and for many years after its conclusion, all the different
republics of Greece were, at home, almost always distracted by the
most furious factions; and abroad, involved in the most sanguinary
wars, in which each sought, not merely superiority or dominion,
but either completely to extirpate all its enemies, or, what was
not less cruel, to reduce them into the vilest of all states, that
of domestic slavery, and to sell them, man, woman, and child, like
so many herds of cattle, to the highest bidder in the market. The
smallness of the greater part of those states, too, rendered it,
to each of them, no very improbable event, that it might itself
fall into that very calamity which it had so frequently, either,
perhaps, actually inflicted, or at least attempted to inflict upon
some of its neighbours. In this disorderly state of things, the
most perfect innocence, joined to both the highest rank and the
greatest public services, could give no security to any man that,
even at home and among his own relations and fellow-citizens, he
was not, at some time or another, from the prevalence of some
hostile and furious faction, to be condemned to the most cruel and
ignominious punishment. If he was taken prisoner in war, or if the
city of which he was a member was conquered, he was exposed, if
possible, to still greater injuries and insults. But every man
naturally, or rather necessarily, familiarizes his imagination
with the distresses to which he foresees that his situation may
frequently expose him. It is impossible that a sailor should not
frequently think of storms and shipwrecks, and foundering at sea,
and of how he himself is likely both to feel and to act upon such
occasions. It was impossible, in the same manner, that a Grecian
patriot or hero should not familiarize his imagination with all
the different calamities to which he was sensible his situation
must frequently, or rather constantly expose him. As an American
savage prepares his death-song, and considers how he should act
when he has fallen into the hands of his enemies, and is by them
put to death in the most lingering tortures, and amidst the
insults and derision of all the spectators; so a Grecian patriot
or hero could not avoid frequently employing his thoughts in
considering what he ought both to suffer and to do in banishment,
in captivity, when reduced to slavery, when put to the torture,
when brought to the scaffold. But the philosophers of all the
different sects very justly represented virtue; that is, wise,
just, firm, and temperate conduct; not only as the most probable,
but as the certain and infallible road to happiness even in this
life. This conduct, however, could not always exempt, and might
even sometimes expose the person who followed it to all the
calamities which were incident to that unsettled situation of
public affairs. They endeavoured, therefore, to show that
happiness was either altogether, or at least in a great measure,
independent of fortune; the Stoics, that it was so altogether; the
Academic and Peripatetic philosophers, that it was so in a great
measure. Wise, prudent, and good conduct was, in the first place,
the conduct most likely to ensure success in every species of
undertaking; and secondly, though it should fail of success, yet
the mind was not left without consolation. The virtuous man might
still enjoy the complete approbation of his own breast; and might
still feel that, how untoward soever things might be without, all
was calm and peace and concord within. He might generally comfort
himself, too, with the assurance that he possessed the love and
esteem of every intelligent and impartial spectator, who could not
fail both to admire his conduct, and to regret his misfortune.
| |
VII.II.32 |
|
Those philosophers endeavoured, at the same time, to show, that
the greatest misfortunes to which human life was liable, might be
supported more easily than was commonly imagined. They endeavoured
to point out the comforts which a man might still enjoy when
reduced to poverty, when driven into banishment, when exposed to
the injustice of popular clamour, when labouring under blindness,
under deafness, in the extremity of old age, upon the approach of
death. They pointed out, too, the considerations which might
contribute to support his constancy under the agonies of pain and
even of torture, in sickness, in sorrow for the loss of children,
for the death of friends and relations, etc. The few fragments
which have come down to us of what the ancient philosophers had
written upon these subjects, form, perhaps, one of the most
instructive, as well as one of the most interesting remains of
antiquity. The spirit and manhood of their doctrines make a
wonderful contrast with the desponding, plaintive, and whining
tone of some modern systems. | |
VII.II.33 |
|
But while those ancient philosophers endeavoured in this manner
to suggest every consideration which could, as Milton says, arm
the obdured breast with stubborn patience, as with triple steel;
they, at the same time, laboured above all to convince their
followers that there neither was nor could be any evil in death;
and that, if their situation became at any time too hard for their
constancy to support, the remedy was at hand, the door was open,
and they might, without fear, walk out when they pleased. If there
was no world beyond the present, death, they said, could be no
evil; and if there was another world, the Gods must likewise be in
that other, and a just man could fear no evil while under their
protection. Those philosophers, in short, prepared a death-song,
if I may say so, which the Grecian patriots and heroes might make
use of upon the proper occasions; and, of all the different sects,
the Stoics, I think it must be acknowledged, had prepared by far
the most animated and spirited song. | |
VII.II.34 |
|
Suicide, however, never seems to have been very common among
the Greeks. Excepting Cleomenes, I cannot at present recollect any
very illustrious either patriot or hero of Greece, who died by his
own hand. The death of Aristomenes is as much beyond the period of
true history as that of Ajax. The common story of the death of
Themistocles, though within that period, bears upon its face all
the marks of a most romantic fable. Of all the Greek heroes whose
lives have been written by Plutarch, Cleomenes appears to have
been the only one who perished in this manner. Theramines,
Socrates, and Phocion, who certainly did not want courage,
suffered themselves to be sent to prison, and submitted patiently
to that death to which the injustice of their fellow-citizens had
condemned them. The brave Eumenes allowed himself to be delivered
up, by his own mutinous soldiers, to his enemy Antigonus, and was
starved to death, without attempting any violence. The gallant
Philopoemen suffered himself to be taken prisoner by the
Messenians, was thrown into a dungeon, and was supposed to have
been privately poisoned. Several of the philosophers, indeed, are
said to have died in this manner; but their lives have been so
very foolishly written, that very little credit is due to the
greater part of the tales which are told of them. Three different
accounts have been given of the death of Zeno the Stoic. One is,
that after enjoying, for ninety-eight years, the most perfect
state of health, he happened, in going out of his school, to fall;
and though he suffered no other damage than that of breaking or
dislocating one of his fingers, he struck the ground with his
hand, and, in the words of the Niobe of Euripides, said, I
come, why doest thou call me? and immediately went home and
hanged himself. At that great age, one should think, he might have
had a little more patience. Another account is, that, at the same
age, and in consequence of a like accident, he starved himself to
death. The third account is, that, at seventy-two years of age, he
died in the natural way; by far the most probable account of the
three, and supported too by the authority of a co-temporary, who
must have had every opportunity of being well informed; of
Persaeus, originally the slave, and afterwards the friend and
disciple of Zeno. The first account is given by Apollonius of
Tyre, who flourished about the time of Augustus Caesar, between
two and three hundred years after the death of Zeno. I know not
who is the author of the second account. Apollonius, who was
himself a Stoic, had probably thought it would do honour to the
founder of a sect which talked so much about voluntary death, to
die in this manner by his own hand. Men of letters, though, after
their death, they are frequently more talked of than the greatest
princes or statesmen of their times, are generally, during their
life, so obscure and insignificant that their adventures are
seldom recorded by co-temporary historians. Those of after-ages,
in order to satisfy the public curiosity, and having no authentic
documents either to support or to contradict their narratives,
seem frequently to have fashioned them according to their own
fancy; and almost always with a great mixture of the marvellous.
In this particular case the marvellous, though supported by no
authority, seems to have prevailed over the probable, though
supported by the best. Diogenes Laertius plainly gives the
preference to the story of Apollonius. Lucian and Lactantius
appear both to have given credit to that of the great age and of
the violent death. | |
VII.II.35 |
|
This fashion of voluntary death appears to have been much more
prevalent among the proud Romans, than it ever was among the
lively, ingenious, and accommodating Greeks. Even among the
Romans, the fashion seems not to have been established in the
early and, what are called, the virtuous ages of the republic. The
common story of the death of Regulus, though probably a fable,
could never have been invented, had it been supposed that any
dishonour could fall upon that hero, from patiently submitting to
the tortures which the Carthaginians are said to have inflicted
upon him. In the later ages of the republic some dishonour I
apprehend, would have attended this submission. In the different
civil wars which preceded the fall of the commonwealth, many of
the eminent men of all the contending parties chose rather to
perish by their own hands, than to fall into those of their
enemies. The death of Cato, celebrated by Cicero, and censured by
Caesar, and become the subject of a very serious controversy
between, perhaps, the two most illustrious advocates that the
world had ever beheld, stamped a character of splendour upon this
method of dying which it seems to have retained for several ages
after. The eloquence of Cicero was superior to that of Caesar. The
admiring prevailed greatly over the censuring party, and the
lovers of liberty, for many ages afterwards, looked up to Cato as
to the most venerable martyr of the republican party. The head of
a party, the Cardinal de Retz observes, may do what he pleases; as
long as he retains the confidence of his own friends, he can never
do wrong; a maxim of which his Eminence had himself, upon several
occasions, an opportunity of experiencing the truth. Cato, it
seems, joined to his other virtues that of an excellent bottle
companion. His enemies accused him of drunkenness, but, says
Seneca, whoever objected this vice to Cato, will find it much
easier to prove that drunkenness is a virtue, than that Cato could
be addicted to any vice. | |
VII.II.36 |
|
Under the Emperors this method of dying seems to have been, for
a long time, perfectly fashionable. In the epistles of Pliny we
find an account of several persons who chose to die in this
manner, rather from vanity and ostentation, it would seem, than
from what would appear, even to a sober and judicious Stoic, any
proper or necessary reason. Even the ladies, who are seldom behind
in following the fashion, seem frequently to have chosen, most
unnecessarily, to die in this manner; and, like the ladies in
Bengal, to accompany, upon some occasions, their husbands to the
tomb. The prevalence of this fashion certainly occasioned many
deaths which would not otherwise have happened. All the havock,
however, which this, perhaps the highest exertion of human vanity
and impertinence, could occasion, would, probably, at no time, be
very great. | |
VII.II.37 |
|
The principle of suicide, the principle which would teach us,
upon some occasions, to consider that violent action as an object
of applause and approbation, seems to be altogether a refinement
of philosophy. Nature, in her sound and healthful state, seems
never to prompt us to suicide. There is, indeed, a species of
melancholy (a disease to which human nature, among its other
calamities, is unhappily subject) which seems to be accompanied
with, what one may call, an irresistible appetite for
self-destruction. In circumstances often of the highest external
prosperity, and sometimes too, in spite even of the most serious
and deeply impressed sentiments of religion, this disease has
frequently been known to drive its wretched victims to this fatal
extremity. The unfortunate persons who perish in this miserable
manner, are the proper objects, not of censure, but of
commiseration. To attempt to punish them, when they are beyond the
reach of all human punishment, is not more absurd than it is
unjust. That punishment can fall only on their surviving friends
and relations, who are always perfectly innocent, and to whom the
loss of their friend, in this disgraceful manner, must always be
alone a very heavy calamity. Nature, in her sound and healthful
state, prompts us to avoid distress upon all occasions; upon many
occasions to defend ourselves against it, though at the hazard, or
even with the certainty of perishing in that defence. But, when we
have neither been able to defend ourselves from it, nor have
perished in that defence, no natural principle, no regard to the
approbation of the supposed impartial spectator, to the judgment
of the man within the breast, seems to call upon us to escape from
it by destroying ourselves. It is only the consciousness of our
own weakness, of our own incapacity to support the calamity with
proper manhood and firmness, which can drive us to this
resolution. I do not remember to have either read or heard of any
American savage, who, upon being taken prisoner by some hostile
tribe, put himself to death, in order to avoid being afterwards
put to death in torture, and amidst the insults and mockery of his
enemies. He places his glory in supporting those torments with
manhood, and in retorting those insults with tenfold contempt and
derision. | |
VII.II.38 |
|
This contempt of life and death, however, and, at the same
time, the most entire submission to the order of Providence; the
most complete contentment with every event which the current of
human affairs could possibly cast up, may be considered as the two
fundamental doctrines upon which rested the whole fabric of
Stoical morality. The independent and spirited, but often harsh
Epictetus, may be considered as the great apostle of the first of
those doctrines: the mild, the humane, the benevolent Antoninus,
of the second. | |
VII.II.39 |
|
The emancipated slave of Epaphriditus, who, in his youth, had
been subjected to the insolence of a brutal master, who, in his
riper years, was, by the jealousy and caprice of Domitian,
banished from Rome and Athens, and obliged to dwell at Nicopolis,
and who, by the same tyrant, might expect every moment to be sent
to Gyarae, or, perhaps, to be put to death; could preserve his
tranquillity only by fostering in his mind the most sovereign
contempt of human life. He never exults so much, accordingly his
eloquence is never so animated as when he represents the futility
and nothingness of all its pleasures and all its pains.
| |
VII.II.40 |
|
The good-natured Emperor, the absolute sovereign of the whole
civilized part of the world, who certainly had no peculiar reason
to complain of his own allotment, delights in expressing his
contentment with the ordinary course of things, and in pointing
out beauties even in those parts of it where vulgar observers are
not apt to see any. There is a propriety and even an engaging
grace, he observes, in old age as well as in youth; and the
weakness and decrepitude of the one state are as suitable to
nature as the bloom and vigour of the other. Death, too, is just
as proper a termination of old age, as youth is of childhood, or
manhood of youth. As we frequently say, he remarks upon another
occasion, that the physician has ordered to such a man to ride on
horseback, or to use the cold bath, or to walk barefooted; so
ought we to say, that Nature, the great conductor and physician of
the universe, has ordered to such a man a disease, or the
amputation of a limb, or the loss of a child. By the prescriptions
of ordinary physicians the patient swallows many a bitter potion;
undergoes many a painful operation. From the very uncertain hope,
however, that health may be the consequence, he gladly submits to
all. The harshest prescriptions of the great Physician of nature,
the patient may, in the same manner, hope will contribute to his
own health, to his own final prosperity and happiness: and he may
be perfectly assured that they not only contribute, but are
indispensably necessary to the health, to the prosperity and
happiness of the universe, to the furtherance and advancement of
the great plan of Jupiter. Had they not been so, the universe
would never have produced them; its all-wise Architect and
Conductor would never have suffered them to happen. As all, even
the smallest of the co-existent parts of the universe, are exactly
fitted to one another, and all contribute to compose one immense
and connected system; so all, even apparently the most
insignificant of the successive events which follow one another,
make parts, and necessary parts, of that great chain of causes and
effects which had no beginning, and which will have no end; and
which, as they all necessarily result from the original
arrangement and contrivance of the whole; so they are all
essentially necessary, not only to its prosperity, but to its
continuance and preservation. Whoever does not cordially embrace
whatever befals him, whoever is sorry that it has befallen him,
whoever wishes that it had not befallen him, wishes, so far as in
him lies, to stop the motion of the universe, to break that great
chain of succession, by the progress of which that system can
alone be continued and preserved, and, for some little conveniency
of his own, to disorder and discompose the whole machine of the
world. 'O world,' says he, in another place, 'all things are
suitable to me which are suitable to thee. Nothing is too early or
too late to me which is seasonable for thee. All is fruit to me
which thy seasons bring forth. From thee are all things; in thee
are all things; for thee are all things. One man says, O beloved
city of Cecrops. Wilt not thou say, O beloved city of God?'
| |
VII.II.41 |
|
From these very sublime doctrines the Stoics, or at least some
of the Stoics, attempted to deduce all their paradoxes.
| |
VII.II.42 |
|
The Stoical wise man endeavoured to enter into the views of the
great Superintendant of the universe, and to see things in the
same light in which that divine Being beheld them. But, to the
great Superintendant of the universe, all the different events
which the course of his providence may bring forth, what to us
appear the smallest and the greatest, the bursting of a bubble, as
Mr. Pope says, and that of a world, for example, were perfectly
equal, were equally parts of that great chain which he had
predestined from all eternity, were equally the effects of the
same unerring wisdom, of the same universal and boundless
benevolence. To the Stoical wise man, in the same manner, all
those different events were perfectly equal. In the course of
those events, indeed, a little department, in which he had himself
some little management and direction, had been assigned to him. In
this department he endeavoured to act as properly as he could, and
to conduct himself according to those orders which, he understood,
had been prescribed to him. But he took no anxious or passionate
concern either in the success, or in the disappointment of his own
most faithful endeavours. The highest prosperity and the total
destruction of that little department, of that little system which
had been in some measure committed to his charge, were perfectly
indifferent to him. If those events had depended upon him, he
would have chosen the one, and he would have rejected the other.
But as they did not depend upon him, he trusted to a superior
wisdom, and was perfectly satisfied that the event which happened,
whatever it might be, was the very event which he himself, had he
known all the connections and dependencies of things, would most
earnestly and devoutly have wished for. Whatever he did under the
influence and direction of those principles was equally perfect;
and when he stretched out his finger, to give the example which
they commonly made use of, he performed an action in every respect
as meritorious, as worthy of praise and admiration, as when he
laid down his life for the service of his country. As, to the
great Superintendant of the universe, the greatest and the
smallest exertions of his power, the formation and dissolution of
a world, the formation and dissolution of a bubble, were equally
easy, were equally admirable, and equally the effects of the same
divine wisdom and benevolence; so, to the Stoical wise man, what
we would call the great action required no more exertion than the
little one, was equally easy, proceeded from exactly the same
principles, was in no respect more meritorious, nor worthy of any
higher degree of praise and admiration.
| |
VII.II.43 |
|
As all those who had arrived at this state of perfection, were
equally happy. so all those who fell in the smallest degree short
of it, how nearly soever they might approach to it, were equally
miserable. As the man, they said, who was but an inch below the
surface of the water, could no more breathe than he who was an
hundred yards below it; so the man who had not completely subdued
all his private, partial, and selfish passions, who had any other
earnest desire but that for the universal happiness, who had not
completely emerged from that abyss of misery and disorder into
which his anxiety for the gratification of those private, partial,
and selfish passions had involved him, could no more breathe the
free air of liberty and independency, could no more enjoy the
security and happiness of the wise man, than he who was most
remote from that situation. As all the actions of the wise man
were perfect, and equally perfect; so all those of the man who had
not arrived at this supreme wisdom were faulty, and, as some
Stoics pretended, equally faulty. As one truth, they said, could
not be more true, nor one falsehood more false than another; so an
honourable action could not be more honourable, nor a shameful one
more shameful than another. As in shooting at a mark, the man who
missed it by an inch had equally missed it with him who had done
so by a hundred yards; so the man who, in what to us appears the
most insignificant action, had acted improperly and without a
sufficient reason, was equally faulty with him who had done so in,
what to us appears, the most important; the man who has killed a
cock, for example, improperly and without a sufficient reason,
with him who had murdered his father. | |
VII.II.44 |
|
If the first of those two paradoxes should appear sufficiently
violent, the second is evidently too absurd to deserve any serious
consideration. It is, indeed, so very absurd that one can scarce
help suspecting that it must have been in some measure
misunderstood or misrepresented. At any rate, I cannot allow
myself to believe that such men as Zeno or Cleanthes, men, it is
said, of the most simple as well as of the most sublime eloquence,
could be the authors, either of these, or of the greater part of
the other Stoical paradoxes, which are in general mere impertinent
quibbles, and do so little honour to their system that I shall
give no further account of them. I am disposed to impute them
rather to Chrysippus, the disciple and follower, indeed, of Zeno
and Cleanthes, but who, from all that has been delivered down to
us concerning him, seems to have been a mere dialectical pedant,
without taste or elegance of any kind. He may have been the first
who reduced their doctrines into a scholastic or technical system
of artificial definitions, divisions, and subdivisions; one of the
most effectual expedients, perhaps, for extinguishing whatever
degree of good sense there may be in any moral or metaphysical
doctrine. Such a man may very easily be supposed to have
understood too literally some animated expressions of his masters
in describing the happiness of the man of perfect virtue, and the
unhappiness of whoever fell short of that character.
| |
VII.II.45 |
|
The Stoics in general seem to have admitted that there might be
a degree of proficiency in those who had not advanced to perfect
virtue and happiness. They distributed those proficients into
different classes, according to the degree of their advancement;
and they called the imperfect virtues which they supposed them
capable of exercising, not rectitudes, but proprieties, fitnesses,
decent and becoming actions, for which a plausible or probable
reason could be assigned, what Cicero expresses by the Latin word
officia, and Seneca, I think more exactly, by that of
convenientia. The doctrine of those imperfect, but
attainable virtues, seems to have constituted what we may call the
practical morality of the Stoics. It is the subject of Cicero's
Offices; and is said to have been that of another book written by
Marcus Brutus, but which is now lost. | |
VII.II.46 |
|
The plan and system which Nature has sketched out for our
conduct, seems to be altogether different from that of the Stoical
philosophy. | |
VII.II.47 |
|
By Nature the events which immediately affect that little
department in which we ourselves have some little management and
direction, which immediately affect ourselves, our friends, our
country, are the events which interest us the most, and which
chiefly excite our desires and aversions, our hopes and fears, our
joys and sorrows. Should those passions be, what they are very apt
to be, too vehement, Nature has provided a proper remedy and
correction. The real or even the imaginary presence of the
impartial spectator, the authority of the man within the breast,
is always at hand to overawe them into the proper tone and temper
of moderation. | |
VII.II.48 |
|
If, notwithstanding our most faithful exertions, all the events
which can affect this little department, should turn out the most
unfortunate and disastrous, Nature has by no means left us without
consolation. That consolation may be drawn, not only from the
complete approbation of the man within the breast, but, if
possible, from a still nobler and more generous principle, from a
firm reliance upon, and a reverential submission to, that
benevolent wisdom which directs all the events of human life, and
which, we may be assured, would never have suffered those
misfortunes to happen, had they not been indispensably necessary
for the good of the whole. | |
VII.II.49 |
|
Nature has not prescribed to us this sublime contemplation as
the great business and occupation of our lives. She only points it
out to us as the consolation of our misfortunes. The Stoical
philosophy prescribes it as the great business and occupation of
our lives. That philosophy teaches us to interest ourselves
earnestly and anxiously in no events, external to the good order
of our own minds, to the propriety of our own choosing and
rejecting, except in those which concern a department where we
neither have nor ought to have any sort of management or
direction, the department of the great Superintendant of the
universe. By the perfect apathy which it prescribes to us, by
endeavouring, not merely to moderate, but to eradicate all our
private, partial, and selfish affections, by suffering us to feel
for whatever can befall ourselves, our friends, our country, not
even the sympathetic and reduced passions of the impartial
spectator, it endeavours to render us altogether indifferent and
unconcerned in the success or miscarriage of every thing which
Nature has prescribed to us as the proper business and occupation
of our lives. | |
VII.II.50 |
|
The reasonings of philosophy, it may be said, though they may
confound and perplex the understanding, can never break down the
necessary connection which Nature has established between causes
and their effects. The causes which naturally excite our desires
and aversions, our hopes and fears, our joys and sorrows, would no
doubt, notwithstanding all the reasonings of Stoicism, produce
upon each individual, according to the degree of his actual
sensibility, their proper and necessary effects. The judgments of
the man within the breast, however, might be a good deal affected
by those reasonings, and that great inmate might be taught by them
to attempt to overawe all our private, partial, and selfish
affections into a more or less perfect tranquillity. To direct the
judgments of this inmate is the great purpose of all systems of
morality. That the Stoical philosophy had very great influence
upon the character and conduct of its followers, cannot be
doubted; and that though it might sometimes incite them to
unnecessary violence, its general tendency was to animate them to
actions of the most heroic magnanimity and most extensive
benevolence. | |
VII.II.51 |
|
IV. Besides these ancient, there are some modern systems,
according to which virtue consists in propriety; or in the
suitableness of the affection from which we act, to the cause or
object which excites it. The system of Dr. Clark, which places
virtue in acting according to the relations of things, in
regulating our conduct according to the fitness or incongruity
which there may be in the application of certain actions to
certain things, or to certain relations: that of Mr. Woollaston,
which places it in acting according to the truth of things,
according to their proper nature and essence, or in treating them
as what they really are, and not as what they are not: that of my
Lord Shaftesbury, which places it in maintaining a proper balance
of the affections, and in allowing no passion to go beyond its
proper sphere; are all of them more or less inaccurate
descriptions of the same fundamental idea.
| |
VII.II.52 |
|
None of those systems either give, or even pretend to give, any
precise or distinct measure by which this fitness or propriety of
affection can be ascertained or judged of. That precise and
distinct measure can be found nowhere but in the sympathetic
feelings of the impartial and well-informed spectator.
| |
VII.II.53 |
|
The description of virtue, besides, which is either given, or
at least meant and intended to be given in each of those systems,
for some of the modern authors are not very fortunate in their
manner of expressing themselves, is no doubt quite just, so far as
it goes. There is no virtue without propriety, and wherever there
is propriety some degree of approbation is due. But still this
description is imperfect. For though propriety is an essential
ingredient in every virtuous action, it is not always the sole
ingredient. Beneficent actions have in them another quality by
which they appear not only to deserve approbation but recompense.
None of those systems account either easily or sufficiently for
that superior degree of esteem which seems due to such actions, or
for that diversity of sentiment which they naturally excite.
Neither is the description of vice more complete. For, in the same
manner, though impropriety is a necessary ingredient in every
vicious action, it is not always the sole ingredient; and there is
often the highest degree of absurdity and impropriety in very
harmless and insignificant actions. Deliberate actions, of a
pernicious tendency to those we live with, have, besides their
impropriety, a peculiar quality of their own by which they appear
to deserve, not only disapprobation, but punishment; and to be the
objects, not of dislike merely, but of resentment and revenge: and
none of those systems easily and sufficiently account for that
superior degree of detestation which we feel for such actions.
| |
VII.II.54 |
|
Chapter II - Of those Systems which make Virtue consist in
Prudence
| |
|
The most ancient of those systems which make virtue consist in
prudence, and of which any considerable remains have come down to
us, is that of Epicurus, who is said, however, to have borrowed
all the leading principles of his philosophy from some of those
who had gone before him, particularly from Aristippus; though it
is very probable, notwithstanding this allegation of his enemies,
that at least his manner of applying those principles was
altogether his own. | |
VII.II.55 |
|
According to Epicurus, bodily pleasure and pain were the
sole ultimate objects of natural desire and aversion. That they
were always the natural objects of those passions, he thought
required no proof. Pleasure might, indeed, appear sometimes to be
avoided; not, however, because it was pleasure, but because, by
the enjoyment of it, we should either forfeit some greater
pleasure, or expose ourselves to some pain that was more to be
avoided than this pleasure was to be desired. Pain, in the same
manner, might appear sometimes to be eligible; not, however,
because it was pain, but because by enduring it we might either
avoid a still greater pain, or acquire some pleasure of much more
importance. That bodily pain and pleasure, therefore, were always
the natural objects of desire and aversion, was, he thought,
abundantly evident. Nor was it less so, he imagined, that they
were the sole ultimate objects of those passions. Whatever else
was either desired or avoided, was so, according to him, upon
account of its tendency to produce one or other of those
sensations. The tendency to procure pleasure rendered power and
riches desirable, as the contrary tendency to produce pain made
poverty and insignificancy the objects of aversion. Honour and
reputation were valued, because the esteem and love of those we
live with were of the greatest consequence both to procure
pleasure and to defend us from pain. Ignominy and bad fame, on the
contrary, were to be avoided, because the hatred, contempt and
resentment of those we lived with, destroyed all security, and
necessarily exposed us to the greatest bodily evils.
| |
VII.II.56 |
|
All the pleasures and pains of the mind were, according to
Epicurus, ultimately derived from those of the body. The mind was
happy when it thought of the past pleasures of the body, and hoped
for others to come: and it was miserable when it thought of the
pains which the body had formerly endured, and dreaded the same or
greater thereafter. | |
VII.II.57 |
|
But the pleasures and pains of the mind, though ultimately
derived from those of the body, were vastly greater than their
originals. The body felt only the sensation of the present
instant, whereas the mind felt also the past and the future, the
one by remembrance, the other by anticipation, and consequently
both suffered and enjoyed much more. When we are under the
greatest bodily pain, he observed, we shall always find, if we
attend to it, that it is not the suffering of the present instant
which chiefly torments us, but either the agonizing remembrance of
the past, or the yet more horrible dread of the future. The pain
of each instant, considered by itself, and cut off from all that
goes before and all that comes after it, is a trifle, not worth
the regarding. Yet this is all which the body can ever be said to
suffer. In the same manner, when we enjoy the greatest pleasure,
we shall always find that the bodily sensation, the sensation of
the present instant, makes but a small part of our happiness, that
our enjoyment chiefly arises either from the cheerful recollection
of the past, or the still more joyous anticipation of the future,
and that the mind always contributes by much the largest share of
the entertainment. | |
VII.II.58 |
|
Since our happiness and misery, therefore, depended chiefly on
the mind, if this part of our nature was well disposed, if our
thoughts and opinions were as they should be, it was of little
importance in what manner our body was affected. Though under
great bodily pain, we might still enjoy a considerable share of
happiness, if our reason and judgment maintained their
superiority. We might entertain ourselves with the remembrance of
past, and with the hopes of future pleasure; we might soften the
rigour of our pains, by recollecting what it was which, even in
this situation, we were under any necessity of suffering. That
this was merely the bodily sensation, the pain of the present
instant, which by itself could never be very great. That whatever
agony we suffered from the dread of its continuance, was the
effect of an opinion of the mind, which might be corrected by
juster sentiments; by considering that, if our pains were violent,
they would probably be of short duration; and that if they were of
long continuance, they would probably be moderate, and admit of
many intervals of ease; and that, at any rate, death was always at
hand and within call to deliver us, which as, according to him, it
put an end to all sensation, either of pain or pleasure, could not
be regarded as an evil. When we are, said he, death is not; and
when death is, we are not; death therefore can be nothing to us.
| |
VII.II.59 |
|
If the actual sensation of positive pain was in itself so
little to be feared, that of pleasure was still less to be
desired. Naturally the sensation of pleasure was much less pungent
than that of pain. If, therefore, this last could take so very
little from the happiness of a well-disposed mind, the other could
add scarce any thing to it. When the body was free from pain and
the mind from fear and anxiety, the superadded sensation of bodily
pleasure could be of very little importance; and though it might
diversify could not properly be said to increase the happiness of
the situation. | |
VII.II.60 |
|
In ease of body, therefore, and in security or tranquillity of
mind, consisted, according to Epicurus, the most perfect state of
human nature, the most complete happiness which man was capable of
enjoying. To obtain this great end of natural desire was the sole
object of all the virtues, which, according to him, were not
desirable upon their own account, but upon account of their
tendency to bring about this situation.
| |
VII.II.61 |
|
Prudence, for example, though, according to this philosophy,
the source and principle of all the virtues, was not desirable
upon its own account. That careful and laborious and circumspect
state of mind, ever watchful and ever attentive to the most
distant consequences of every action. could not be a thing
pleasant or agreeable for its own sake, but upon account of its
tendency to procure the greatest goods and to keep off the
greatest evils. | |
VII.II.62 |
|
To abstain from pleasure too, to curb and restrain our natural
passions for enjoyment, which was the office of temperance, could
never be desirable for its own sake. The whole value of this
virtue arose from its utility, from its enabling us to postpone
the present enjoyment for the sake of a greater to come, or to
avoid a greater pain that might ensue from it. Temperance, in
short, was nothing but prudence with regard to pleasure.
| |
VII.II.63 |
|
To support labour, to endure pain, to be exposed to danger or
to death, the situations which fortitude would often lead us into,
were surely still less the objects of natural desire. They were
chosen only to avoid greater evils. We submitted to labour, in
order to avoid the greater shame and pain of poverty, and we
exposed ourselves to danger and to death in defence of our liberty
and property, the means and instruments of pleasure and happiness;
or in defence of our country, in the safety of which our own was
necessarily comprehended. Fortitude enabled us to do all this
cheerfully, as the best which, in our present situation, could
possibly be done, and was in reality no more than prudence, good
judgment, and presence of mind in properly appreciating pain,
labour, and danger, always choosing the less in order to avoid the
greater. | |
VII.II.64 |
|
It is the same case with justice. To abstain from what is
another's was not desirable on its own account, and it could not
surely be better for you, that I should possess what is my own,
than that you should possess it. You ought, however, to abstain
from whatever belongs to me, because by doing otherwise you will
provoke the resentment and indication of mankind. The security and
tranquillity of your mind will be entirely destroyed. You will be
filled with fear and consternation at the thought of that
punishment which you will imagine that men are at all times ready
to inflict upon you, and from which no power, no art, no
concealment, will ever, in your own fancy, be sufficient to
protect you. That other species of justice which. consists in
doing proper good offices to different persons, according to the
various relations of neighbours, kinsmen, friends, benefactors,
superiors, or equals, which they may stand in to us, is
recommended by the same reasons. To act properly in all these
different relations procures us the esteem and love of those we
live with; as to do otherwise excites their contempt and hatred.
By the one we naturally secure, by the other we necessarily
endanger our own ease and tranquillity, the great and ultimate
objects of all our desires. The whole virtue of justice,
therefore, the most important of all the virtues, is no more than
discreet and prudent conduct with regard to our neighbours.
| |
VII.II.65 |
|
Such is the doctrine of Epicurus concerning the nature of
virtue. It may seem extraordinary that this philosopher, who is
described as a person of the most amiable manners, should never
have observed, that, whatever may be the tendency of those
virtues, or of the contrary vices, with regard to our bodily ease
and security, the sentiments which they naturally excite in others
are the objects of a much more passionate desire or aversion than
all their other consequences; that to be amiable, to be
respectable, to be the proper object of esteem, is by every
well-disposed mind more valued than all the ease and security
which love, respect, and esteem can procure us; that, on the
contrary, to be odious, to be contemptible, to be the proper
object of indignation, is more dreadful than all that we can
suffer in our body from hatred, contempt, or indignation; and that
consequently our desire of the one character, and our aversion to
the other, cannot arise from any regard to the effects which
either of them is likely to produce upon the body.
| |
VII.II.66 |
|
This system is, no doubt, altogether inconsistent with that
which I have been endeavouring to establish. It is not difficult,
however, to discover from what phasis, if I may say so, from what
particular view or aspect of nature, this account of things
derives its probability. By the wise contrivance of the Author of
nature, virtue is upon all ordinary occasions, even with regard to
this life, real wisdom, and the surest and readiest means of
obtaining both safety and advantage. Our success or disappointment
in our undertakings must very much depend upon the good or bad
opinion which is commonly entertained of us, and upon the general
disposition of those we live with, either to assist or to oppose
us. But the best, the surest, the easiest, and the readiest way of
obtaining the advantageous and of avoiding the unfavourable
judgments of others, is undoubtedly to render ourselves the proper
objects of the former and not of the latter. 'Do you desire,' said
Socrates, 'the reputation of a good musician? The only sure way of
obtaining it, is to become a good musician. Would you desire in
the same manner to be thought capable of serving your country
either as a general or as a statesman? The best way in this case
too is really to acquire the art and experience of war and
government, and to become really fit to be a general or a
statesman. And in the same manner if you would be reckoned sober,
temperate, just, and equitable, the best way of acquiring this
reputation is to become sober, temperate, just, and equitable. If
you can really render yourself amiable, respectable, and the
proper object of esteem, there is no fear of your not soon
acquiring the love, the respect, and esteem of those you live
with.' Since the practice of virtue, therefore, is in general so
advantageous, and that of vice so contrary to our interest, the
consideration of those opposite tendencies undoubtedly stamps an
additional beauty and propriety upon the one, and a new deformity
and impropriety upon the other. Temperance, magnanimity, justice,
and beneficence, come thus to be approved of, not only under their
proper characters, but under the additional character of the
highest wisDom and most real prudence. And in the same manner, the
contrary vices of intemperance, pusillanimity, injustice, and
either malevolence or sordid selfishness, come to be disapproved
of, not only under their proper characters, but under the
additional character of the most short-sighted folly and weakness.
Epicurus appears in every virtue to have attended to this species
of propriety only. It is that which is most apt to occur to those
who are endeavouring to persuade others to regularity of conduct.
When men by their practice, and perhaps too by their maxims,
manifestly show that the natural beauty of virtue is not like to
have much effect upon them, how is it possible to move them but by
representing the folly of their conduct, and how much they
themselves are in the end likely to suffer by it?
| |
VII.II.67 |
|
By running up all the different virtues too to this one species
of propriety, Epicurus indulged a propensity, which is natural to
all men, but which philosophers in particular are apt to cultivate
with a peculiar fondness, as the great means of displaying their
ingenuity, the propensity to account for all appearances from as
few principles as possible. And he, no doubt, indulged this
propensity still further, when he referred all the primary objects
of natural desire and aversion to the pleasures and pains of the
body. The great patron of the atomical philosophy, who took so
much pleasure in deducing all the powers and qualities of bodies
from the most obvious and familiar, the figure, motion, and
arrangement of the small parts of matter, felt no doubt a similar
satisfaction, when he accounted, in the same manner, for all the
sentiments and passions of the mind from those which are most
obvious and familiar. | |
VII.II.68 |
|
The system of Epicurus agreed with those of Plato, Aristotle,
and Zeno, in making virtue consist in acting in the most suitable
manner to obtain the primary objects of natural desire. It
differed from all of them in two other respects; first, in the
account which it gave of those primary objects of natural desire;
and secondly, in the account which it gave of the excellence of
virtue, or of the reason why that quality ought to be esteemed.
| |
VII.II.69 |
|
The primary objects of natural desire consisted, according to
Epicurus, in bodily pleasure and pain, and in nothing else:
whereas, according to the other three philosophers, there were
many other objects, such as knowledge, such as the happiness of
our relations, of our friends, of our country, which were
ultimately desirable for their own sakes.
| |
VII.II.70 |
|
Virtue too, according to Epicurus, did not deserve to be
pursued for its own sake, nor was itself one of the ultimate
objects of natural appetite, but was eligible only upon account of
its tendency to prevent pain and to procure ease and pleasure. In
the opinion of the other three, on the contrary, it was desirable,
not merely as the means of procuring the other primary objects of
natural desire, but as something which was in itself more valuable
than them all. Man, they thought, being born for action, his
happiness must consist, not merely in the agreeableness of his
passive sensations, but also in the propriety of his active
exertions. | |
VII.II.71 |
|
Chapter III - Of those Systems which make Virtue consist in
Benevolence
| |
|
The system which makes virtue consist in benevolence, though I
think not so ancient as all of those which I have already given an
account of, is, however, of very great antiquity. It seems to have
been the doctrine of the greater part of those philosophers who,
about and after the age of Augustus, called themselves Eclectics,
who pretended to follow chiefly the opinions of Plato and
Pythagoras, and who upon that account are commonly known by the
name of the later Platonists. | |
VII.II.72 |
|
In the divine nature, according to these authors, benevolence
or love was the sole principle of action, and directed the
exertion of all the other attributes. The wisdom of the Deity was
employed in finding out the means for bringing about those ends
which his goodness suggested, as his infinite power was exerted to
execute them. Benevolence, however, was still the supreme and
governing attribute, to which the others were subservient, and
from which the whole excellency, or the whole morality, if I may
be allowed such an expression, of the divine operations, was
ultimately derived. The whole perfection and virtue of the human
mind consisted in some resemblance or participation of the divine
perfections, and, consequently, in being filled with the same
principle of benevolence and love which influenced all the actions
of the Deity. The actions of men which flowed from this motive
were alone truly praise-worthy, or could claim any merit in the
sight of the Deity. It was by actions of charity and love only
that we could imitate, as became us, the conduct of God, that we
could express our humble and devout admiration of his infinite
perfections, that by fostering in our own minds the same divine
principle, we could bring our own affections to a greater
resemblance with his holy attributes, and thereby become more
proper objects of his love and esteem; till at last we arrived at
that immediate converse and communication with the Deity to which
it was the great object of this philosophy to raise us.
| |
VII.II.73 |
|
This system, as it was much esteemed by many ancient fathers of
the Christian church, so after the Reformation it was adopted by
several divines of the most eminent piety and learning and of the
most amiable manners; particularly, by Dr. Ralph Cudworth, by Dr.
Henry More, and by Mr. John Smith of Cambridge. But of all the
patrons of this system, ancient or modern, the late Dr. Hutcheson
was undoubtedly, beyond all comparison, the most acute, the most
distinct, the most philosophical, and what is of the greatest
consequence of all, the soberest and most judicious.
| |
VII.II.74 |
|
That virtue consists in benevolence is a notion supported by
many appearances in human nature. It has been observed already,
that proper benevolence is the most graceful and agreeable of all
the affections, that it is recommended to us by a double sympathy,
that as its tendency is necessarily beneficent, it is the proper
object of gratitude and reward, and that upon all these accounts
it appears to our natural sentiments to possess a merit superior
to any other. It has been observed too, that even the weaknesses
of benevolence are not very disagreeable to us, whereas those of
every other passion are always extremely disgusting. Who does not
abhor excessive malice, excessive selfishness, or excessive
resentment? But the most excessive indulgence even of partial
friendship is not so offensive. It is the benevolent passions only
which can exert themselves without any regard or attention to
propriety, and yet retain something about them which is engaging.
There is something pleasing even in mere instinctive good-will
which goes on to do good offices without once reflecting whether
by this conduct it is the proper object either of blame or
approbation. It is not so with the other passions. The moment they
are deserted, the moment they are unaccompanied by the sense of
propriety, they cease to be agreeable. | |
VII.II.75 |
|
As benevolence bestows upon those actions which proceed from
it, a beauty superior to all others, so the want of it, and much
more the contrary inclination, communicates a peculiar deformity
to whatever evidences such a disposition. Pernicious actions are
often punishable for no other reason than because they shew a want
of sufficient attention to the happiness of our neighbour.
| |
VII.II.76 |
|
Besides all this, Dr. Hutcheson observed that whenever in any action,
supposed to proceed from benevolent affections, some other motive
had been discovered, our sense of the merit of this action was
just so far diminished as this motive was believed to have
influenced it. If an action, supposed to proceed from gratitude,
should be discovered to have arisen from an expectation of some
new favour, or if what was apprehended to proceed from public
spirit, should be found out to have taken its origin from the hope
of a pecuniary reward, such a discovery would entirely destroy all
notion of merit or praise-worthiness in either of these actions.
Since, therefore, the mixture of any selfish motive, like that of
a baser alloy, diminished or took away altogether the merit which
would otherwise have belonged to any action, it was evident, he
imagined, that virtue must consist in pure and disinterested
benevolence alone. | |
VII.II.77 |
|
When those actions, on the contrary, which are commonly
supposed to proceed from a selfish motive, are discovered to have
arisen from a benevolent one, it greatly enhances our sense of
their merit. If we believed of any person that he endeavoured to
advance his fortune from no other view but that of doing friendly
offices, and of making proper returns to his benefactors, we
should only love and esteem him the more. And this observation
seemed still more to confirm the conclusion, that it was
benevolence only which could stamp upon any action the character
of virtue. | |
VII.II.78 |
|
Last of all, what, he imagined, was an evident proof of the
justness of this account of virtue, in all the disputes of
casuists concerning the rectitude of conduct, the public good, he
observed, was the standard to which they constantly referred;
thereby universally acknowledging that whatever tended to promote
the happiness of mankind was right and laudable and virtuous, and
the contrary, wrong, blamable, and vicious. In the late debates
about passive obeDience and the right of resistance, the sole
point in controversy among men of sense was, whether universal
submission would probably be attended with greater evils than
temporary insurrections when privileges were invaded. Whether
what, upon the whole, tended most to the happiness of mankind, was
not also morally good, was never once, he said, made a question.
| |
VII.II.79 |
|
Since benevolence, therefore, was the only motive which could
bestow upon any action the character of virtue, the greater the
benevolence which was evidenced by any action, the greater the
praise which must belong to it. | |
VII.II.80 |
|
Those actions which aimed at the happiness of a great
community, as they demonstrated a more enlarged benevolence than
those which aimed only at that of a smaller system, so were they,
likewise, proportionally the more virtuous. The most virtuous of
all affections, therefore, was that which embraced as its object
the happiness of all intelligent beings. The least virtuous, on
the contrary, of those to which the character of virtue could in
any respect belong, was that which aimed no further than at the
happiness of an individual, such as a son, a brother, a friend.
| |
VII.II.81 |
|
In directing all our actions to promote the greatest possible
good, in submitting all inferior affections to the desire of the
general happiness of mankind, in regarding one's self but as one
of the many, whose prosperity was to be pursued no further than it
was consistent with, or conducive to that of the whole, consisted
the perfection of virtue. | |
VII.II.82 |
|
Self-love was a principle which could never be virtuous in any
degree or in any direction. It was vicious whenever it obstructed
the general good. When it had no other effect than to make the
individual take care of his own happiness, it was merely innocent,
and though it deserved no praise, neither ought it to incur any
blame. Those benevolent actions which were performed,
notwithstanding some strong motive from self-interest, were the
more virtuous upon that account. They demonstrated the strength
and vigour of the benevolent principle.
| |
VII.II.83 |
|
Dr. Hutcheson was so far from allowing self-love to
be in any case a motive of virtuous actions, that even a regard to
the pleasure of self-approbation, to the comfortable applause of
our own consciences, according to him, diminished the merit of a
benevolent action. This was a selfish motive, he thought, which,
so far as it contributed to any action, demonstrated the weakness
of that pure and disinterested benevolence which could alone stamp
upon the conduct of man the character of virtue. In the common
judgments of mankind, however, this regard to the approbation of
our own minds is so far from being considered as what can in any
respect diminish the virtue of any action, that it is rather
looked upon as the sole motive which deserves the appellation of
virtuous. | |
VII.II.84 |
|
Such is the account given of the nature of virtue in this
amiable system, a system which has a peculiar tendency to nourish
and support in the human heart the noblest and the most agreeable
of all affections, and not only to check the injustice of
self-love, but in some measure to discourage that principle
altogether, by representing it as what could never reflect any
honour upon those who were influenced by it.
| |
VII.II.85 |
|
As some of the other systems which I have already given an
account of, do not sufficiently explain from whence arises the
peculiar excellency of the supreme virtue of beneficence, so this
system seems to have the contrary defect, of not sufficiently
explaining from whence arises our approbation of the inferior
virtues of prudence, vigilance, circumspection, temperance,
constancy, firmness. The view and aim of our affections, the
beneficent and hurtful effects which they tend to produce, are the
only qualities at all attended to in this system. Their propriety
and impropriety, their suitableness and unsuitableness, to the
cause which excites them, are disregarded altogether.
| |
VII.II.86 |
|
Regard to our own private
happiness and interest, too, appear upon many occasions very
laudable principles of action. The habits of oeconomy, industry,
discretion, attention, and application of thought, are generally
supposed to be cultivated from self-interested motives, and at the
same time are apprehended to be very praise-worthy qualities,
which deserve the esteem and approbation of every body. The
mixture of a selfish motive, it is true, seems often to sully the
beauty of those actions which ought to arise from a benevolent
affection. The cause of this, however, is not that self-love can
never be the motive of a virtuous action, but that the benevolent
principle appears in this particular case to want its due degree
of strength, and to be altogether unsuitable to its object. The
character, therefore, seems evidently imperfect, and upon the
whole to deserve blame rather than praise. The mixture of a
benevolent motive in an action to which self-love alone ought to
be sufficient to prompt us, is not so apt indeed to diminish our
sense of its propriety, or of the virtue of the person who
performs it. We are not ready to suspect any person of being
defective in selfishness. This is by no means the weak side of
human nature, or the failing of which we are apt to be suspicious.
If we could really believe, however, of any man, that, was it not
from a regard to his family and friends, he would not take that
proper care of his health, his life, or his fortune, to which
self-preservation alone ought to be sufficient to prompt him, it
would undoubtedly be a failing, though one of those amiable
failings, which render a person rather the object of pity than of
contempt or hatred. It would still, however, somewhat diminish the
dignity and respectableness of his character. Carelessness and
want of oeconomy are universally disapproved of, not, however, as
proceeding from a want of benevolence, but from a want of the
proper attention to the objects of self-interest.
| |
VII.II.87 |
|
Though the standard by which casuists frequently determine what
is right or wrong in human conduct, be its tendency to the welfare
or disorder of society, it does not follow that a regard to the
welfare of society should be the sole virtuous motive of action,
but only that, in any competition, it ought to cast the balance
against all other motives. | |
VII.II.88 |
|
Benevolence may, perhaps, be the sole principle of action in
the Deity, and there are several, not improbable, arguments which
tend to persuade us that it is so. It is not easy to conceive what
other motive an independent and all-perfect Being, who stands in
need of nothing external, and whose happiness is complete in
himself, can act from. But whatever may be the case with the
Deity, so imperfect a creature as man, the support of whose
existence requires so many things external to him, must often act
from many other motives. The condition of human nature were
peculiarly hard, if those affections, which, by the very nature of
our being, ought frequently to influence our conduct, could upon
no occasion appear virtuous, or deserve esteem and commendation
from any body. | |
VII.II.89 |
|
Those three systems, that which places virtue in propriety,
that which places it in prudence, and that which makes it consist
in benevolence, are the principal accounts which have been given
of the nature of virtue. To one or other of them, all the other
descriptions of virtue, how different soever they may appear, are
easily reducible. | |
VII.II.90 |
|
That system which places virtue in obedience to the will of the
Deity, may be counted either among those which make it consist in
prudence, or among those which make it consist in propriety. When
it is asked, why we ought to obey the will of the Deity, this
question, which would be impious and absurd in the highest degree,
if asked from any doubt that we ought to obey him, can admit but
of two different answers. It must either be said that we ought to
obey the will of the Deity because he is a Being of infinite
power, who will reward us eternally if we do so, and punish us
eternally if we do otherwise: or it must be said, that independent
of any regard to our own happiness, or to rewards and punishments
of any kind, there is a congruity and fitness that a creature
should obey its creator, that a limited and imperfect being should
submit to one of infinite and incomprehensible perfections.
Besides one or other of these two, it is impossible to conceive
that any other answer can be given to this question. If the first
answer be the proper one, virtue consists in prudence, or in the
proper pursuit of our own final interest and happiness; since it
is upon this account that we are obliged to obey the will of the
Deity. If the second answer be the proper one, virtue must consist
in propriety, since the ground of our obligation to obedience is
the suitableness or congruity of the sentiments of humility and
submission to the superiority of the object which excites them.
| |
VII.II.91 |
|
That system which places virtue in utility, coincides too with
that which makes it consist in propriety. According to this
system, all those qualities of the mind which are agreeable or
advantageous, either to the person himself or to others, are
approved of as virtuous, and the contrary disapproved of as
vicious. But the agreeableness or utility of any affection depends
upon the degree which it is allowed to subsist in. Every affection
is useful when it is confined to a certain degree of moderation;
and every affection is disadvantageous when it exceeds the proper
bounds. According to this system therefore, virtue consists not in
any one affection, but in the proper degree of all the affections.
The only difference between it and that which I have been
endeavouring to establish, is, that it makes utility, and not
sympathy, or the correspondent affection of the spectator, the
natural and original measure of this proper degree.
| |
VII.II.92 |
|
Chapter IV - Of licentious Systems
| |
|
All those systems, which I have hitherto given an account of,
suppose that there is a real and essential distinction between
vice and virtue, whatever these qualities may consist in. There is
a real and essential difference between the propriety and
impropriety of any affection, between benevolence and any other
principle of action, between real prudence and shortsighted folly
or precipitate rashness. In the main too all of them contribute to
encourage the praise-worthy, and to discourage the blamable
disposition. | |
VII.II.93 |
|
It may be true, perhaps, of some of them, that they tend, in
some measure, to break the balance of the affections, and to give
the mind a particular bias to some principles of action, beyond
the proportion that is due to them. The ancient systems, which
place virtue in propriety, seem chiefly to recommend the great,
the awful, and the respectable virtues, the virtues of
self-government and self-command; fortitude, magnanimity,
independency upon fortune, the contempt of all outward accidents,
of pain, poverty, exile, and death. It is in these great exertions
that the noblest propriety of conduct is displayed. The soft, the
amiable, the gentle virtues, all the virtues of indulgent humanity
are, in comparison, but little insisted upon, and seem, on the
contrary, by the Stoics in particular, to have been often regarded
as mere weaknesses which it behoved a wise man not to harbour in
his breast. | |
VII.II.94 |
|
The benevolent system, on the other hand, while it fosters and
encourages all those milder virtues in the highest degree, seems
entirely to neglect the more awful and respectable qualities of
the mind. It even denies them the appellation of virtues. It calls
them moral abilities, and treats them as qualities which do not
deserve the same sort of esteem and approbation, that is due to
what is properly denominated virtue. All those principles of
action which aim only at our own interest, it treats, if that be
possible, still worse. So far from having any merit of their own,
they diminish, it pretends, the merit of benevolence, when they
co-operate with it: and prudence, it is asserted, when employed
only in promoting private interest, can never even be imagined a
virtue. | |
VII.II.95 |
|
That system, again, which makes virtue consist in prudence
only, while it gives the highest encouragement to the habits of
caution, vigilance, sobriety, and judicious moderation, seems to
degrade equally both the amiable and respectable virtues, and to
strip the former of all their beauty, and the latter of all their
grandeur. | |
VII.II.96 |
|
But notwithstanding these defects, the general tendency of each
of those three systems is to encourage the best and most laudable
habits of the human mind: and it were well for society, if, either
mankind in general, or even those few who pretend to live
according to any philosophical rule, were to regulate their
conduct by the precepts of any one of them. We may learn from each
of them something that is both valuable and peculiar. If it was
possible, by precept and exhortation, to inspire the mind with
fortitude and magnanimity, the ancient systems of propriety would
seem sufficient to do this. Or if it was possible, by the same
means, to soften it into humanity, and to awaken the affections of
kindness and general love towards those we live with, some of the
pictures with which the benevolent system presents us, might seem
capable of producing this effect. We may learn from the system of
Epicurus, though undoubtedly the most imperfect of all the three,
how much the practice of both the amiable and respectable virtues
is conducive to our own interest, to our own ease and safety and
quiet even in this life. As Epicurus placed happiness in the
attainment of ease and security, he exerted himself in a
particular manner to show that virtue was, not merely the best and
the surest, but the only means of acquiring those invaluable
possessions. The good effects of virtue, upon our inward
tranquillity and peace of mind, are what other philosophers have
chiefly celebrated. Epicurus, without neglecting this topic, has
chiefly insisted upon the influence of that amiable quality on our
outward prosperity and safety. It was upon this account that his
writings were so much studied in the ancient world by men of all
different philosophical parties. It is from him that Cicero, the
great enemy of the Epicurean system, borrows his most agreeable
proofs that virtue alone is sufficient to secure happiness.
Seneca, though a Stoic, the sect most opposite to that of
Epicurus, yet quotes this philosopher more frequently than any
other. | |
VII.II.97 |
|
There is, however, another system which seems to take away
altogether the distinction between vice and virtue, and of which
the tendency is, upon that account, wholly pernicious: I mean the
system of Dr. Mandeville. Though the notions of this author are in
almost every respect erroneous, there are, however, some
appearances in human nature, which, when viewed in a certain
manner, seem at first sight to favour them. These, described and
exaggerated by the lively and humorous, though coarse and rustic
eloquence of Dr. Mandeville, have thrown upon his doctrines an air
of truth and probability which is very apt to impose upon the
unskilful. | |
VII.II.98 |
|
Dr. Mandeville considers whatever is done from a sense of
propriety, from a regard to what is commendable and praise-worthy,
as being done from a love of praise and commendation, or as he
calls it from vanity. Man, he observes, is naturally much more
interested in his own happiness than in that of others, and it is
impossible that in his heart he can ever really prefer their
prosperity to his own. Whenever he appears to do so, we may be
assured that he imposes upon us, and that he is then acting from
the same selfish motives as at all other times. Among his other
selfish passions, vanity is one of the strongest, and he is always
easily flattered and greatly delighted with the applauses of those
about him. When he appears to sacrifice his own interest to that
of his companions, he knows that his conduct will be highly
agreeable to their self-love, and that they will not fail to
express their satisfaction by bestowing upon him the most
extravagant praises. The pleasure which he expects from this,
over-balances, in his opinion, the interest which he abandons in
order to procure it. His conduct, therefore, upon this occasion,
is in reality just as selfish, and arises from just as mean a
motive, as upon any other. He is flattered, however, and he
flatters himself, with the belief that it is entirely
disinterested; since, unless this was supposed, it would not seem
to merit any commendation either in his own eyes or in those of
others. All public spirit, therefore, all preference of public to
private interest, is, according to him, a mere cheat and
imposition upon mankind; and that human virtue which is so much
boasted of, and which is the occasion of so much emulation among
men, is the mere offspring of flattery begot upon pride.
| |
VII.II.99 |
|
Whether the most generous and public-spirited actions may not,
in some sense, be regarded as proceeding from self-love, I shall
not at present examine. The decision of this question is not, I
apprehend, of any importance towards establishing the reality of
virtue, since self-love may frequently be a virtuous motive of
action. I shall only endeavour to show that the desire of doing
what is honourable and noble, of rendering ourselves the proper
objects of esteem and approbation, cannot with any propriety be
called vanity. Even the love of well-grounded fame and reputation,
the desire of acquiring esteem by what is really estimable, does
not deserve that name. The first is the love of virtue, the
noblest and the best passion in human nature. The second is the
love of true glory, a passion inferior no doubt to the former, but
which in dignity appears to come immediately after it. He is
guilty of vanity who desires praise for qualities which are either
not praise-worthy in any degree, or not in that degree in which he
expects to be praised for them who sets his character upon the
frivolous ornaments of dress and equipage, or upon the equally
frivolous accomplishments of ordinary behaviour. He is guilty of
vanity who desires praise for what indeed very well deserves it,
but what he perfectly knows does not belong to him. The empty
coxcomb who gives himself airs of importance which he has no title
to, the silly liar who assumes the merit of adventures which never
happened, the foolish plagiary who gives himself out for the
author of what he has no pretensions to, are properly accused of
this passion. He too is said to be guilty of vanity who is not
contented with the silent sentiments of esteem and approbation,
who seems to be fonder of their noisy expressions and acclamations
than of the sentiments themselves, who is never satisfied but when
his own praises are ringing in his ears, and who solicits with the
most anxious importunity all external marks of respect, is fond of
titles, of compliments, of being visited, of being attended, of
being taken notice of in public places with the appearance of
deference and attention. This frivolous passion is altogether
different from either of the two former, and is the passion of the
lowest and the least of mankind, as they are of the noblest and
the greatest. | |
VII.II.100 |
|
But though these three passions, the desire of rendering
ourselves the proper objects of honour and esteem; or of becoming
what is honourable and estimable; the desire of acquiring honour
and esteem by really deserving those sentiments; and the frivolous
desire of praise at any rate, are widely different; though the two
former are always approved of, while the latter never fails to be
despised; there is, however, a certain remote affinity among them,
which, exaggerated by the humorous and diverting eloquence of this
lively author, has enabled him to impose upon his readers. There
is an affinity between vanity and the love of true glory, as both
these passions aim at acquiring esteem and approbation. But they
are different in this, that the one is a just, reasonable, and
equitable passion, while the other is unjust, absurd, and
ridiculous. The man who desires esteem for what is really
estimable, desires nothing but what he is justly entitled to, and
what cannot be refused him without some sort of injury. He, on the
contrary, who desires it upon any other terms, demands what he has
no just claim to. The first is easily satisfied, is not apt to be
jealous or suspicious that we do not esteem him enough, and is
seldom solicitous about receiving many external marks of our
regard. The other, on the contrary, is never to be satisfied, is
full of jealousy and suspicion that we do not esteem him so much
as he desires, because he has some secret consciousness that he
desires more than he deserves. The least neglect of ceremony, he
considers as a mortal affront, and as an expression of the most
determined contempt. He is restless and impatient, and perpetually
afraid that we have lost all respect for him, and is upon this
account always anxious to obtain new expressions of esteem, and
cannot be kept in temper but by continual attention and adulation.
| |
VII.II.101 |
|
There is an affinity too between the desire of becoming what is
honourable and estimable, and the desire of honour and esteem,
between the love of virtue and the love of true glory. They
resemble one another not only in this respect, that both aim at
really being what is honourable and noble, but even in that
respect in which the love of true glory resembles what is properly
called vanity, some reference to the sentiments of others. The man
of the greatest magnanimity, who desires virtue for its own sake,
and is most indifferent about what actually are the opinions of
mankind with regard to him, is still, however, delighted with the
thoughts of what they should be, with the consciousness that
though he may neither be honoured nor applauded, he is still the
proper object of honour and applause, and that if mankind were
cool and candid and consistent with themselves, and properly
informed of the motives and circumstances of his conduct, they
would not fail to honour and applaud him. Though he despises the
opinions which are actually entertained of him, he has the highest
value for those which ought to be entertained of him. That he
might think himself worthy of those honourable sentiments, and,
whatever was the idea which other men might conceive of his
character, that when he should put himself in their situation, and
consider, not what was, but what ought to be their opinion, he
should always have the highest idea of it himself, was the great
and exalted motive of his conduct. As even in the love of virtue,
therefore, there is still some reference, though not to what is,
yet to what in reason and propriety ought to be, the opinion of
others, there is even in this respect some affinity between it,
and the love of true glory. There is, however, at the same time, a
very great difference between them. The man who acts solely from a
regard to what is right and fit to be done, from a regard to what
is the proper object of esteem and approbation, though these
sentiments should never be bestowed upon him, acts from the most
sublime and godlike motive which human nature is even capable of
conceiving. The man, on the other hand, who while he desires to
merit approbation is at the same time anxious to obtain it, though
he too is laudable in the main, yet his motives have a greater
mixture of human infirmity. He is in danger of being mortified by
the ignorance and injustice of mankind, and his happiness is
exposed to the envy of his rivals and the folly of the public. The
happiness of the other, on the contrary, is altogether secure and
independent of fortune, and of the caprice of those he lives with.
The contempt and hatred which may be thrown upon him by the
ignorance of mankind, he considers as not belonging to him, and is
not at all mortified by it. Mankind despise and hate him from a
false notion of his character and conduct. If they knew him
better, they would esteem and love him. It is not him whom,
properly speaking, they hate and despise, but another person whom
they mistake him to be. Our friend, whom we should meet at a
masquerade in the garb of our enemy, would be more diverted than
mortified, if under that disguise we should vent our indignation
against him. Such are the sentiments of a man of real magnanimity,
when exposed to unjust censure. It seldom happens, however, that
human nature arrives at this degree of firmness. Though none but
the weakest and most worthless of mankind are much delighted with
false glory, yet, by a strange inconsistency, false ignominy is
often capable of mortifying those who appear the most resolute and
determined. | |
VII.II.102 |
|
Dr. Mandeville is not satisfied with representing the frivolous
motive of vanity, as the source of all those actions which are
commonly accounted virtuous. He endeavours to point out the
imperfection of human virtue in many other respects. In every
case, he pretends, it falls short of that complete self-denial
which it pretends to, and, instead of a conquest, is commonly no
more than a concealed indulgence of our passions. Wherever our
reserve with regard to pleasure falls short of the most ascetic
abstinence, he treats it as gross luxury and sensuality. Every
thing, according to him, is luxury which exceeds what is
absolutely necessary for the support of human nature, so that
there is vice even in the use of a clean shirt, or of a convenient
habitation. The indulgence of the inclination to sex, in the most
lawful union, he considers as the same sensuality with the most
hurtful gratification of that passion, and derides that temperance
and that chastity which can be practised at so cheap a rate. The
ingenious sophistry of his reasoning, is here, as upon many other
occasions, covered by the ambiguity of language. There are some of
our passions which have no other names except those which mark the
disagreeable and offensive degree. The spectator is more apt to
take notice of them in this degree than in any other. When they
shock his own sentiments, when they give him some sort of
antipathy and uneasiness, he is necessarily obliged to attend to
them, and is from thence naturally led to give them a name. When
they fall in with the natural state of his own mind, he is very
apt to overlook them altogether, and either gives them no name at
all, or, if he give them any, it is one which marks rather the
subjection and restraint of the passion, than the degree which it
still is allowed to subsist in, after it is so subjected and
restrained. Thus the common names of the love of pleasure, and of the
love of sex, denote a vicious and offensive degree of those
passions. The words temperance and chastity, on the other hand,
seem to mark rather the restraint and subjection which they are
kept under, than the degree which they are still allowed to
subsist in. When he can show, therefore, that they still subsist
in some degree, he imagines, he has entirely demolished the
reality of the virtues of temperance and chastity, and shown them
to be mere impositions upon the inattention and simplicity of
mankind. Those virtues, however, do not require an entire
insensibility to the objects of the passions which they mean to
govern. They only aim at restraining the violence of those
passions so far as not to hurt the individual, and neither disturb
nor offend the society. | |
VII.II.103 |
|
It is the great fallacy of Dr. Mandeville's book to represent every passion as wholly
vicious, which is so in any degree and in any direction. It is
thus that he treats every thing as vanity which has any reference,
either to what are, or to what ought to be the sentiments of
others: and it is by means of this sophistry, that he establishes
his favourite conclusion, that private vices are public benefits.
If the love of magnificence, a taste for the elegant arts and
improvements of human life, for whatever is agreeable in dress,
furniture, or equipage, for architecture, statuary, painting, and
music, is to be regarded as luxury, sensuality, and ostentation,
even in those whose situation allows, without any inconveniency,
the indulgence of those passions, it is certain that luxury,
sensuality, and ostentation are public benefits: since without the
qualities upon which he thinks proper to bestow such opprobrious
names, the arts of refinement could never find encouragement, and
must languish for want of employment. Some popular ascetic
doctrines which had been current before his time, and which placed
virtue in the entire extirpation and annihilation of all our
passions, were the real foundation of this licentious system. It
was easy for Dr . Mandeville to prove, first, that this entire
conquest never actually took place among men; and secondly, that,
if it was to take place universally, it would be pernicious to
society, by putting an end to all industry and commerce, and in a
manner to the whole business of human life. By the first of these
propositions he seemed to prove that there was no real virtue, and
that what pretended to be such, was a mere cheat and imposition
upon mankind; and by the second, that private vices were public
benefits, since without them no society could prosper or flourish.
| |
VII.II.104 |
|
Such is the system of Dr. Mandeville, which once made so much
noise in the world, and which, though, perhaps, it never gave
occasion to more vice than what would have been without it, at
least taught that vice, which arose from other causes, to appear
with more effrontery, and to avow the corruption of its motives
with a profligate audaciousness which had never been heard of
before. | |
VII.II.105 |
|
But how destructive soever this system may appear, it could
never have imposed upon so great a number of persons, nor have
occasioned so general an alarm among those who are the friends of
better principles, had it not in some respects bordered upon the
truth. A system of natural philosophy may appear very plausible,
and be for a long time very generally received in the world, and
yet have no foundation in nature, nor any sort of resemblance to
the truth. The vortices of Des Cartes were regarded by a very
ingenious nation, for near a century together, as a most
satisfactory account of the revolutions of the heavenly bodies.
Yet it has been demonstrated, to the conviction of all mankind,
that these pretended causes of those wonderful effects, not only
do not actually exist, but are utterly impossible, and if they did
exist, could produce no such effects as are ascribed to them. But
it is otherwise with systems of moral philosophy, and an author
who pretends to account for the origin of our moral sentiments,
cannot deceive us so grossly, nor depart so very far from all
resemblance to the truth. When a traveller gives an account of
some distant country, he may impose upon our credulity the most
groundless and absurd fictions as the most certain matters of
fact. But when a person pretends to inform us of what passes in
our neighbourhood, and of the affairs of the very parish which we
live in, though here too, if we are so careless as not to examine
things with our own eves, he may deceive us in many respects, yet
the greatest falsehoods which he imposes upon us must bear some
resemblance to the truth, and must even have a considerable
mixture of truth in them. An author who treats of natural
philosophy, and pretends to assign the causes of the great
phaenomena of the universe, pretends to give an account of the
affairs of a very distant country, concerning which he may tell us
what he pleases, and as long as his narration keeps within the
bounds of seeming possibility, he need not despair of gaining our
belief. But when he proposes to explain the origin of our desires
and affections, of our sentiments of approbation and
disapprobation, he pretends to give an account, not only of the
affairs of the very parish that we live in, but of our own
domestic concerns. Though here too, like indolent masters who put
their trust in a steward who deceives them, we are very liable to
be imposed upon, yet we are incapable of passing any account which
does not preserve some little regard to the truth. Some of the
articles, at least, must be just, and even those which are most
overcharged must have had some foundation, otherwise the fraud
would be detected even by that careless inspection which we are
disposed to give. The author who should assign, as the cause of
any natural sentiment, some principle which neither had any
connexion with it, nor resembled any other principle which had
some such connexion, would appear absurd and ridiculous to the
most injudicious and unexperienced reader.
| |
VII.II.106 |
|
Section III - Of the different Systems which have been
formed concerning the Principle of Approbation
| |
|
After the
inquiry concerning the nature of virtue, the next question of
importance in Moral Philosophy, is concerning the principle of
approbation, concerning the power or faculty of the mind which
renders certain characters agreeable or disagreeable to us, makes
us prefer one tenour of conduct to another, denominate the one
right and the other wrong, and consider the one as the object of
approbation, honour, and reward; the other as that of blame,
censure, and punishment. | |
VII.III.1 |
|
Three different accounts have been given of this principle of
approbation. According to some, we approve and disapprove both of
our own actions and of those of others, from self-love only, or
from some view of their tendency to our own happiness or
disadvantage: according to others, reason, the same faculty by
which we distinguish between truth and falsehood, enables us to
distinguish between what is fit and unfit both in actions and
affections: accorDing to others this distinction is altogether the
effect of immediate sentiment and feeling, and arises from the
satisfaction or disgust with which the view of certain actions or
affections inspires us. Self-love, reason, and sentiment,
therefore, are the three different sources which have been
assigned for the principle of approbation.
| |
VII.III.2 |
|
Before I proceed to give an account of those different systems,
I must observe, that the determination of this second question,
though of the greatest importance in speculation, is of none in
practice. The question concerning the nature of virtue necessarily
has some influence upon our notions of right and wrong in many
particular cases. That concerning the principle of approbation can
possibly have no such effect. To examine from what contrivance or
mechanism within, those different notions or sentiments arise, is
a mere matter of philosophical curiosity.
| |
VII.III.3 |
|
Chapter I - Of those Systems which deduce the Principle of
Approbation from Self-love
| |
|
Those who account for the principle of approbation from
self-love, do not all account for it in the same manner, and there
is a good deal of confusion and inaccuracy in all their different
systems. According to Mr. Hobbes, and many of his followers,
man is driven to take refuge in
society, not by any natural love which he bears to his own kind,
but because without the assistance of others he is incapable of
subsisting with ease or safety. Society, upon this account,
becomes necessary to him, and whatever tends to its support and
welfare, he considers as having a remote tendency to his own
interest; and, on the contrary, whatever is likely to disturb or
destroy it, he regards as in some measure hurtful or pernicious to
himself. Virtue is the great support, and vice the great disturber
of human society. The former, therefore, is agreeable, and the
latter offensive to every man; as from the one he foresees the
prosperity, and from the other the ruin and disorder of what is so
necessary for the comfort and security of his existence.
| |
VII.III.4 |
|
That the tendency of virtue to promote, and of vice to disturb
the order of society, when we consider it coolly and
philosophically, reflects a very great beauty upon the one, and a
very great deformity upon the other, cannot, as I have observed
upon a former occasion, be called in question. Human society, when
we contemplate it in a certain abstract and philosophical light,
appears like a great, an immense machine, whose regular and
harmonious movements produce a thousand agreeable effects. As in
any other beautiful and noble machine that was the production of
human art, whatever tended to render its movements more smooth and
easy, would derive a beauty from this effect, and, on the
contrary, whatever tended to obstruct them would displease upon
that account: so virtue, which is, as it were, the fine polish to
the wheels of society, necessarily pleases; while vice, like the
vile rust, which makes them jar and grate upon one another, is as
necessarily offensive. This account, therefore, of the origin of
approbation and disapprobation, so far as it derives them from a
regard to the order of society, runs into that principle which
gives beauty to utility, and which I have explained upon a former
occasion; and it is from thence that this system derives all that
appearance of probability which it possesses. When those authors
describe the innumerable advantages of a cultivated and social,
above a savage and solitary life; when they expatiate upon the
necessity of virtue and good order for the maintenance of the one,
and demonstrate how infallibly the prevalence of vice and
disobedience to the laws tend to bring back the other, the reader
is charmed with the novelty and grandeur of those views which they
open to him: he sees plainly a new beauty in virtue, and a new
deformity in vice, which he had never taken notice of before, and
is commonly so delighted with the discovery, that he seldom takes
time to reflect, that this political view, having never occurred
to him in his life before, cannot possibly be the ground of that
approbation and disapprobation with which he has always been
accustomed to consider those different qualities.
| |
VII.III.5 |
|
When those authors, on the other hand, deduce from self-love
the interest which we take in the welfare of society, and the
esteem which upon that account we bestow upon virtue, they do not
mean, that when we in this age applaud the virtue of Cato, and
detest the villany of Catiline, our sentiments are influenced by
the notion of any benefit we receive from the one, or of any
detriment we suffer from the other. It was not because the
prosperity or subversion of society, in those remote ages and
nations, was apprehended to have any influence upon our happiness
or misery in the present times; that according to those
philosophers, we esteemed the virtuous, and blamed the disorderly
characters. They never imagined that our sentiments were
influenced by any benefit or damage which we supposed actually to
redound to us, from either; but by that which might have redounded
to us, had we lived in those distant ages and countries; or by
that which might still redound to us, if in our own times we
should meet with characters of the same kind. The idea, in short,
which those authors were groping about, but which they were never
able to unfold distinctly, was that indirect sympathy which we
feel with the gratitude or resentment of those who received the
benefit or suffered the damage resulting from such opposite
characters: and it was this which they were indistinctly pointing
at, when they said, that it was not the thought of what we had
gained or suffered which prompted our applause or indignation, but
the conception or imagination of what we might gain or suffer if
we were to act in society with such associates.
| |
VII.III.6 |
|
Sympathy, however, cannot, in any sense, be regarded as a
selfish principle. When I sympathize with your sorrow or your
indignation, it may be pretended, indeed, that my emotion is
founded in self-love, because it arises from bringing your case
home to myself, from putting myself in your situation, and thence
conceiving what I should feel in the like circumstances. But
though sympathy is very properly said to arise from an imaginary
change of situations with the person principally concerned, yet
this imaginary change is not supposed to happen to me in my own
person and character, but in that of the person with whom I
sympathize. When I condole with you for the loss of your only son,
in order to enter into your grief I do not consider what I, a
person of such a character and profession, should suffer, if I had
a son, and if that son was unfortunately to die: but I consider
what I should suffer if I was really you, and I not only change
circumstances with you, but I change persons and characters. My
grief, therefore, is entirely upon your account, and not in the
least upon my own. It is not, therefore, in the least selfish. How
can that be regarded as a selfish passion, which does not arise
even from the imagination of any thing that has befallen, or that
relates to myself, in my own proper person and character, but
which is entirely occupied about what relates to you? A man may
sympathize with a woman in child-bed; though it is impossible that
he should conceive himself as suffering her pains in his own
proper person and character. That whole account of human nature,
however, which deduces all sentiments and affections from
self-love, which has made so much noise in the world, but which,
so far as I know, has never yet been fully and distinctly
explained, seems to me to have arisen from some confused
misapprehension of the system of sympathy.
| |
VII.III.7 |
|
Chapter II - Of those Systems which make Reason the
Principle of Approbation
| |
|
It is well known to have been the doctrine of Mr. Hobbes, that
a state of nature is a state of war; and that antecedent to the
institution of civil government there could be no safe or
peaceable society among men. To preserve society, therefore,
according to him, was to support civil government, and to destroy
civil government was the same thing as to put an end to society.
But the existence of civil government depends upon the obedience
that is paid to the supreme magistrate. The moment he loses his
authority, all government is at an end. As self-preservation,
therefore, teaches men to applaud whatever tends to promote the
welfare of society, and to blame whatever is likely to hurt it; so
the same principle, if they would think and speak consistently,
ought to teach them to applaud upon all occasions obedience to the
civil magistrate, and to blame all disobedience and rebellion. The
very ideas of laudable and blamable, ought to be the same with
those of obedience and disobedience. The laws of the civil
magistrate, therefore, ought to be regarded as the sole ultimate
standards of what was just and unjust, of what was right and
wrong. | |
VII.III.8 |
|
It was the avowed intention of Mr. Hobbes, by propagating these
notions, to subject the consciences of men immediately to the
civil, and not to the ecclesiastical powers, whose turbulence and
ambition, he had been taught, by the example of his own times, to
regard as the principal source of the disorders of society. His
doctrine, upon this account, was peculiarly offensive to
theologians, who accordingly did not fail to vent their
indignation against him with great asperity and bitterness. It was
likewise offensive to all sound moralists, as it supposed that
there was no natural distinction between right and wrong, that
these were mutable and changeable, and depended upon the mere
arbitrary will of the civil magistrate. This account of things,
therefore, was attacked from all quarters, and by all sorts of
weapons, by sober reason as well as by furious declamation.
| |
VII.III.9 |
|
In order to confute so odious a doctrine, it was necessary to
prove, that antecedent to all law or positive institution, the
mind was naturally endowed with a faculty, by which it
distinguished in certain actions and affections, the qualities of
right, laudable, and virtuous, and in others those of wrong,
blamable, and vicious. | |
VII.III.10 |
|
Law, it was justly observed by Dr. Cudworth, could not be the original source of
those distinctions; since upon the supposition of such a law, it
must either be right to obey it, and wrong to disobey it, or
indifferent whether we obeyed it, or disobeyed it. That law which
it was indifferent whether we obeyed or disobeyed, could not, it
was evident, be the source of those distinctions; neither could
that which it was right to obey and wrong to disobey, since even
this still supposed the antecedent notions or ideas of right and
wrong, and that obedience to the law was conformable to the idea
of right, and disobedience to that of wrong.
| |
VII.III.11 |
|
Since the mind, therefore, had a notion of those distinctions
antecedent to all law, it seemed necessarily to follow, that it
derived this notion from reason, which pointed out the difference
between right and wrong, in the same manner in which it did that
between truth and falsehood: and this conclusion, which, though
true in some respects, is rather hasty in others, was more easily
received at a time when the abstract science of human nature was
but in its infancy, and before the distinct offices and powers of
the different faculties of the human mind had been carefully
examined and distinguished from one another. When this controversy
with Mr. Hobbes was carried on with the greatest warmth and
keenness, no other faculty had been thought of from which any such
ideas could possibly be supposed to arise. It became at this time,
therefore, the popular doctrine, that the essence of virtue and
vice did not consist in the conformity or disagreement of human
actions with the law of a superior, but in their conformity or
disagreement with reason, which was thus considered as the
original source and principle of approbation and disapprobation.
| |
VII.III.12 |
|
That virtue consists in conformity to reason, is true in some
respects, and this faculty may very justly be considered as, in
some sense, the source and principle of approbation and
disapprobation, and of all solid judgments concerning right and
wrong. It is by reason that we discover those general rules of
justice by which we ought to regulate our actions: and it is by
the same faculty that we form those more vague and indeterminate
ideas of what is prudent, of what is decent, of what is generous
or noble, which we carry constantly about with us, and according
to which we endeavour, as well as we can, to model the tenor of
our conduct. The general maxims of morality are formed, like all
other general maxims, from experience and induction. We observe in
a great variety of particular cases what pleases or displeases our
moral faculties, what these approve or disapprove of, and, by
induction from this experience, we establish those general rules.
But induction is always regarded as one of the operations of
reason. From reason, therefore, we are very properly said to
derive all those general maxims and ideas. It is by these,
however, that we regulate the greater part of our moral judgments,
which would be extremely uncertain and precarious if they depended
altogether upon what is liable to so many variations as immediate
sentiment and feeling, which the different states of health and
humour are capable of altering so essentially. As our most solid
judgments, therefore, with regard to right and wrong, are
regulated by maxims and ideas derived from an induction of reason,
virtue may very properly be said to consist in a conformity to
reason, and so far this faculty may be considered as the source
and principle of approbation and disapprobation.
| |
VII.III.13 |
|
But though reason is undoubtedly the source of the general
rules of morality, and of all the moral judgments which we form by
means of them; it is altogether absurd and unintelligible to
suppose that the first perceptions of right and wrong can be
derived from reason, even in those particular cases upon the
experience of which the general rules are formed. These first
perceptions, as well as all other experiments upon which any
general rules are founded, cannot be the object of reason, but of
immediate sense and feeling. It is by finding in a vast variety of
instances that one tenor of conduct constantly pleases in a
certain manner, and that another as constantly displeases the
mind, that we form the general rules of morality. But reason
cannot render any particular object either agreeable or
disagreeable to the mind for its own sake. Reason may show that
this object is the means of obtaining some other which is
naturally either pleasing or displeasing, and in this manner may
render it either agreeable or disagreeable for the sake of
something else. But nothing can be agreeable or disagreeable for
its own sake, which is not rendered such by immediate sense and
feeling. If virtue, therefore, in every particular instance,
necessarily pleases for its own sake, and if vice as certainly
displeases the mind, it cannot be reason, but immediate sense and
feeling, which, in this manner, reconciles us to the one, and
alienates us from the other. | |
VII.III.14 |
|
Pleasure and pain are the great objects of desire and aversion:
but these are distinguished not by reason, but by immediate sense
and feeling. If virtue, therefore, be desirable for its own sake,
and if vice be, in the same manner, the object of aversion, it
cannot be reason which originally distinguishes those different
qualities, but immediate sense and feeling.
| |
VII.III.15 |
|
As reason, however, in a certain sense, may justly be
considered as the principle of approbation and disapprobation,
these sentiments were, through inattention, long regarded as
originally flowing from the operations of this faculty. Dr.
Hutcheson had the merit of being the first who distinguished with
any degree of precision in what respect all moral distinctions may
be said to arise from reason, and in what respect they are founded
upon immediate sense and feeling. In his illustrations upon the
moral sense he has explained this so fully, and, in my opinion, so
unanswerably, that, if any controversy is still kept up about this
subject, I can impute it to nothing, but either to inattention to
what that gentleman has written, or to a superstitious attachment
to certain forms of expression, a weakness not very uncommon among
the learned, especially in subjects so deeply interesting as the
present, in which a man of virtue is often loath to abandon, even
the propriety of a single phrase which he has been accustomed to.
| |
VII.III.16 |
|
Chapter III - Of those Systems which make Sentiment the
Principle of Approbation
| |
|
Those systems which make sentiment the principle of approbation
may be divided into two different classes.
| |
VII.III.17 |
|
I. According to some the principle of approbation is founded
upon a sentiment of a peculiar nature, upon a particular power of
perception exerted by the mind at the view of certain actions or
affections; some of which affecting this faculty in an agreeable
and others in a disagreeable manner, the former are stamped with
the characters of right, laudable, and virtuous; the latter with
those of wrong, blamable, and vicious. This sentiment being of a
peculiar nature distinct from every other, and the effect of a
particular power of perception, they give it a particular name,
and call it a moral sense. | |
VII.III.18 |
|
II. According to others, in order to account for the principle
of approbation, there is no occasion for supposing any new power
of perception which had never been heard of before: Nature, they
imagine, acts here, as in all other cases, with the strictest
oeconomy, and produces a multitude of effects from one and the
same cause; and sympathy, a power which has always been taken
notice of, and with which the mind is manifestly endowed, is, they
think, sufficient to account for all the effects ascribed to this
peculiar faculty. | |
VII.III.19 |
|
I. Dr. Hutcheson had been at great pains to prove that
the principle of approbation was not founded on self-love. He had
demonstrated too that it could not arise from any operation of
reason. Nothing remained, he thought, but to suppose it a faculty
of a peculiar kind, with which Nature had endowed the human mind,
in order to produce this one particular and important effect. When
self-love and reason were both excluded, it did not occur to him
that there was any other known faculty of the mind which could in
any respect answer this purpose. | |
VII.III.20 |
|
This new power of perception he called a moral sense, and
supposed it to be somewhat analogous to the external senses. As
the bodies around us, by affecting these in a certain manner,
appear to possess the different qualities of sound, taste, odour,
colour; so the various affections of the human mind, by touching
this particular faculty in a certain manner, appear to possess the
different qualities of amiable and odious, of virtuous and
vicious, of right and wrong. | |
VII.III.21 |
|
The various senses or powers of perception,
from which the human mind derives all
its simple ideas, were, according to this system, of two different
kinds, of which the one were called the direct or antecedent, the
other, the reflex or consequent senses. The direct senses were
those faculties from which the mind derived the perception of such
species of things as did not presuppose the antecedent perception
of any other. Thus sounds and colours were objects of the direct
senses. To hear a sound or to see a colour does not presuppose the
antecedent perception of any other quality or object. The reflex
or consequent senses, on the other hand, were those faculties from
which the mind derived the perception of such species of things as
presupposed the antecedent perception of some other. Thus harmony
and beauty were objects of the reflex senses. In order to perceive
the harmony of a sound, or the beauty of a colour, we must first
perceive the sound or the colour. The moral sense was considered
as a faculty of this kind. That faculty, which Mr. Locke calls
reflection, and from which he derived the simple ideas of the
different passions and emotions of the human mind, was, according
to Dr. Hutcheson, a direct internal sense. That faculty again by
which we perceived the beauty or deformity, the virtue or vice of
those different passions and emotions, was a reflex, internal
sense. | |
VII.III.22 |
|
Dr. Hutcheson endeavoured still further to support this
doctrine, by shewing that it was agreeable to the analogy of
nature, and that the mind was endowed with a variety of other
reflex senses exactly similar to the moral sense; such as a sense
of beauty and deformity in external objects; a public sense, by
which we sympathize with the happiness or misery of our
fellow-creatures; a sense of shame and honour, and a sense of
ridicule. | |
VII.III.23 |
|
But notwithstanding all the pains which this ingenious
philosopher has taken to prove that the principle of approbation
is founded in a peculiar power of perception, somewhat analogous
to the external senses, there are some consequences, which he
acknowledges to follow from this doctrine, that will, perhaps, be
regarded by many as a sufficient confutation of it. The qualities
he allows, which belong to the objects of any
sense, cannot, without the greatest absurdity, be ascribed to the
sense itself. Who ever thought of calling the sense of seeing
black or white, the sense of hearing loud or low, or the sense of
tasting sweet or bitter? And, according to him, it is equally
absurd to call our moral faculties virtuous or vicious, morally
good or evil. These qualities belong to the objects of those
faculties, not to the faculties themselves. If any man, therefore,
was so absurdly constituted as to approve of cruelty and injustice
as the highest virtues, and to disapprove of equity and humanity
as the most pitiful vices, such a constitution of mind might
indeed be regarded as inconvenient both to the individual and to
the society, and likewise as strange, surprising, and unnatural in
itself; but it could not, without the greatest absurdity, be
denominated vicious or morally evil. | |
VII.III.24 |
|
Yet surely if we saw any man shouting with admiration and
applause at a barbarous and unmerited execution, which some
insolent tyrant had ordered, we should not think we were guilty of
any great absurdity in denominating this behaviour vicious and
morally evil in the highest degree, though it expressed nothing
but depraved moral faculties, or an absurd approbation of this
horrid action, as of what was noble, magnanimous, and great. Our
heart, I imagine, at the sight of such a spectator, would forget
for a while its sympathy with the sufferer, and feel nothing but
horror and detestation, at the thought of so execrable a wretch.
We should abominate him even more than the tyrant who might be
goaded on by the strong passions of jealousy, fear, and
resentment, and upon that account be more excusable. But the
sentiments of the spectator would appear altogether without cause
or motive, and therefore most perfectly and completely detestable.
There is no perversion of sentiment or affection which our heart
would be more averse to enter into, or which it would reject with
greater hatred and indignation than one of this kind; and so far
from regarding such a constitution of mind as being merely
something strange or inconvenient, and not in any respect vicious
or morally evil, we should rather consider it as the very last and
most dreadful stage of moral depravity.
| |
VII.III.25 |
|
Correct moral sentiments, on the contrary, naturally appear in
some degree laudable and morally good. The man, whose censure and
applause are upon all occasions suited with the greatest accuracy
to the value or unworthiness of the object, seems to deserve a
degree even of moral approbation. We admire the delicate precision
of his moral sentiments: they lead our own judgments, and, upon
account of their uncommon and surprising justness, they even
excite our wonder and applause. We cannot indeed be always sure
that the conduct of such a person would be in any respect
correspondent to the precision and accuracy of his judgments
concerning the conduct of others. Virtue requires habit and
resolution of mind, as well as delicacy of sentiment; and
unfortunately the former qualities are sometimes wanting, where
the latter is in the greatest perfection. This disposition of
mind, however, though it may sometimes be attended with
imperfections, is incompatible with any thing that is grossly
criminal, and is the happiest foundation upon which the
superstructure of perfect virtue can be built. There are many men
who mean very well, and seriously purpose to do what they think
their duty, who notwithstanding are disagreeable on account of the
coarseness of their moral sentiments. | |
VII.III.26 |
|
It may be said, perhaps, that though the principle of
approbation is not founded upon any power of perception that is in
any respect analogous to the external senses, it may still be
founded upon a peculiar sentiment which answers this one
particular purpose and no other. Approbation and disapprobation,
it may be pretended, are certain feelings or emotions which arise
in the mind upon the view of different characters and actions; and
as resentment might be called a sense of injuries, or gratitude a
sense of benefits, so these may very properly receive the name of
a sense of right and wrong, or of a moral sense.
| |
VII.III.27 |
|
But this account of things, though it may not be liable to the
same objections with the foregoing, is exposed to others which are
equally unanswerable. | |
VII.III.28 |
|
First of all, whatever variations any particular emotion may
undergo, it still preserves the general features which distinguish
it to be an emotion of such a kind, and these general features are
always more striking and remarkable than any variation which it
may undergo in particular cases. Thus anger is an emotion of a
particular kind: and accordingly its general features are always
more distinguishable than all the variations it undergoes in
particular cases. Anger against a man is, no doubt, somewhat
different from anger against a woman, and that again from anger
against a child. In each of those three cases, the general passion
of anger receives a different modification from the particular
character of its object, as may easily be observed by the
attentive. But still the general features of the passion
predominate in all these cases. To distinguish these, requires no
nice observation: a very delicate attention, on the contrary, is
necessary to discover their variations: every body takes notice of
the former; scarce any body observes the latter. If approbation
and disapprobation, therefore, were, like gratitude and
resentment, emotions of a particular kind, distinct from every
other, we should expect that in all the variations which either of
them might undergo, it would still retain the general features
which mark it to be an emotion of such a particular kind, clear,
plain, and easily distinguishable. But in fact it happens quite
otherwise. If we attend to what we really feel when upon different
occasions we either approve or disapprove, we shall find that our
emotion in one case is often totally different from that in
another, and that no common features can possibly be discovered
between them. Thus the approbation with which we view a tender,
delicate, and humane sentiment, is quite different from that with
which we are struck by one that appears great, daring, and
magnanimous. Our approbation of both may, upon different
occasions, be perfect and entire; but we are softened by the one,
and we are elevated by the other, and there is no sort of
resemblance between the emotions which they excite in us. But
according to that system which I have been endeavouring to
establish, this must necessarily be the case. As the emotions of
the person whom we approve of, are, in those two cases, quite
opposite to one another, and as our approbation arises from
sympathy with those opposite emotions, what we feel upon the one
occasion, can have no sort of resemblance to what we feel upon the
other. But this could not happen if approbation consisted in a
peculiar emotion which had nothing in common with the sentiments
we approved of, but which arose at the view of those sentiments,
like any other passion at the view of its proper object. The same
thing holds true with regard to disapprobation. Our horror for
cruelty has no sort of resemblance to our contempt for
mean-spiritedness. It is quite a different species of discord
which we feel at the view of those two different vices, between
our own minds and those of the person whose sentiments and
behaviour we consider. | |
VII.III.29 |
|
Secondly, I have already observed, that not only the different
passions or affections of the human mind which are approved or
disapproved of, appear morally good or evil, but that proper and
improper approbation appear, to our natural sentiments, to be
stamped with the same characters. I would ask, therefore, how it
is, that, according to this system, we approve or disapprove of
proper or improper approbation? To this question there is, I
imagine, but one reasonable answer, which can possibly be given.
It must be said, that when the approbation with which our
neighbour regards the conduct of a third person coincides with our
own, we approve of his approbation, and consider it as, in some
measure, morally good; and that, on the contrary, when it does not
coincide with our own sentiments, we disapprove of it, and
consider it as, in some measure, morally evil. It must be allowed,
therefore, that, at least in this one case, the coincidence or
opposition of sentiments, between the observer and the person
observed, constitutes moral approbation or disapprobation. And if
it does so in this one case, I would ask, why not in every other?
Or to what purpose imagine a new power of perception in order to
account for those sentiments? | |
VII.III.30 |
|
Against every account of the principle of approbation, which
makes it depend upon a peculiar sentiment, distinct from every
other, I would object; that it is strange that this sentiment,
which Providence undoubtedly intended to be the governing
principle of human nature, should hitherto have been so little
taken notice of, as not to have got a name in any language. The
word moral sense is of very late formation, and cannot yet be
considered as making part of the English tongue. The word
approbation has but within these few years been appropriated to
denote peculiarly any thing of this kind. In propriety of language
we approve of whatever is entirely to our satisfaction, of the
form of a building, of the contrivance of a machine, of the
flavour of a dish of meat. The word conscience does not
immediately denote any moral faculty by which we approve or
disapprove. Conscience supposes, indeed, the existence of some
such faculty, and properly signifies our consciousness of having
acted agreeably or contrary to its directions. When love, hatred,
joy, sorrow, gratitude, resentment, with so many other passions
which are all supposed to be the subjects of this principle, have
made themselves considerable enough to get titles to know them by,
is it not surprising that the sovereign of them all should
hitherto have been so little heeded, that, a few philosophers
excepted, nobody has yet thought it worth while to bestow a name
upon it? | |
VII.III.31 |
|
When we approve of any character or action, the sentiments
which we feel, are, according to the foregoing system, derived
from four sources, which are in some respects different from one
another. First, we sympathize with the motives of the agent;
secondly, we enter into the gratitude of those who receive the
benefit of his actions; thirdly, we observe that his conduct has
been agreeable to the general rules by which those two sympathies
generally act; and, last of all, when we consider such actions as
making a part of a system of behaviour which tends to promote the
happiness either of the individual or of the society, they appear
to derive a beauty from this utility, not unlike that which we
ascribe to any well-contrived machine. After deducting, in any one
particular case, all that must be acknowledged to proceed from
some one or other of these four principles, I should be glad to
know what remains, and I shall freely allow this overplus to be
ascribed to a moral sense, or to any other peculiar faculty,
provided any body will ascertain precisely what this overplus is.
It might be expected, perhaps, that if there was any such peculiar
principle, such as this moral sense is supposed to be, we should
feel it, in some particular cases, separated and detached from
every other, as we often feel joy, sorrow, hope, and fear, pure
and unmixed with any other emotion. This however, I imagine,
cannot even be pretended. I have never heard any instance alleged
in which this principle could be said to exert itself alone and
unmixed with sympathy or antipathy, with gratitude or resentment,
with the perception of the agreement or disagreement of any action
to an established rule, or last of all with that general taste for
beauty and order which is excited by inanimated as well as by
animated objects. | |
VII.III.32 |
|
II. There is another system which attempts to account for the
origin of our moral sentiments from sympathy, distinct from that
which I have been endeavouring to establish. It is that which
places virtue in utility, and accounts for the pleasure with which
the spectator surveys the utility of any quality from sympathy
with the happiness of those who are affected by it. This sympathy
is different both from that by which we enter into the motives of
the agent, and from that by which we go along with the gratitude
of the persons who are benefited by his actions. It is the same
principle with that by which we approve of a well-contrived
machine. But no machine can be the object of either of those two
last mentioned sympathies. I have already, in the fourth part of
this discourse, given some account of this system.
| |
VII.III.33 |
|
Section IV - Of the Manner in which different Authors have
treated of the practical Rules of Morality
| |
|
It was
observed in the third part of this discourse, that the rules of
justice are the only rules of morality which are precise and
accurate; that those of all the other virtues are loose, vague,
and indeterminate; that the first may be compared to the rules of
grammar; the others to those which critics lay down for the
attainment of what is sublime and elegant in composition, and
which present us rather with a general idea of the perfection we
ought to aim at, than afford us any certain and infallible
directions for acquiring it. | |
VII.IV.1 |
|
As the different rules of morality admit such different degrees
of accuracy, those authors who have endeavoured to collect and
digest them into systems have done it in two Different manners;
and one set has followed through the whole that loose method to
which they were naturally directed by the consideration of one
species of virtues; while another has as universally endeavoured
to introduce into their precepts that sort of accuracy of which
only some of them are susceptible. The first have wrote like
critics, the second like grammarians. | |
VII.IV.2 |
|
I. The first, among whom we may count all the ancient
moralists, have contented themselves with describing in a general
manner the different vices and virtues, and with pointing out the
deformity and misery of the one disposition as well as the
propriety and happiness of the other, but have not affected to lay
down many precise rules that are to hold good unexceptionably in
all particular cases. They have only endeavoured to ascertain, as
far as language is capable of ascertaining, first, wherein
consists the sentiment of the heart, upon which each particular
virtue is founded, what sort of internal feeling or emotion it is
which constitutes the essence of friendship, of humanity, of
generosity, of justice, of magnanimity, and of all the other
virtues, as well as of the vices which are opposed to them: and,
secondly, what is the general way of acting, the ordinary tone and
tenor of conduct to which each of those sentiments would direct
us, or how it is that a friendly, a generous, a brave, a just, and
a humane man, would, upon ordinary occasions, chuse to act.
| |
VII.IV.3 |
|
To characterize the sentiment of the heart, upon which each
particular virtue is founded, though it requires both a delicate
and an accurate pencil, is a task, however, which may be executed
with some degree of exactness. It is impossible, indeed, to
express all the variations which each sentiment either does or
ought to undergo, according to every possible variation of
circumstances. They are endless, and language wants names to mark
them by. The sentiment of friendship, for example, which we feel
for an old man is different from that which we feel for a young:
that which we entertain for an austere man different from that
which we feel for one of softer and gentler manners: and that
again from what we feel for one of gay vivacity and spirit. The
friendship which we conceive for a man is different from that with
which a woman affects us, even where there is no mixture of any
grosser passion. What author could enumerate and ascertain these
and all the other infinite varieties which this sentiment is
capable of undergoing? But still the general sentiment of
friendship and familiar attachment which is common to them all,
may be ascertained with a sufficient degree of accuracy. The
picture which is drawn of it, though it will always be in many
respects incomplete, may, however, have such a resemblance as to
make us know the original when we meet with it, and even
distinguish it from other sentiments to which it has a
considerable resemblance, such as good-will, respect, esteem,
admiration. | |
VII.IV.4 |
|
To describe, in a general manner, what is the ordinary way of
acting to which each virtue would prompt us, is still more easy.
It is, indeed, scarce possible to describe the internal sentiment
or emotion upon which it is founded, without doing something of
this kind. It is impossible by language to express, if I may say
so, the invisible features of all the different modifications of
passion as they show themselves within. There is no other way of
marking and distinguishing them from one another, but by
describing the effects which they produce without, the alterations
which they occasion in the countenance, in the air and eternal
behaviour, the resolutions they suggest, the actions they prompt
to. It is thus that Cicero, in the first book of his Offices,
endeavours to direct us to the practice of the four cardinal
virtues, and that Aristotle in the practical parts of his Ethics,
points out to us the different habits by which he would have us
regulate our behaviour, such as liberality, magnificence,
magnanimity, and even jocularity and good-humour, qualities which
that indulgent philosopher has thought worthy of a place in the
catalogue of the virtues, though the lightness of that approbation
which we naturally bestow upon them, should not seem to entitle
them to so venerable a name. | |
VII.IV.5 |
|
Such works present us with agreeable and lively pictures of
manners. By the vivacity of their descriptions they inflame our
natural love of virtue, and increase our abhorrence of vice: by
the justness as well as delicacy of their observations they may
often help both to correct and to ascertain our natural sentiments
with regard to the propriety of conduct, and suggesting many nice
and delicate attentions, form us to a more exact justness of
behaviour, than what, without such instruction, we should have
been apt to think of. In treating of the rules of morality, in
this manner, consists the science which is properly called Ethics,
a science which, though like criticism it does not admit of the
most accurate precision, is, however, both highly useful and
agreeable. It is of all others the most susceptible of the
embellishments of eloquence, and by means of them of bestowing, if
that be possible, a new importance upon the smallest rules of
duty. Its precepts, when thus dressed and adorned, are capable of
producing upon the flexibility of youth, the noblest and most
lasting impressions, and as they fall in with the natural
magnanimity of that generous age, they are able to inspire, for a
time at least, the most heroic resolutions, and thus tend both to
establish and confirm the best and most useful habits of which the
mind of man is susceptible. Whatever precept and exhortation can
do to animate us to the practice of virtue, is done by this
science delivered in this manner. | |
VII.IV.6 |
|
II. The second set of moralists, among whom we may count all
the casuists of the middle and latter ages of the christian
church, as well as all those who in this and in the preceding
century have treated of what is called natural jurisprudence, do
not content themselves with characterizing in this general manner
that tenor of conduct which they would recommend to us, but
endeavour to lay down exact and precise rules for the direction of
every circumstance of our behaviour. As justice is the only virtue
with regard to which such exact rules can properly be given; it is
this virtue, that has chiefly fallen under the consideration of
those two different sets of writers. They treat of it, however, in
a very different manner. | |
VII.IV.7 |
|
Those who write upon the principles of jurisprudence, consider
only what the person to whom the obligation is due, ought to think
himself entitled to exact by force; what every impartial spectator
would approve of him for exacting, or what a judge or arbiter, to
whom he had submitted his case, and who had undertaken to do him
justice, ought to oblige the other person to suffer or to perform.
The casuists, on the other hand, do not so much examine what it
is, that might properly be exacted by force, as what it is, that
the person who owes the obligation ought to think himself bound to
perform from the most sacred and scrupulous regard to the general
rules of justice, and from the most conscientious dread, either of
wronging his neighbour, or of violating the integrity of his own
character. It is the end of jurisprudence to prescribe rules for
the decisions of judges and arbiters. It is the end of casuistry
to prescribe rules for the conduct of a good man. By observing all
the rules of jurisprudence, supposing them ever so perfect, we
should deserve nothing but to be free from external punishment. By
observing those of casuistry, supposing them such as they ought to
be, we should be entitled to considerable praise by the exact and
scrupulous delicacy of our behaviour. | |
VII.IV.8 |
|
It may frequently happen that a good man ought to think himself
bound, from a sacred and conscientious regard to the general rules
of justice, to perform many things which it would be the highest
injustice to extort from him, or for any judge or arbiter to
impose upon him by force. To give a trite example; a highwayman,
by the fear of death, obliges a traveller to promise him a certain
sum of money. Whether such a promise, extorted in this manner by
unjust force, ought to be regarded as obligatory, is a question
that has been very much debated. | |
VII.IV.9 |
|
If we consider it merely as a question of jurisprudence, the
decision can admit of no doubt. It would be absurd to suppose that
the highwayman can be entitled to use force to constrain the other
to perform. To extort the promise was a crime which deserved the
highest punishment, and to extort the performance would only be
adding a new crime to the former. He can complain of no injury who
has been only deceived by the person by whom he might justly have
been killed. To suppose that a judge ought to enforce the
obligation of such promises, or that the magistrate ought to allow
them to sustain action at law, would be the most ridiculous of all
absurdities. If we consider this question, therefore, as a
question of jurisprudence, we can be at no loss about the
decision. | |
VII.IV.10 |
|
But if we consider it as a question of casuistry, it will not
be so easily determined. Whether a good man, from a conscientious
regard to that most sacred rule of justice, which commands the
observance of all serious promises, would not think himself bound
to perform, is at least much more doubtful. That no regard is due
to the disappointment of the wretch who brings him into this
situation, that no injury is done to the robber, and consequently
that nothing can be extorted by force, will admit of no sort of
dispute. But whether some regard is not, in this case, due to his
own dignity and honour, to the inviolable sacredness of that part
of his character which makes him reverence the law of truth and
abhor every thing that approaches to treachery and falsehood, may,
perhaps, more reasonably be made a question. The casuists
accordingly are greatly divided about it. One party, with whom we
may count Cicero among the ancients, among the moderns,
Puffendorf, Barbeyrac his commentator, and above all the late Dr.
Hutcheson, one who in most cases was by no means a loose casuist,
determine, without any hesitation, that no sort of regard is due
to any such promise, and that to think otherwise is mere weakness
and superstition. Another party, among whom we may reckon
some of the ancient fathers of the
church, as well as some very eminent modern casuists, have been of
another opinion, and have judged all such promises obligatory.
| |
VII.IV.11 |
|
If we consider the matter according to the common sentiments of
mankind, we shall find that some regard would be thought due even
to a promise of this kind; but that it is impossible to determine
how much, by any general rule that will apply to all cases without
exception. The man who was quite frank and easy in making promises
of this kind, and who violated them with as little ceremony, we
should not chuse for our friend and companion. A gentleman who
should promise a highwayman five pounds and not perform, would
incur some blame. If the sum promised, however, was very great, it
might be more doubtful, what was proper to be done. If it was
such, for example, that the payment of it would entirely ruin the
family of the promiser, if it was so great as to be sufficient for
promoting the most useful purposes, it would appear in some
measure criminal, at least extremely improper, to throw it, for
the sake of a punctilio, into such worthless hands. The man who
should beggar himself, or who should throw away an hundred
thousand pounds, though he could afford that vast sum, for the
sake of observing such a parole with a thief, would appear to the
common sense of mankind, absurd and extravagant in the highest
degree. Such profusion would seem inconsistent with his duty, with
what he owed both to himself and others, and what, therefore,
regard to a promise extorted in this manner, could by no means
authorise. To fix, however, by any precise rule, what degree of
regard ought to be paid to it, or what might be the greatest sum
which could be due from it, is evidently impossible. This would
vary according to the characters of the persons, according to
their circumstances, according to the solemnity of the promise,
and even according to the incidents of the rencounter. and if the
promiser had been treated with a great deal of that sort of
gallantry, which is sometimes to be met with in persons of the
most abandoned characters, more would seem due than upon other
occasions. It may be said in general, that exact propriety
requires the observance of all such promises, wherever it is not
inconsistent with some other duties that are more sacred; such as
regard to the public interest, to those whom gratitude, whom
natural affection, or whom the laws of proper beneficence should
prompt us to provide for. But, as was formerly taken notice of, we
have no precise rules to determine what external actions are due
from a regard to such motives, nor, consequently, when it is that
those virtues are inconsistent with the observance of such
promises. | |
VII.IV.12 |
|
It is to be observed, however, that whenever such promises are
violated, though for the most necessary reasons, it is always with
some degree of dishonour to the person who made them. After they
are made, we may be convinced of the impropriety of observing
them. But still there is some fault in having made them. It is at
least a departure from the highest and noblest maxims of
magnanimity and honour. A brave man ought to die, rather than make
a promise which he can neither keep without folly, nor violate
without ignominy. For some degree of ignominy always attends a
situation of this kind. Treachery and falsehood are vices so
dangerous, so dreadful, and, at the same time, such as may so
easily, and, upon many occasions, so safely be indulged, that we
are more jealous of them than of almost any other. Our imagination
therefore attaches the idea of shame to all violations of faith,
in every circumstance and in every situation. They resemble, in
this respect, the violations of chastity in the fair sex, a virtue
of which, for the like reasons, we are excessively jealous; and
our sentiments are not more delicate with regard to the one, than
with regard to the other. Breach of chastity dishonours
irretrievably. No circumstances, no solicitation can excuse it; no
sorrow, no repentance atone for it. We are so nice in this respect
that even a rape dishonours, and the innocence of the mind cannot,
in our imagination, wash out the pollution of the body. It is the
same case with the violation of faith, when it has been solemnly
pledged, even to the most worthless of mankind. Fidelity is so
necessary a virtue, that we apprehend it in general to be due even
to those to whom nothing else is due, and whom we think it lawful
to kill and destroy. It is to no purpose that the person who has
been guilty of the breach of it, urges that he promised in order
to save his life, and that he broke his promise because it was
inconsistent with some other respectable duty to keep it. These
circumstances may alleviate, but cannot entirely wipe out his
dishonour. He appears to have been guilty of an action with which,
in the imaginations of men, some degree of shame is inseparably
connected. He has broke a promise which he had solemnly averred he
would maintain; and his character, if not irretrievably stained
and polluted, has at least a ridicule affixed to it, which it will
be very difficult entirely to efface; and no man, I imagine, who
had gone through an adventure of this kind would be fond of
telling the story. | |
VII.IV.13 |
|
This instance may serve to show wherein consists the difference
between casuistry and jurisprudence, even when both of them
consider the obligations of the general rules of justice.
| |
VII.IV.14 |
|
But though this difference be real and essential, though those
two sciences propose quite different ends, the sameness of the
subject has made such a similarity between them, that the greater
part of authors whose professed design was to treat of
jurisprudence, have determined the different questions they
examine, sometimes according to the principles of that science,
and sometimes according to those of casuistry, without
distinguishing, and, perhaps, without being themselves aware when
they did the one, and when the other. | |
VII.IV.15 |
|
The doctrine of the casuists, however, is by no means confined
to the consideration of what a conscientious regard to the general
rules of justice would demand of us. It embraces many other parts
of Christian and moral duty. What seems principally to have given
occasion to the cultivation of this species of science was the
custom of auricular confession, introduced by the Roman Catholic
superstition, in times of barbarism and ignorance. By that
institution, the most secret actions, and even the thoughts of
every person, which could be suspected of receding in the smallest
degree from the rules of Christian purity, were to be revealed to
the confessor. The confessor informed his penitents whether, and
in what respect they had violated their duty, and what penance it
behoved them to undergo, before he could absolve them in the name
of the offended Deity. | |
VII.IV.16 |
|
The consciousness, or even the suspicion of having done wrong,
is a load upon every mind, and is accompanied with anxiety and
terror in all those who are not hardened by long habits of
iniquity. Men, in this, as in all other distresses, are naturally
eager to disburthen themselves of the oppression which they feel
upon their thoughts, by unbosoming the agony of their mind to some
person whose secrecy and discretion they can confide in. The
shame, which they suffer from this acknowledgment, is fully
compensated by that deviation of their uneasiness which the
sympathy of their confident seldom fails to occasion. It relieves
them to find that they are not altogether unworthy of regard, and
that however their past conduct may be censured, their present
disposition is at least approved of, and is perhaps sufficient to
compensate the other, at least to maintain them in some degree of
esteem with their friend. A numerous and artful clergy had, in
those times of superstition, insinuated themselves into the
confidence of almost every private family. They possessed all the
little learning which the times could afford, and their manners,
though in many respects rude and disorderly, were polished and
regular compared with those of the age they lived in. They were
regarded, therefore, not only as the great directors of all
religious, but of all moral duties. Their familiarity gave
reputation to whoever was so happy as to possess it, and every
mark of their disapprobation stamped the deepest ignominy upon all
who had the misfortune to fall under it. Being considered as the
great judges of right and wrong, they were naturally consulted
about all scruples that occurred, and it was reputable for any
person to have it known that he made those holy men the confidents
of all such secrets, and took no important or delicate step in his
conduct without their advice and approbation. It was not difficult
for the clergy, therefore, to get it established as a general
rule, that they should be entrusted with what it had already
become fashionable to entrust them, and with what they generally
would have been entrusted, though no such rule had been
established. To qualify themselves for confessors became thus a
necessary part of the study of churchmen and divines, and they
were thence led to collect what are called cases of conscience,
nice and delicate situations in which it is hard to determine
whereabouts the propriety of conduct may lie. Such works, they
imagined, might be of use both to the directors of consciences and
to those who were to be directed; and hence the origin of books of
casuistry. | |
VII.IV.17 |
|
The moral duties which fell under the consideration of the
casuists were chiefly those which can, in some measure at least,
be circumscribed within general rules, and of which the violation
is naturally attended with some degree of remorse and some dread
of suffering punishment. The design of that institution which gave
occasion to their works, was to appease those terrors of
conscience which attend upon the infringement of such duties. But
it is not every virtue of which the defect is accompanied with any
very severe compunctions of this kind, and no man applies to his
confessor for absolution, because he did not perform the most
generous, the most friendly, or the most magnanimous action which,
in his circumstances, it was possible to perform. In failures of
this kind, the rule that is violated is commonly not very
determinate, and is generally of such a nature too, that though
the observance of it might entitle to honour and reward, the
violation seems to expose to no positive blame, censure, or
punishment. The exercise of such virtues the casuists seem to have
regarded as a sort of works of supererogation, which could not be
very strictly exacted, and which it was therefore unnecessary for
them to treat of. | |
VII.IV.18 |
|
The breaches of moral duty, therefore, which came before the
tribunal of the confessor, and upon that account fell under the
cognizance of the casuists, were chiefly of three different kinds.
| |
VII.IV.19 |
|
First and principally, breaches of the rules of justice. The
rules here are all express and positive, and the violation of them
is naturally attended with the consciousness of deserving, and the
dread of suffering punishment both from God and man.
| |
VII.IV.20 |
|
Secondly, breaches of the rules of chastity. These in all
grosser instances are real breaches of the rules of justice, and
no person can be guilty of them without doing the most
unpardonable injury to some other. In smaller instances, when they
amount only to a violation of those exact decorums which ought to
be observed in the conversation of the two sexes, they cannot
indeed justly be considered as violations of the rules of justice.
They are generally, however, violations of a pretty plain rule,
and, at least in one of the sexes, tend to bring ignominy upon the
person who has been guilty of them, and consequently to be
attended in the scrupulous with some degree of shame and
contrition of mind. | |
VII.IV.21 |
|
Thirdly, breaches of the rules of veracity. The violation of
truth, it is to be observed, is not always a breach of justice,
though it is so upon many occasions, and consequently cannot
always expose to any external punishment. The vice of common
lying, though a most miserable meanness, may frequently do hurt to
nobody, and in this case no claim of vengeance or satisfaction can
be due either to the persons imposed upon, or to others. But
though the violation of truth is not always a breach of justice,
it is always a breach of a very plain rule, and what naturally
tends to cover with shame the person who has been guilty of it.
| |
VII.IV.22 |
|
There seems to be in young children an instinctive disposition
to believe whatever they are told. Nature seems to have judged it
necessary for their preservation that they should, for some time
at least, put implicit confidence in those to whom the care of
their childhood, and of the earliest and most necessary parts of
their education, is intrusted. Their credulity, accordingly, is
excessive, and it requires long and much experience of the
falsehood of mankind to reduce them to a reasonable degree of
diffidence and distrust. In grown-up people the degrees of
credulity are, no doubt, very different. The wisest and most
experienced are generally the least credulous. But the man scarce
lives who is not more credulous than he ought to be, and who does
not, upon many occasions, give credit to tales, which not only
turn out to be perfectly false, but which a very moderate degree
of reflection and attention might have taught him could not well
be true. The natural disposition is always to believe. It is
acquired wisdom and experience only that teach incredulity, and
they very seldom teach it enough. The wisest and most cautious of
us all frequently gives credit to stories which he himself is
afterwards both ashamed and astonished that he could possibly
think of believing. | |
VII.IV.23 |
|
The man whom we believe is necessarily, in the things
concerning which we believe him, our leader and director, and we
look up to him with a certain degree of esteem and respect. But as
from admiring other people we come to wish to be admired
ourselves; so from being led and directed by other people we learn
to wish to become ourselves leaders and directors. And as we
cannot always be satisfied merely with being admired, unless we
can at the same time persuade ourselves that we are in some degree
really worthy of admiration; so we cannot always be satisfied
merely with being believed, unless we are at the same time
conscious that we are really worthy of belief. As the desire of
praise and that of praise-worthiness, though very much a-kin, are
yet distinct and separate desires; so the desire of being believed
and that of being worthy of belief, though very much a-kin too,
are equally distinct and separate desires.
| |
VII.IV.24 |
|
The desire of being believed, the desire of persuading, of
leading and directing other people, seems to be one of the
strongest of all our natural desires. It is, perhaps, the instinct
upon which is founded the faculty of speech, the characteristical
faculty of human nature. No other animal possesses this faculty,
and we cannot discover in any other animal any desire to lead and
direct the judgment and conduct of its fellows. Great ambition,
the desire of real superiority, of leading and directing, seems to
be altogether peculiar to man, and speech is the great instrument
of ambition, of real superiority, of leading and directing the
judgments and conduct of other people. | |
VII.IV.25 |
|
It is always mortifying not to be believed, and it is doubly so
when we suspect that it is because we are supposed to be unworthy
of belief and capable of seriously and wilfully deceiving. To tell
a man that he lies, is of all affronts the most mortal. But
whoever seriously and wilfully deceives is necessarily conscious
to himself that he merits this affront, that he does not deserve
to be believed, and that he forfeits all title to that sort of
credit from which alone he can derive any sort of ease, comfort,
or satisfaction in the society of his equals. The man who had the
misfortune to imagine that nobody believed a single word he said,
would feel himself the outcast of human society, would dread the
very thought of going into it, or of presenting himself before it,
and could scarce fail, I think, to die of despair. It is probable,
however, that no man ever had just reason to entertain this
humiliating opinion of himself. The most notorious liar, I am
disposed to believe, tells the fair truth at least twenty times
for once that he seriously and deliberately lies; and, as in the
most cautious the disposition to believe is apt to prevail over
that to doubt and distrust; so in those who are the most
regardless of truth, the natural disposition to tell it prevails
upon most occasions over that to deceive, or in any respect to
alter or disguise it. | |
VII.IV.26 |
|
We are mortified when we happen to deceive other people, though
unintentionally, and from having been ourselves deceived. Though
this involuntary falsehood may frequently be no mark of any want
of veracity, of any want of the most perfect love of truth, it is
always in some degree a mark of want of judgment, of want of
memory, of improper credulity, of some degree of precipitancy and
rashness. It always diminishes our authority to persuade, and
always brings some degree of suspicion upon our fitness to lead
and direct. The man who sometimes misleads from mistake, however,
is widely different from him who is capable of wilfully deceiving.
The former may safely be trusted upon many occasions; the latter
very seldom upon any. | |
VII.IV.27 |
|
Frankness and openness conciliate
confidence. We trust the man who seems willing to trust us. We see
clearly, we think, the road by which he means to conduct us, and
we abandon ourselves with pleasure to his guidance and direction.
Reserve and concealment, on the contrary, call forth diffidence.
We are afraid to follow the man who is going we do not know where.
The great pleasure of conversation and society, besides, arises
from a certain correspondence of sentiments and opinions, from a
certain harmony of minds, which like so many musical instruments
coincide and keep time with one another. But this most delightful
harmony cannot be obtained unless there is a free communication of
sentiments and opinions. We all desire, upon this account, to feel
how each other is affected, to penetrate into each other's bosoms,
and to observe the sentiments and affections which really subsist
there. The man who indulges us in this natural passion, who
invites us into his heart, who, as it were, sets open the gates of
his breast to us, seems to exercise a species of hospitality more
delightful than any other. No man, who is in ordinary good temper,
can fail of pleasing, if he has the courage to utter his real
sentiments as he feels them, and because he feels them. It is this
unreserved sincerity which renders even the prattle of a child
agreeable. How weak and imperfect soever the views of the
open-hearted, we take pleasure to enter into them, and endeavour,
as much as we can, to bring down our own understanding to the
level of their capacities, and to regard every subject in the
particular light in which they appear to have considered it. This
passion to discover the real sentiments of others is naturally so
strong, that it often degenerates into a troublesome and
impertinent curiosity to pry into those secrets of our neighbours
which they have very justifiable reasons for concealing; and, upon
many occasions, it requires prudence and a strong sense of
propriety to govern this, as well as all the other passions of
human nature, and to reduce it to that pitch which any impartial
spectator can approve of. To disappoint this curiosity, however,
when it is kept within proper bounds, and aims at nothing which
there can be any just reason for concealing, is equally
disagreeable in its turn. The man who eludes our most innocent
questions, who gives no satisfaction to our most inoffensive
inquiries, who plainly wraps himself up in impenetrable obscurity,
seems, as it were, to build a wall about his breast. We run
forward to get within it, with all the eagerness of harmless
curiosity; and feel ourselves all at once pushed back with the
rudest and most offensive violence. | |
VII.IV.28 |
|
The man of reserve and concealment, though seldom a very
amiable character, is not disrespected or despised. He seems to
feel coldly towards us, and we feel as coldly towards him. He is
not much praised or beloved, but he is as little hated or blamed.
He very seldom, however, has occasion to repent of his caution,
and is generally disposed rather to value himself upon the
prudence of his reserve. Though his conduct, therefore, may have
been very faulty, and sometimes even hurtful, he can very seldom
be disposed to lay his case before the casuists, or to fancy that
he has any occasion for their acquittal or approbation.
| |
VII.IV.29 |
|
It is not always so with the man, who, from false information,
from inadvertency, from precipitancy and rashness, has
involuntarily deceived. Though it should be in a matter of little
consequence, in telling a piece of common news, for example, if he
is a real lover of truth, he is ashamed of his own carelessness,
and never fails to embrace the first opportunity of making the
fullest acknowledgments. If it is in a matter of some consequence,
his contrition is still greater; and if any unlucky or fatal
consequence has followed from his misinformation, he can scarce
ever forgive himself. Though not guilty, he feels himself to be in
the highest degree, what the ancients called, piacular, and is
anxious and eager to make every sort of atonement in his power.
Such a person might frequently be disposed to lay his case before
the casuists, who have in general been very favourable to him, and
though they have sometimes justly condemned him for rashness, they
have universally acquitted him of the ignominy of falsehood.
| |
VII.IV.30 |
|
But the man who had the most frequent occasion to consult them,
was the man of equivocation and mental reservation, the man who
seriously and deliberately meant to deceive, but who, at the same
time, wished to flatter himself that he had really told the truth.
With him they have dealt variously. When they approved very much
of the motives of his deceit, they have sometimes acquitted him,
though, to do them justice, they have in general and much more
frequently condemned him. | |
VII.IV.31 |
|
The chief subjects of the works of the casuists, therefore,
were the conscientious regard that is due to the rules of justice;
how far we ought to respect the life and property of our
neighbour; the duty of restitution; the laws of chastity and
modesty, and wherein consisted what, in their language, are called
the sins of concupiscence; the rules of veracity, and the
obligation of oaths, promises, and contracts of all kinds.
| |
VII.IV.32 |
|
It may be said in general of the works of the casuists that
they attempted, to no purpose, to direct by precise rules what it
belongs to feeling and sentiment only to judge of. How is it
possible to ascertain by rules the exact point at which, in every
case, a delicate sense of justice begins to run into a frivolous
and weak scrupulosity of conscience? When it is that secrecy and
reserve begin to grow into dissimulation? How far an agreeable
irony may be carried, and at what precise point it begins to
degenerate into a detest. able lie? What is the highest pitch of
freedom and ease of behaviour which can be regarded as graceful
and becoming, and when it is that it first begins to run into a
negligent and thoughtless licentiousness? With regard to all such
matters, what would hold good in any one case would scarce do so
exactly in any other, and what constitutes the propriety and
happiness of behaviour varies in every case with the smallest
variety of situation. Books of casuistry, therefore, are generally
as useless as they are commonly tiresome. They could be of little
use to one who should consult them upon occasion, even supposing
their decisions to be just; because, notwithstanding the multitude
of cases collected in them, yet upon account of the still greater
variety of possible circumstances, it is a chance, if among all
those cases there be found one exactly parallel to that under
consideration. One, who is really anxious to do his duty, must be
very weak, if he can imagine that he has much occasion for them;
and with regard to one who is negligent of it, the style of those
writings is not such as is likely to awaken him to more attention.
None of them tend to animate us to what is generous and noble.
None of them tend to soften us to what is gentle and humane. Many
of them, on the contrary, tend rather to teach us to chicane with
our own consciences, and by their vain subtilties serve to
authorise innumerable evasive refinements with regard to the most
essential articles of our duty. That frivolous accuracy which they
attempted to introduce into subjects which do not admit of it,
almost necessarily betrayed them into those dangerous errors, and
at the same time rendered their works dry and disagreeable,
abounding in abtruse and metaphysical distinctions, but incapable
of exciting in the heart any of those emotions which it is the
principal use of books of morality to excite.
| |
VII.IV.33 |
|
The two useful parts of moral philosophy, therefore, are Ethics
and Jurisprudence: casuistry ought to be rejected altogether; and
the ancient moralists appear to have judged much better, who, in
treating of the same subjects, did not affect any such nice
exactness, but contented themselves with describing, in a general
manner, what is the sentiment upon which justice, modesty, and
veracity are founded, and what is the ordinary way of acting to
which those virtues would commonly prompt us.
| |
VII.IV.34 |
|
Something, indeed, not unlike the doctrine of the casuists,
seems to have been attempted by several philosophers. There is
something of this kind in the third book of Cicero's Offices,
where he endeavours like a casuist to give rules for our conduct
in many nice cases, in which it is difficult to determine
whereabouts the point of propriety may lie. It appears too, from
many passages in the same book, that several other philosophers
had attempted something of the same kind before him. Neither he
nor they, however, appear to have aimed at giving a complete
system of this sort, but only meant to show how situations may
occur, in which it is doubtful, whether the highest propriety of
conduct consists in observing or in receding from what, in
ordinary cases, are the rules of duty. | |
VII.IV.35 |
|
Every system of positive law may be regarded as a more or less
imperfect attempt towards a system of natural jurisprudence, or
towards an enumeration of the particular rules of justice. As the
violation of justice is what men will never submit to from one
another, the public magistrate is under a necessity of employing
the power of the commonwealth to enforce the practice of this
virtue. Without this precaution, civil society would become a
scene of bloodshed and disorder, every man revenging himself at
his own hand whenever he fancied he was injured. To prevent the
confusion which would attend upon every man's doing justice to
himself, the magistrate, in all governments that have acquired any
considerable authority, undertakes to do justice to all, and
promises to hear and to redress every complaint of injury. In all
well-governed states too, not only judges are appointed for
determining the controversies of individuals, but rules are
prescribed for regulating the decisions of those judges; and these
rules are, in general, intended to coincide with those of natural
justice. It does not, indeed, always happen that they do so in
every instance. Sometimes what is called the constitution of the
state, that is, the interest of the government; sometimes the
interest of particular orders of men who tyrannize the government,
warp the positive laws of the country from what natural justice
would prescribe. In some countries, the rudeness and barbarism of
the people hinder the natural sentiments of justice from arriving
at that accuracy and precision which, in more civilized nations,
they naturally attain to. Their laws are, like their manners,
gross and rude and undistinguishing. In other countries the
unfortunate constitution of their courts of judicature hinders any
regular system of jurisprudence from ever establishing itself
among them, though the improved manners of the people may be such
as would admit of the most accurate. In no country do the
decisions of positive law coincide exactly, in every case, with
the rules which the natural sense of justice would dictate.
Systems of positive law, therefore, though they deserve the
greatest authority, as the records of the sentiments of mankind in
different ages and nations, yet can never be regarded as accurate
systems of the rules of natural justice.
| |
VII.IV.36 |
|
It might have been expected that the reasonings of lawyers,
upon the different imperfections and improvements of the laws of
different countries, should have given occasion to an inquiry into
what were the natural rules of justice independent of all positive
institution. It might have been expected that these reasonings
should have led them to aim at establishing a system of what might
properly be called natural jurisprudence, or a theory of the
general principles which ought to run through and be the
foundation of the laws of all nations. But though the reasonings
of lawyers did produce something of this kind, and though no man
has treated systematically of the laws of any particular country,
without intermixing in his work many observations of this sort; it
was very late in the world before any such general system was
thought of, or before the philosophy of law was treated of by
itself, and without regard to the particular institutions of any
one nation. In none of the ancient moralists, do we find any
attempt towards a particular enumeration of the rules of justice.
Cicero in his Offices, and Aristotle in his Ethics, treat of
justice in the same general manner in which they treat of all the
other virtues. In the laws of Cicero and Plato, where we might
naturally have expected some attempts towards an enumeration of
those rules of natural equity, which ought to be enforced by the
positive laws of every country, there is, however, nothing of this
kind. Their laws are laws of police, not of justice. Grotius seems
to have been the first who attempted to give the world any thing
like a system of those principles which ought to ruin through, and
be the foundation of the laws of all nations: and his treatise of
the laws of war and peace, with all its imperfections, is perhaps
at this day the most complete work that has yet been given upon
this subject. I shall in another discourse endeavour to give an
account of the general principles of law and government, and of
the different revolutions they have undergone in the different
ages and periods of society, not only in what concerns justice,
but in what concerns police, revenue, and arms, and whatever else
is the object of law. I shall not, therefore, at present enter
into any further detail concerning the history of jurisprudence.
| |
VII.IV.37 |
^.. Table Of Contents
|